collapse all  

Text -- Romans 1:2-32 (NET)

Strongs On/Off
Context
1:2 This gospel he promised beforehand through his prophets in the holy scriptures, 1:3 concerning his Son who was a descendant of David with reference to the flesh, 1:4 who was appointed the Son-of-God-in-power according to the Holy Spirit by the resurrection from the dead, Jesus Christ our Lord. 1:5 Through him we have received grace and our apostleship to bring about the obedience of faith among all the Gentiles on behalf of his name. 1:6 You also are among them, called to belong to Jesus Christ. 1:7 To all those loved by God in Rome, called to be saints: Grace and peace to you from God our Father and the Lord Jesus Christ!
Paul’s Desire to Visit Rome
1:8 First of all, I thank my God through Jesus Christ for all of you, because your faith is proclaimed throughout the whole world. 1:9 For God, whom I serve in my spirit by preaching the gospel of his Son, is my witness that I continually remember remember you 1:10 and I always ask in my prayers, if perhaps now at last I may succeed in visiting you according to the will of God. 1:11 For I long to see you, so that I may impart to you some spiritual gift to strengthen you, 1:12 that is, that we may be mutually comforted by one another’s faith, both yours and mine. 1:13 I do not want you to be unaware, brothers and sisters, that I often intended to come to you (and was prevented until now), so that I may have some fruit even among you, just as I already have among the rest of the Gentiles. 1:14 I am a debtor both to the Greeks and to the barbarians, both to the wise and to the foolish. 1:15 Thus I am eager also to preach the gospel to you who are in Rome.
The Power of the Gospel
1:16 For I am not ashamed of the gospel, for it is God’s power for salvation to everyone who believes, to the Jew first and also to the Greek. 1:17 For the righteousness of God is revealed in the gospel from faith to faith, just as it is written, “The righteous by faith will live.”
The Condemnation of the Unrighteous
1:18 For the wrath of God is revealed from heaven against all ungodliness and unrighteousness of people who suppress the truth by their unrighteousness, 1:19 because what can be known about God is plain to them, because God has made it plain to them. 1:20 For since the creation of the world his invisible attributes– his eternal power and divine nature– have been clearly seen, because they are understood through what has been made. So people are without excuse. 1:21 For although they knew God, they did not glorify him as God or give him thanks, but they became futile in their thoughts and their senseless hearts were darkened. 1:22 Although they claimed to be wise, they became fools 1:23 and exchanged the glory of the immortal God for an image resembling mortal human beings or birds or four-footed animals or reptiles. 1:24 Therefore God gave them over in the desires of their hearts to impurity, to dishonor their bodies among themselves. 1:25 They exchanged the truth of God for a lie and worshiped and served the creation rather than the Creator, who is blessed forever! Amen. 1:26 For this reason God gave them over to dishonorable passions. For their women exchanged the natural sexual relations for unnatural ones, 1:27 and likewise the men also abandoned natural relations with women and were inflamed in their passions for one another. Men committed shameless acts with men and received in themselves the due penalty for their error. 1:28 And just as they did not see fit to acknowledge God, God gave them over to a depraved mind, to do what should not be done. 1:29 They are filled with every kind of unrighteousness, wickedness, covetousness, malice. They are rife with envy, murder, strife, deceit, hostility. They are gossips, 1:30 slanderers, haters of God, insolent, arrogant, boastful, contrivers of all sorts of evil, disobedient to parents, 1:31 senseless, covenant-breakers, heartless, ruthless. 1:32 Although they fully know God’s righteous decree that those who practice such things deserve to die, they not only do them but also approve of those who practice them.
Parallel   Cross Reference (TSK)   ITL  

Names, People and Places, Dictionary Themes and Topics

Names, People and Places:
 · David a son of Jesse of Judah; king of Israel,son of Jesse of Judah; king of Israel
 · Gentile a non-Jewish person
 · Greek the language used by the people of Greece
 · Jews the people descended from Israel
 · Rome the capital city of Italy


Dictionary Themes and Topics: Wicked | WORSHIP | Son of God | Sodomites | Rome | ROMANS, EPISTLE TO THE | PAPYRUS | Inclusiveness | Habakkuk, Prophecies of | Greek | God | Gentiles | GALATIANS, EPISTLE TO THE | Father | Fall of man | Eternal death | EVIL | Blindness | Bible | Affection | more
Table of Contents

Word/Phrase Notes
Robertson , Vincent , Wesley , JFB , Clarke , Calvin , Defender , TSK

Word/Phrase Notes
Barnes , Poole , PBC , Haydock , Gill

Verse Notes / Footnotes
NET Notes , Geneva Bible

Verse Range Notes
TSK Synopsis , Maclaren , MHCC , Matthew Henry , Barclay , Constable , College , McGarvey

Other
Critics Ask , Evidence

collapse all
Commentary -- Word/Phrase Notes (per phrase)

Robertson: Rom 1:2 - -- He promised afore ( proepēggeilato ). First aorist middle of proepaggellō for which verb see note on 2Co 9:5.

He promised afore ( proepēggeilato ).

First aorist middle of proepaggellō for which verb see note on 2Co 9:5.

Robertson: Rom 1:2 - -- By ( dia ). Through, by means of, intermediate agency like Mat 1:22 which see.

By ( dia ).

Through, by means of, intermediate agency like Mat 1:22 which see.

Robertson: Rom 1:2 - -- In the holy scriptures ( en graphais hagiais ). No article, yet definite. Perhaps the earliest use of the phrase (Sanday and Headlam). Paul definitel...

In the holy scriptures ( en graphais hagiais ).

No article, yet definite. Perhaps the earliest use of the phrase (Sanday and Headlam). Paul definitely finds God’ s gospel in the Holy Scriptures.

Robertson: Rom 1:3 - -- Concerning his Son ( peri tou huiou autou ). Just as Jesus found himself in the O.T. (Luk 24:27, Luk 24:46). The deity of Christ here stated.

Concerning his Son ( peri tou huiou autou ).

Just as Jesus found himself in the O.T. (Luk 24:27, Luk 24:46). The deity of Christ here stated.

Robertson: Rom 1:3 - -- According to the flesh ( kata sarka ). His real humanity alongside of his real deity. For the descent from David see Mat 1:1, Mat 1:6, Mat 1:20; Luk ...

According to the flesh ( kata sarka ).

His real humanity alongside of his real deity. For the descent from David see Mat 1:1, Mat 1:6, Mat 1:20; Luk 1:27; Joh 7:42; Act 13:23, etc.

Robertson: Rom 1:4 - -- Who was declared ( tou horisthentos ). Articular participle (first aorist passive) of horizō for which verb see note on Luk 22:22 and note on Act...

Who was declared ( tou horisthentos ).

Articular participle (first aorist passive) of horizō for which verb see note on Luk 22:22 and note on Act 2:23. He was the Son of God in his preincarnate state (2Co 8:9; Phi 2:6) and still so after his Incarnation (Rom 1:3, "of the seed of David"), but it was the Resurrection of the dead (ex anastaseōs nekrōn , the general resurrection implied by that of Christ) that definitely marked Jesus off as God’ s Son because of his claims about himself as God’ s Son and his prophecy that he would rise on the third day. This event (cf. 1 Corinthians 15) gave God’ s seal "with power"(en dunamei ), "in power,"declared so in power (2Co 13:4). The Resurrection of Christ is the miracle of miracles. "The resurrection only declared him to be what he truly was"(Denney).

Robertson: Rom 1:4 - -- According to the spirit of holiness ( kata pneuma hagiōsunēs ). Not the Holy Spirit, but a description of Christ ethically as kata sarka descri...

According to the spirit of holiness ( kata pneuma hagiōsunēs ).

Not the Holy Spirit, but a description of Christ ethically as kata sarka describes him physically (Denney). Hagiōsunē is rare (1Th 3:13; 2Co 7:1 in N.T.), three times in lxx, each time as the attribute of God. "The pneuma hagiōsunēs , though not the Divine nature, is that in which the Divinity or Divine Personality Resided"(Sanday and Headlam).

Robertson: Rom 1:4 - -- Jesus Christ our Lord ( Iēsou Christou tou kuriou hēmōn ). These words gather up the total personality of Jesus (his deity and his humanity).

Jesus Christ our Lord ( Iēsou Christou tou kuriou hēmōn ).

These words gather up the total personality of Jesus (his deity and his humanity).

Robertson: Rom 1:5 - -- Unto obedience of faith ( eis hupakoēn pisteōs ). Subjective genitive as in Rom 16:26, the obedience which springs from faith (the act of assent ...

Unto obedience of faith ( eis hupakoēn pisteōs ).

Subjective genitive as in Rom 16:26, the obedience which springs from faith (the act of assent or surrender).

Robertson: Rom 1:6 - -- Called to be Jesus Christ’ s ( klētoi Iēsou Christou ). Predicate genitive after klētoi (verbal adjective from kaleō , to call), thoug...

Called to be Jesus Christ’ s ( klētoi Iēsou Christou ).

Predicate genitive after klētoi (verbal adjective from kaleō , to call), though it is possible to consider it the ablative case, "called of (or from) Jesus Christ."

Robertson: Rom 1:7 - -- In Rome ( en Rōmēi ). One late uncial (G of tenth century) and a cursive omit these words here and one or two other late MSS. omit en Rōmēi ...

In Rome ( en Rōmēi ).

One late uncial (G of tenth century) and a cursive omit these words here and one or two other late MSS. omit en Rōmēi in Rom 1:15. This possibly proves the Epistle was circulated as a circular to a limited extent, but the evidence is late and slight and by no means shows that this was the case in the first century. It is not comparable with the absence of en Ephesōi in Eph 1:1 from Aleph and B (the two oldest and best MSS.).

Robertson: Rom 1:7 - -- Beloved of God ( agapētois theou ). Ablative case of theou after the verbal adjective like didaktoi theou (taught of God) in Joh 6:45 (Robertso...

Beloved of God ( agapētois theou ).

Ablative case of theou after the verbal adjective like didaktoi theou (taught of God) in Joh 6:45 (Robertson, Grammar , p. 516).

Robertson: Rom 1:7 - -- From God our Father and the Lord Jesus Christ ( apo theou patros hēmōn kai kuriou Iēsou Christou ). "St. Paul, if not formally enunciating a do...

From God our Father and the Lord Jesus Christ ( apo theou patros hēmōn kai kuriou Iēsou Christou ).

"St. Paul, if not formally enunciating a doctrine of the Divinity of Christ, held a view which cannot really be distinguished from it"(Sanday and Headlam). Paul’ s theology is clearly seen in the terms used in Rom 1:1-7.

Robertson: Rom 1:8 - -- First ( prōton men ). Adverb in the accusative case, but no epeita de (in the next place) as in Heb 7:2 or epeita as in Jam 3:17 follows. The r...

First ( prōton men ).

Adverb in the accusative case, but no epeita de (in the next place) as in Heb 7:2 or epeita as in Jam 3:17 follows. The rush of thoughts crowds out the balanced phraseology as in Rom 3:2; 1Co 11:18.

Robertson: Rom 1:8 - -- Through ( dia ). As the mediator or medium of thanksgiving as in Rom 7:25.

Through ( dia ).

As the mediator or medium of thanksgiving as in Rom 7:25.

Robertson: Rom 1:8 - -- For ( peri ). Concerning, about.

For ( peri ).

Concerning, about.

Robertson: Rom 1:8 - -- That ( hoti ). Or because. Either declarative or causal hoti makes sense here.

That ( hoti ).

Or because. Either declarative or causal hoti makes sense here.

Robertson: Rom 1:8 - -- Your faith ( hē pistis humōn ). "Your Christianity"(Sanday and Headlam).

Your faith ( hē pistis humōn ).

"Your Christianity"(Sanday and Headlam).

Robertson: Rom 1:8 - -- Is proclaimed ( kataggelletai ). Present passive indicative of kataggellō , to announce (aggellō ) up and down (kata ). See also anaggellō , ...

Is proclaimed ( kataggelletai ).

Present passive indicative of kataggellō , to announce (aggellō ) up and down (kata ). See also anaggellō , to bring back news (Joh 5:15), apaggellō , to announce from one as the source (Mat 2:8), prokataggellō , to announce far and wide beforehand (Act 3:18).

Robertson: Rom 1:8 - -- Throughout all the world ( en holōi tōi kosmōi ). Natural hyperbole as in Col 1:6; Act 17:6. But widely known because the church was in the cen...

Throughout all the world ( en holōi tōi kosmōi ).

Natural hyperbole as in Col 1:6; Act 17:6. But widely known because the church was in the central city of the empire.

Robertson: Rom 1:9 - -- I serve ( latreuō ). Old verb from latron , hire, and latris , hireling, so to serve for hire, then to serve in general gods or men, whether sacred...

I serve ( latreuō ).

Old verb from latron , hire, and latris , hireling, so to serve for hire, then to serve in general gods or men, whether sacred services (Heb 9:9; Heb 10:2) or spiritual service as here. Cf. Rom 12:1; Phi 3:3.

Robertson: Rom 1:9 - -- Unceasingly ( adialeiptōs ). Late adverb for which see note on 1Th 1:3. Also see 1Th 2:13; 1Th 5:17, only other N.T. examples.

Unceasingly ( adialeiptōs ).

Late adverb for which see note on 1Th 1:3. Also see 1Th 2:13; 1Th 5:17, only other N.T. examples.

Robertson: Rom 1:9 - -- Always ( pantote ). One might think that Paul prayed for no others, but he uses both adverbs in 1Th 1:2. He seems to have had prayer lists. He never ...

Always ( pantote ).

One might think that Paul prayed for no others, but he uses both adverbs in 1Th 1:2. He seems to have had prayer lists. He never omitted the Romans.

Robertson: Rom 1:10 - -- If by any means now at length ( ei pōs ēdē pote ). A condition of the first class in the form of an indirect question (aim) or elliptical condi...

If by any means now at length ( ei pōs ēdē pote ).

A condition of the first class in the form of an indirect question (aim) or elliptical condition like Act 27:12 (Robertson, Grammar , p. 1024). Note the four particles together to express Paul’ s feelings of emotion that now at length somehow it may really come true.

Robertson: Rom 1:10 - -- I may be prospered ( euodōthēsomai ). First future passive indicative of euodoō for which verb see note on 1Co 16:2.

I may be prospered ( euodōthēsomai ).

First future passive indicative of euodoō for which verb see note on 1Co 16:2.

Robertson: Rom 1:10 - -- By the will of God ( en tōi thelēmati tou theou ). Paul’ s way lay "in"God’ s will.

By the will of God ( en tōi thelēmati tou theou ).

Paul’ s way lay "in"God’ s will.

Robertson: Rom 1:11 - -- Impart ( metadō ). Second aorist active subjunctive of metadidōmi , to share with one. See Luk 3:11; 1Th 2:8.

Impart ( metadō ).

Second aorist active subjunctive of metadidōmi , to share with one. See Luk 3:11; 1Th 2:8.

Robertson: Rom 1:11 - -- To the end ye may be established ( eis to stērichthēnai humas ). Final clause (common in Paul) with eis to and the first aorist passive infinit...

To the end ye may be established ( eis to stērichthēnai humas ).

Final clause (common in Paul) with eis to and the first aorist passive infinitive of stērizō for which verb see Luk 22:32; 1Th 3:3, 1Th 3:13.

Robertson: Rom 1:12 - -- That is ( touto de estin ). "An explanatory correction"(Denney). The de should not be ignored. Instead of saying that he had a spiritual gift for t...

That is ( touto de estin ).

"An explanatory correction"(Denney). The de should not be ignored. Instead of saying that he had a spiritual gift for them, he wishes to add that they also have one for him.

Robertson: Rom 1:12 - -- That I with you may be comforted ( sunparaklēthēnai en humin ). "My being comforted in you (en humin ) together (suṅ ) with you,"a mutual ble...

That I with you may be comforted ( sunparaklēthēnai en humin ).

"My being comforted in you (en humin ) together (suṅ ) with you,"a mutual blessing to each party (you and me).

Robertson: Rom 1:13 - -- Oftentimes I purposed ( pollakis proethemēn ). Second aorist middle of protithēmi , old verb to place, to propose to oneself, in N.T. only here, ...

Oftentimes I purposed ( pollakis proethemēn ).

Second aorist middle of protithēmi , old verb to place, to propose to oneself, in N.T. only here, Rom 3:25; Eph 1:9. See note on Act 19:21 for this purpose.

Robertson: Rom 1:13 - -- And was hindered ( kai ekōluthēn ). "But was hindered,"adversative use of kai .

And was hindered ( kai ekōluthēn ).

"But was hindered,"adversative use of kai .

Robertson: Rom 1:13 - -- That I might have some fruit ( hina tina karpon schō ). Second aorist (ingressive), active of echō , to have, and here means "might get (ingressi...

That I might have some fruit ( hina tina karpon schō ).

Second aorist (ingressive), active of echō , to have, and here means "might get (ingressive aorist) some fruit."

Robertson: Rom 1:14 - -- On debtor (opheiletēs ) see note on Gal 5:3. @@Both to Greeks and to Barbarians ( Hellēsin te kai barbarois ). The whole human race from the ...

On debtor (opheiletēs ) see note on Gal 5:3. @@Both to Greeks and to Barbarians ( Hellēsin te kai barbarois ).

The whole human race from the Greek point of view, Jews coming under barbarois . On this word see note on Act 28:2, Act 28:4; note on 1Co 14:11; and note on Col 3:11 (only N.T. instances). The Greeks called all others barbarians and the Jews termed all others Gentiles. Did Paul consider the Romans as Greeks? They had absorbed the Greek language and culture.

Robertson: Rom 1:15 - -- So as much as in me is I am ready ( houtō to kat' eme prothumon ). Literally, "Thus the according to me affair is ready"(prothumos , old adjective,...

So as much as in me is I am ready ( houtō to kat' eme prothumon ).

Literally, "Thus the according to me affair is ready"(prothumos , old adjective, pro , thumos ). It is an awkward idiom like to ex humōn in Rom 12:18. The plural ta kat' eme we find in Phi 1:12; Col 4:7; Eph 6:21.

Robertson: Rom 1:16 - -- It is the power of God ( dunamis theou estin ). This Paul knew by much experience. He had seen the dynamite of God at work.

It is the power of God ( dunamis theou estin ).

This Paul knew by much experience. He had seen the dynamite of God at work.

Robertson: Rom 1:16 - -- To the Jew first, and also to the Greek ( Ioudaiōi te prōton kai Hellēni ). Jesus had taught this (Joh 4:22; Joh 10:16; Luk 24:47; Act 1:8). Th...

To the Jew first, and also to the Greek ( Ioudaiōi te prōton kai Hellēni ).

Jesus had taught this (Joh 4:22; Joh 10:16; Luk 24:47; Act 1:8). The Jew is first in privilege and in penalty (Rom 2:9.). It is not certain that prōton is genuine, but it is in Rom 2:9.

Robertson: Rom 1:17 - -- For therein ( gar en autōi ). In the gospel (Rom 1:16) of which Paul is not ashamed.

For therein ( gar en autōi ).

In the gospel (Rom 1:16) of which Paul is not ashamed.

Robertson: Rom 1:17 - -- A righteousness of God ( dikaiosunē theou ). Subjective genitive, "a God kind of righteousness,"one that each must have and can obtain in no other ...

A righteousness of God ( dikaiosunē theou ).

Subjective genitive, "a God kind of righteousness,"one that each must have and can obtain in no other way save "from faith unto faith"(ek pisteōs eis pistin ), faith the starting point and faith the goal (Lightfoot).

Robertson: Rom 1:17 - -- Is revealed ( apokaluptetai ). It is a revelation from God, this God kind of righteousness, that man unaided could never have conceived or still less...

Is revealed ( apokaluptetai ).

It is a revelation from God, this God kind of righteousness, that man unaided could never have conceived or still less attained. In these words we have Paul’ s statement in his own way of the theme of the Epistle, the content of the gospel as Paul understands it. Every word is important: sōtērian (salvation), euaggelion (gospel), apokaluptetai (is revealed), dikaiosunē theou (righteousness of God), pistis (faith) and pisteuonti (believing). He grounds his position on Hab 2:4 (quoted also in Gal 3:11). By "righteousness"we shall see that Paul means both "justification"and "sanctification."It is important to get a clear idea of Paul’ s use of dikaiosunē here for it controls the thought throughout the Epistle. Jesus set up a higher standard of righteousness (dikaiosunē ) in the Sermon on the Mount than the Scribes and Pharisees taught and practised (Mat 5:20) and proves it in various items. Here Paul claims that in the gospel, taught by Jesus and by himself there is revealed a God kind of righteousness with two ideas in it (the righteousness that God has and that he bestows). It is an old word for quality from dikaios , a righteous man, and that from dikē , right or justice (called a goddess in Act 28:4), and that allied with deiknumi , to show, to point out. Other allied words are dikaioō , to declare or make dikaios (Rom 3:24, Rom 3:26), dikaiōma , that which is deemed dikaios (sentence or ordinance as in Rom 1:32; Rom 2:26; Rom 8:4), dikaiōsis , the act of declaring dikaios (only twice in N.T., Rom 4:25; Rom 5:18). Dikaiosunē and dikaioō are easy to render into English, though we use justice in distinction from righteousness and sanctification for the result that comes after justification (the setting one right with God). Paul is consistent and usually clear in his use of these great words.

Robertson: Rom 1:18 - -- For the wrath of God is revealed ( apokaluptetai gar orgē theou ). Note in Romans Paul’ s use of gar , now argumentative, now explanatory, now...

For the wrath of God is revealed ( apokaluptetai gar orgē theou ).

Note in Romans Paul’ s use of gar , now argumentative, now explanatory, now both as here. There is a parallel and antecedent revelation (see Rom 1:17) of God’ s wrath corresponding to the revelation of God’ s righteousness, this an unwritten revelation, but plainly made known. Orgē is from orgaō , to teem, to swell. It is the temper of God towards sin, not rage, but the wrath of reason and law (Shedd). The revelation of God’ s righteousness in the gospel was necessary because of the failure of men to attain it without it, for God’ s wrath justly rested upon all both Gentiles (Rom 1:18-32) and Jews (2:1-3:20).

Robertson: Rom 1:18 - -- Ungodliness ( asebeian ). Irreligion, want of reverence toward God, old word (cf. 2Ti 2:16).

Ungodliness ( asebeian ).

Irreligion, want of reverence toward God, old word (cf. 2Ti 2:16).

Robertson: Rom 1:18 - -- Unrighteousness ( adikian ). Lack (a privative and dikē ) of right conduct toward men, injustice (Rom 9:14; Luk 18:6). This follows naturally fr...

Unrighteousness ( adikian ).

Lack (a privative and dikē ) of right conduct toward men, injustice (Rom 9:14; Luk 18:6). This follows naturally from irreverence. The basis of ethical conduct rests on the nature of God and our attitude toward him, otherwise the law of the jungle (cf. Nietzsche, "might makes right").

Robertson: Rom 1:18 - -- Hold down the truth ( tēn alētheian katechontōn ). Truth (alētheia , alēthēs , from a privative and lēthō or lanthanō , to con...

Hold down the truth ( tēn alētheian katechontōn ).

Truth (alētheia , alēthēs , from a privative and lēthō or lanthanō , to conceal) is out in the open, but wicked men, so to speak, put it in a box and sit on the lid and "hold it down in unrighteousness."Their evil deeds conceal the open truth of God from men. Cf. 2Th 2:6. for this use of katechō , to hinder.

Robertson: Rom 1:19 - -- Because ( dioti ). Gives the reason (dia , hoti like our "for that") for the revelation of God’ s wrath.

Because ( dioti ).

Gives the reason (dia , hoti like our "for that") for the revelation of God’ s wrath.

Robertson: Rom 1:19 - -- That which may be known of God ( to gnōston tou theou ). Verbal adjective from ginōskō , either "the known"as elsewhere in N.T. (Act 1:19; Act ...

That which may be known of God ( to gnōston tou theou ).

Verbal adjective from ginōskō , either "the known"as elsewhere in N.T. (Act 1:19; Act 15:18, etc.) or "the knowable"as usual in ancient Greek, that is "the knowledge"(hē gnōsis ) of God. See Phi 3:8. Cf. same use of the verbal chrēston in Rom 2:4, ametatheton in Heb 6:17.

Robertson: Rom 1:19 - -- Manifest in them ( phaneron en autois ). In their hearts and consciences.

Manifest in them ( phaneron en autois ).

In their hearts and consciences.

Robertson: Rom 1:19 - -- God manifested ( ho theos ephanerōsen ). First aorist active indicative of phaneroō . Not mere tautology. See Rom 2:14-16.

God manifested ( ho theos ephanerōsen ).

First aorist active indicative of phaneroō . Not mere tautology. See Rom 2:14-16.

Robertson: Rom 1:20 - -- The invisible things of him ( ta aorata autou ). Another verbal adjective (a privative and horaō , to see), old word, either unseen or invisible ...

The invisible things of him ( ta aorata autou ).

Another verbal adjective (a privative and horaō , to see), old word, either unseen or invisible as here and elsewhere in N.T. (Col 1:15., etc.). The attributes of God’ s nature defined here as "his everlasting power and divinity"(hē te aidios autou dunamis kai theiotēs ). Aidios is for aeidios from aei (always), old word, in N.T. only here and Jud 1:6, common in Philo (zōē aidios ), elsewhere aiōnios . Theiotēs is from theios (from theos ) quality of theos and corresponds more to Latin divinitas from divus , divine. In Col 2:9 Paul uses theotēs (Latin deitas from deus ) deity , both old words and nowhere else in the N.T. Theotēs is Divine Personality, theiotēs , Divine Nature and properties (Sanday and Headlam).

Robertson: Rom 1:20 - -- Since the creation of the world ( apo ktiseōs kosmou ). He means by God and unto God as antecedent to and superior to the world (cf. Col 1:15. abou...

Since the creation of the world ( apo ktiseōs kosmou ).

He means by God and unto God as antecedent to and superior to the world (cf. Col 1:15. about Christ).

Robertson: Rom 1:20 - -- Are clearly seen ( kathoratai ). Present passive indicative of kathoraō (perfective use of katȧ ), old word, only here in N.T., with direct re...

Are clearly seen ( kathoratai ).

Present passive indicative of kathoraō (perfective use of katȧ ), old word, only here in N.T., with direct reference to aorata .

Robertson: Rom 1:20 - -- Being perceived ( nooumena ). Present passive participle of noeō , to use the nous (intellect).

Being perceived ( nooumena ).

Present passive participle of noeō , to use the nous (intellect).

Robertson: Rom 1:20 - -- That they may be without excuse ( eis to einai autous anapologētous ). More likely, "so that they are without excuse."The use of eis to and the i...

That they may be without excuse ( eis to einai autous anapologētous ).

More likely, "so that they are without excuse."The use of eis to and the infinitive (with accusative of general reference) for result like hōste is reasonably clear in the N.T. (Moulton, Prolegomena , p. 219; Robertson, Grammar , p. 1003). Anapologētous is another verbal with an from apologeomai . Old word, in N.T. only here and Rom 2:1 ("inexcusable"here).

Robertson: Rom 1:21 - -- Because that ( dioti ). As in Rom 1:19.

Because that ( dioti ).

As in Rom 1:19.

Robertson: Rom 1:21 - -- Knowing God ( gnontes ton theon ). Second aorist active participle of ginōskō , to know by personal experience. Definite statement that originall...

Knowing God ( gnontes ton theon ).

Second aorist active participle of ginōskō , to know by personal experience. Definite statement that originally men had some knowledge of God. No people, however degraded, have yet been found without some yearning after a god, a seeking to find the true God and get back to him as Paul said in Athens (Act 17:27).

Robertson: Rom 1:21 - -- Glorified not as God ( ouch hōs theon edoxasan ). They knew more than they did. This is the reason for the condemnation of the heathen (Rom 2:12-16...

Glorified not as God ( ouch hōs theon edoxasan ).

They knew more than they did. This is the reason for the condemnation of the heathen (Rom 2:12-16), the failure to do what they know.

Robertson: Rom 1:21 - -- Their senseless heart ( hē asunetos autōn kardia ). Kardia is the most comprehensive term for all our faculties whether feeling (Rom 9:2), will...

Their senseless heart ( hē asunetos autōn kardia ).

Kardia is the most comprehensive term for all our faculties whether feeling (Rom 9:2), will (1Co 4:5), intellect (Rom 10:6). It may be the home of the Holy Spirit (Rom 5:5) or of evil desires (Rom 1:24). See notes on Mar 7:21. for list of vices that come "out of the heart."Asunetos is a verbal adjective from suniēmi , to put together, and a privative, unintelligent, not able to put together the manifest evidence about God (Rom 1:20). So darkness settled down on their hearts (eskotisthē , first aorist ingressive passive of skotizō , to darken).

Robertson: Rom 1:22 - -- Professing themselves to be wise ( phaskontes einai sophoi ). Sophoi is predicate nominative with einai in indirect discourse agreeing with phask...

Professing themselves to be wise ( phaskontes einai sophoi ).

Sophoi is predicate nominative with einai in indirect discourse agreeing with phaskontes (old verb, from phēmi , to say, rare in N.T.) in case and number according to regular Greek idiom (Robertson, Grammar , p. 1038).

Robertson: Rom 1:22 - -- Became vain ( emataiōthēsan ). Ingressive first aorist passive indicative of mataioō from mataios (empty). Empty reasonings as often today.

Became vain ( emataiōthēsan ).

Ingressive first aorist passive indicative of mataioō from mataios (empty). Empty reasonings as often today.

Robertson: Rom 1:22 - -- Became fools ( emōranthēsan ). Ingressive first aorist passive of mōrainō , to be a fool, old word from mōros , a fool. An oxymoron or shar...

Became fools ( emōranthēsan ).

Ingressive first aorist passive of mōrainō , to be a fool, old word from mōros , a fool. An oxymoron or sharp saying, true and one that cuts to the bone.

Robertson: Rom 1:22 - -- For the likeness of an image ( en homoiōmati eikonos ). Both words, "a likeness which consists in an image or copy"(Lightfoot). See note on Phi 2:7...

For the likeness of an image ( en homoiōmati eikonos ).

Both words, "a likeness which consists in an image or copy"(Lightfoot). See note on Phi 2:7 for "likeness of men"and Col 1:15 for "image of God."Paul shows indignant contempt for these grotesque efforts to present pictures of a deity that had been lost (Denney). Why is it that heathen images of gods in the form of men and beasts are so horrible to look upon?

Robertson: Rom 1:24 - -- Wherefore ( dio ). Paul’ s inexorable logic. See it also in Rom 1:26 with the same verb and in Rom 1:28 kai like "and so."

Wherefore ( dio ).

Paul’ s inexorable logic. See it also in Rom 1:26 with the same verb and in Rom 1:28 kai like "and so."

Robertson: Rom 1:24 - -- God gave them up ( paredōken autous ho theos ). First aorist active indicative of paradidōmi , old and common verb to hand over (beside, para ) ...

God gave them up ( paredōken autous ho theos ).

First aorist active indicative of paradidōmi , old and common verb to hand over (beside, para ) to one’ s power as in Mat 4:12. These people had already wilfully deserted God who merely left them to their own self-determination and self-destruction, part of the price of man’ s moral freedom. Paul refers to this stage and state of man in Act 17:30 by "overlooked"(huperidōn ). The withdrawal of God’ s restraint sent men deeper down. Three times Paul uses paredōken here (Rom 1:24, Rom 1:26, Rom 1:28), not three stages in the giving over, but a repetition of the same withdrawal. The words sound to us like clods on the coffin as God leaves men to work their own wicked will.

Robertson: Rom 1:24 - -- That their bodies should be dishonoured ( tou atimazesthai ta sōmata autōn ). Contemplated result expressed by tou (genitive article) and the p...

That their bodies should be dishonoured ( tou atimazesthai ta sōmata autōn ).

Contemplated result expressed by tou (genitive article) and the passive infinitive atimazesthai (from atimos , a privative and timos , dishonoured) with the accusative of general reference. Christians had a new sense of dignity for the body (1Th 4:4; 1Co 6:13). Heathenism left its stamp on the bodies of men and women.

Robertson: Rom 1:25 - -- Exchanged ( metēllaxan ). First aorist active indicative of metallassō , old word for exchanging trade, only here and Rom 1:26 in N.T. What a bar...

Exchanged ( metēllaxan ).

First aorist active indicative of metallassō , old word for exchanging trade, only here and Rom 1:26 in N.T. What a bargain they made, "the truth of God for (en ) the (tōi ) lie.""The price of mythology"(Bengel).

Robertson: Rom 1:25 - -- Worshipped ( esebasthēsan ). First aorist passive (used transitively) of sebazomai , old verb, used in late Greek like sebomai , to worship.

Worshipped ( esebasthēsan ).

First aorist passive (used transitively) of sebazomai , old verb, used in late Greek like sebomai , to worship.

Robertson: Rom 1:25 - -- Rather than the Creator ( para ton ktisanta ). Placed side by side (para , the Creator and the creature, ktisis ) they preferred the creature.

Rather than the Creator ( para ton ktisanta ).

Placed side by side (para , the Creator and the creature, ktisis ) they preferred the creature.

Robertson: Rom 1:25 - -- Who is blessed forever. Amen ( hos estin eulogētoṡ Amēn ). One of Paul’ s doxologies which may come at any moment when he is greatly stirr...

Who is blessed forever. Amen ( hos estin eulogētoṡ Amēn ).

One of Paul’ s doxologies which may come at any moment when he is greatly stirred, as in Rom 9:5. Eulogētos is verbal of eulogeō .

Robertson: Rom 1:26 - -- Unto vile passions ( eis pathē atimias ). Unto passions of dishonour. Pathos , old word from paschō , to experience, originally meant any feeling...

Unto vile passions ( eis pathē atimias ).

Unto passions of dishonour. Pathos , old word from paschō , to experience, originally meant any feeling whether good or bad, but in N.T. always in bad sense as here, 1Th 4:5; Col 3:5 (only N.T. examples).

Robertson: Rom 1:26 - -- That which is against nature ( tēn para phusin ). The degradation of sex is what Paul here notes as one of the results of heathenism (the loss of G...

That which is against nature ( tēn para phusin ).

The degradation of sex is what Paul here notes as one of the results of heathenism (the loss of God in the life of man). They passed by the Creator.

Robertson: Rom 1:27 - -- Turned ( exekauthēsan ). First aorist passive indicative, causative aorist, of ekkaiō , old verb, to burn out, to set on fire, to inflame with an...

Turned ( exekauthēsan ).

First aorist passive indicative, causative aorist, of ekkaiō , old verb, to burn out, to set on fire, to inflame with anger or lust. Here only in N.T.

Robertson: Rom 1:27 - -- Lust ( orexei ). Only here in N.T.

Lust ( orexei ).

Only here in N.T.

Robertson: Rom 1:27 - -- Unseemliness ( aschēmosunēn ). Old word from aschēmon (deformed). In N.T. only here and Rev 16:15.

Unseemliness ( aschēmosunēn ).

Old word from aschēmon (deformed). In N.T. only here and Rev 16:15.

Robertson: Rom 1:27 - -- Recompense ( antimisthian ). See note on 2Co 6:13 for only other N.T. instance of this late Pauline word, there in good sense, here in bad.

Recompense ( antimisthian ).

See note on 2Co 6:13 for only other N.T. instance of this late Pauline word, there in good sense, here in bad.

Robertson: Rom 1:27 - -- Which was due ( hēn edei ). Imperfect active for obligation still on them coming down from the past. This debt will be paid in full (apolambanontes...

Which was due ( hēn edei ).

Imperfect active for obligation still on them coming down from the past. This debt will be paid in full (apolambanontes , pay back as in Luk 6:34, and due as in Luk 23:41). Nature will attend to that in their own bodies and souls.

Robertson: Rom 1:28 - -- And even as they refused ( kai kathōs ouk edokimasan ). "And even as they rejected"after trial just as dokimazō is used of testing coins. They ...

And even as they refused ( kai kathōs ouk edokimasan ).

"And even as they rejected"after trial just as dokimazō is used of testing coins. They tested God at first and turned aside from him.

Robertson: Rom 1:28 - -- Knowledge ( epignōsei ). Full knowledge (epi additional, gnōsis ). They had a dim memory that was a caricature.

Knowledge ( epignōsei ).

Full knowledge (epi additional, gnōsis ). They had a dim memory that was a caricature.

Robertson: Rom 1:28 - -- Unto a reprobate mind ( eis adokimon noun ). Play on ouk edokimasan . They rejected God and God rejected their mental attitude and gave them over (Ro...

Unto a reprobate mind ( eis adokimon noun ).

Play on ouk edokimasan . They rejected God and God rejected their mental attitude and gave them over (Rom 1:24, Rom 1:26, Rom 1:28). See this adjective already in 1Co 9:27; 2Co 13:5-7. Like an old abandoned building, the home of bats and snakes, left "to do those things which are not fitting"(poiein ta mē kathēkonta ), like the night clubs of modern cities, the dives and dens of the underworld, without God and in the darkness of unrestrained animal impulses. This was a technical term with Stoics (2 Maccabees 6:4).

Robertson: Rom 1:29 - -- Being called with ( peplērōmenous ). Perfect passive participle of the common verb plēroō , state of completion, "filled to the brim with"fou...

Being called with ( peplērōmenous ).

Perfect passive participle of the common verb plēroō , state of completion, "filled to the brim with"four vices in the associative instrumental case (adikiāi , unrighteousness as in Rom 1:18, ponēriāi , active wickedness as in Mar 7:22, pleonexiāi , covetousness as in 1Th 2:5; Luk 12:15, kakiāi , maliciousness or inward viciousness of disposition as in 1Co 5:8). Note asyndeton, no connective in the lists in Rom 1:29-31. Dramatic effect. The order of these words varies in the MSS. and porneiāi , fornication, is not genuine here (absent in Aleph A B C).

Robertson: Rom 1:29 - -- Full of ( mestous ). Paul changes from participle to adjective. Old adjective, rare in the N.T., like mestoō , to fill full (only in Act 2:13 in N....

Full of ( mestous ).

Paul changes from participle to adjective. Old adjective, rare in the N.T., like mestoō , to fill full (only in Act 2:13 in N.T.), stuffed full of (with genitive). Five substantives in the genitive (phthonou , envy, as in Gal 5:21, phonou , murder, and so a paronomasia or combination with phthonou , of like sounding words, eridos , strife, as in 2Co 12:16, kakoēthias , malignity, and here only in N.T. though old word from kakoēthēs and that from kakos and ēthos , a tendency to put a bad construction on things, depravity of heart and malicious disposition.

Robertson: Rom 1:30 - -- Paul changes the construction again to twelve substantives and adjectives that give vivid touches to this composite photograph of the God abandoned so...

Paul changes the construction again to twelve substantives and adjectives that give vivid touches to this composite photograph of the God abandoned soul. @@Whisperers ( psithuristas ).

Old word from psithurizō , to speak into the ear, to speak secretly, an onomatopoetic word like psithurismos (2Co 12:20) and only here in N.T.

Robertson: Rom 1:30 - -- Backbiters ( katalalous ). Found nowhere else except in Hermas, compound like katalaleō , to talk back (Jam 4:11), and katalalia , talking back (2C...

Backbiters ( katalalous ).

Found nowhere else except in Hermas, compound like katalaleō , to talk back (Jam 4:11), and katalalia , talking back (2Co 12:20), talkers back whether secretly or openly.

Robertson: Rom 1:30 - -- Hateful to God ( theostugeis ). Old word from theos and stugeō . All the ancient examples take it in the passive sense and so probably here. So s...

Hateful to God ( theostugeis ).

Old word from theos and stugeō . All the ancient examples take it in the passive sense and so probably here. So stugētos (Tit 3:13). Vulgate has deo odibiles .

Robertson: Rom 1:30 - -- Insolent ( hubristas ). Old word for agent from hubrizō , to give insult to, here alone in N.T. save 1Ti 1:13.

Insolent ( hubristas ).

Old word for agent from hubrizō , to give insult to, here alone in N.T. save 1Ti 1:13.

Robertson: Rom 1:30 - -- Haughty ( huperēphanous ). From huper and phainomai , to appear above others, arrogant in thought and conduct, "stuck up."

Haughty ( huperēphanous ).

From huper and phainomai , to appear above others, arrogant in thought and conduct, "stuck up."

Robertson: Rom 1:30 - -- Boastful ( alazonas ). From alē , wandering. Empty pretenders, swaggerers, braggarts.

Boastful ( alazonas ).

From alē , wandering. Empty pretenders, swaggerers, braggarts.

Robertson: Rom 1:30 - -- Inventors of evil things ( epheuretas kakōn ). Inventors of new forms of vice as Nero was. Tacitus ( Ann. IV. ii) describes Sejanus as facinorum o...

Inventors of evil things ( epheuretas kakōn ).

Inventors of new forms of vice as Nero was. Tacitus ( Ann. IV. ii) describes Sejanus as facinorum omnium repertor and Virgil ( Aen. ii. 163) scelerum inventor .

Robertson: Rom 1:30 - -- Disobedient to parents ( goneusin apeitheis ). Cf. 1Ti 1:9; 2Ti 3:2. An ancient and a modern trait.

Disobedient to parents ( goneusin apeitheis ).

Cf. 1Ti 1:9; 2Ti 3:2. An ancient and a modern trait.

Robertson: Rom 1:31 - -- Without understanding ( asunetous ). Same word in Rom 1:21.

Without understanding ( asunetous ).

Same word in Rom 1:21.

Robertson: Rom 1:31 - -- Covenant-breakers ( asunthetous ). Another paronomasia or pun. A privative and verbal sunthetos from suntithēmi , to put together. Old word, co...

Covenant-breakers ( asunthetous ).

Another paronomasia or pun. A privative and verbal sunthetos from suntithēmi , to put together. Old word, common in lxx (Jer 3:7), men "false to their engagements"(Sanday and Headlam), who treat covenants as "a scrap of paper."

Robertson: Rom 1:31 - -- Without natural affection ( astorgous ). Late word, a privative and storgē , love of kindred. In N.T. only here and 2Ti 3:3.

Without natural affection ( astorgous ).

Late word, a privative and storgē , love of kindred. In N.T. only here and 2Ti 3:3.

Robertson: Rom 1:31 - -- Unmerciful ( aneleēmonas ). From a privative and eleēmōn , merciful. Late word, only here in N.T. Some MSS. add aspondous , implacable, from ...

Unmerciful ( aneleēmonas ).

From a privative and eleēmōn , merciful. Late word, only here in N.T. Some MSS. add aspondous , implacable, from 2Ti 3:3. It is a terrible picture of the effects of sin on the lives of men and women. The late Dr. R. H. Graves of Canton, China, said that a Chinaman who got hold of this chapter declared that Paul could not have written it, but only a modern missionary who had been to China. It is drawn to the life because Paul knew Pagan Graeco-Roman civilization.

Robertson: Rom 1:32 - -- The ordinance of God ( to dikaiōma tou theou ). The heathen knows that God condemns such evil practices.

The ordinance of God ( to dikaiōma tou theou ).

The heathen knows that God condemns such evil practices.

Robertson: Rom 1:32 - -- But also consent with them ( alla kai suneudokousin ). Late verb for hearty approval as in Luk 11:48; Act 8:1; 1Co 7:12. It is a tragedy of American ...

But also consent with them ( alla kai suneudokousin ).

Late verb for hearty approval as in Luk 11:48; Act 8:1; 1Co 7:12. It is a tragedy of American city government that so many of the officials are proven to be hand in glove with the underworld of law-breakers.

Vincent: Rom 1:2 - -- Had promised afore ( προεπηγγείλατο ) Only here in the New Testament. Rev., He promised afore . Paul's Old Testament trainin...

Had promised afore ( προεπηγγείλατο )

Only here in the New Testament. Rev., He promised afore . Paul's Old Testament training is manifest. Naturally, in beginning the more precise description of the new revelation, he refers first to its connection with ancient prophecy. The verb ἐπαγγέλλομαι ; means more than to proclaim . It occurs frequently, and always in the sense of profess or promise . See Mar 14:11; Act 7:5; 1Ti 2:10; 1Ti 6:21.

Vincent: Rom 1:2 - -- Prophets Not limited to the prophets proper, but including all who, in the Old Testament, have prophesied the Gospel - Moses, David, etc. Compare...

Prophets

Not limited to the prophets proper, but including all who, in the Old Testament, have prophesied the Gospel - Moses, David, etc. Compare Heb 1:1.

Vincent: Rom 1:2 - -- In the holy scriptures ( ἐν γραφαῖς ἁγίαις ) Or, more strictly, in holy writings . The scriptures would require the...

In the holy scriptures ( ἐν γραφαῖς ἁγίαις )

Or, more strictly, in holy writings . The scriptures would require the article. See on Joh 5:47; see on Joh 2:22. Here again the absence of the article denotes the qualitative character of the phrase - books which are holy as conveying God's revelations. On ἅγιος holy , see on Act 26:10. This is the only passage in which it is applied to scriptures.

Vincent: Rom 1:3 - -- Concerning His son Connect with promised afore . Christ is the great personal object to which the promise referred.

Concerning His son

Connect with promised afore . Christ is the great personal object to which the promise referred.

Vincent: Rom 1:4 - -- Declared ( ὁρισθέντος ) Rev., in margin, determined . The same verb as in the compound separated in Rom 1:1. Bengel says that it...

Declared ( ὁρισθέντος )

Rev., in margin, determined . The same verb as in the compound separated in Rom 1:1. Bengel says that it expresses more than " separated," since one of a number is separated, but only one is defined or declared . Compare Act 10:42; Act 17:31. It means to designate one for something , to nominate , to instate . There is an antithesis between born (Rom 1:3) and declared . As respected Christ's earthly descent, He was born like other men. As respected His divine essence, He was declared . The idea is that of Christ's instatement or establishment in the rank and dignity of His divine sonship with a view to the conviction of men. This was required by His previous humiliation, and was accomplished by His resurrection, which not only manifested or demonstrated what He was, but wrought a real transformation in His mode of being. Compare Act 2:36; " God made ," etc.

Vincent: Rom 1:4 - -- With power ( ἐν δυνάμει ) Lit., in power. Construe with was declared . He was declared or instated mightily ; in a striki...

With power ( ἐν δυνάμει )

Lit., in power. Construe with was declared . He was declared or instated mightily ; in a striking , triumphant manner , through His resurrection.

Vincent: Rom 1:4 - -- Spirit of holiness In contrast with according to the flesh . The reference is not to the Holy Spirit, who is nowhere designated by this ph...

Spirit of holiness

In contrast with according to the flesh . The reference is not to the Holy Spirit, who is nowhere designated by this phrase, but to the spirit of Christ as the seat of the divine nature belonging to His person. As God is spirit, the divine nature of Christ is spirit, and its characteristic quality is holiness.

Vincent: Rom 1:4 - -- Resurrection from the dead ( ἀναστάσεως νεκρῶν ) Wrong, since this would require the preposition ἐκ from . Rev., corre...

Resurrection from the dead ( ἀναστάσεως νεκρῶν )

Wrong, since this would require the preposition ἐκ from . Rev., correctly, of the dead. Though this resurrection is here represented as actually realized in one individual only, the phrase, as everywhere in the New Testament, signifies the resurrection of the dead absolutely and generically - of all the dead, as exemplified, included, and involved in the resurrection of Christ. See on Phi 3:11.

Vincent: Rom 1:5 - -- We have received ( ἐλάβομεν ) Aorist tense. Rev., we received . The categorical plural, referring to Paul, and not including the o...

We have received ( ἐλάβομεν )

Aorist tense. Rev., we received . The categorical plural, referring to Paul, and not including the other apostles, since the succeeding phrase, among all the nations , points to himself alone as the apostle to the Gentiles.

Vincent: Rom 1:5 - -- Grace and apostleship Grace , the general gift bestowed on all believers: apostleship , the special manifestation of grace to Paul. The connect...

Grace and apostleship

Grace , the general gift bestowed on all believers: apostleship , the special manifestation of grace to Paul. The connecting καὶ and , has the force of and in particular . Compare Rom 15:15, Rom 15:16.

Vincent: Rom 1:5 - -- For obedience to the faith ( εἰς ὑπακοὴν πίστεως ) Rev., unto obedience of faith . Unto marks the object of the...

For obedience to the faith ( εἰς ὑπακοὴν πίστεως )

Rev., unto obedience of faith . Unto marks the object of the grace and apostleship: in order to bring about . Obedience of faith is the obedience which characterizes and proceeds from faith.

Vincent: Rom 1:5 - -- Nations ( ἔθνεσιν ) Or Gentiles . Not geographically, contrasting the inhabitants of the world, Jew and Gentile, with the Jews strict...

Nations ( ἔθνεσιν )

Or Gentiles . Not geographically, contrasting the inhabitants of the world, Jew and Gentile, with the Jews strictly so called, dwelling in Palestine, but Gentiles distinctively, for whom Paul's apostleship was specially instituted. See on Luk 2:32, and compare note on 1Pe 2:9.

Vincent: Rom 1:6 - -- Ye also As Romans among other Gentiles: not, called as I am called.

Ye also

As Romans among other Gentiles: not, called as I am called.

Vincent: Rom 1:7 - -- In Rome ( ἐν Ῥώμῃ ) The words are omitted in a MS. Of the tenth or eleventh century, and in a cursive of the eleventh or twelfth. T...

In Rome ( ἐν Ῥώμῃ )

The words are omitted in a MS. Of the tenth or eleventh century, and in a cursive of the eleventh or twelfth. The words ἐν Ἑφέσῳ in Ephesus , are also omitted from Eph 1:1, by two of the oldest MSS. On which fact has arisen the theory that the Ephesian Epistle was encyclical , or addressed to a circle of churches, and not merely to the church at Ephesus. This theory has been very widely received. With this has been combined the omission of in Rome from the Roman Epistle, and the attempt has been made to show that the Roman Epistle was likewise encyclical, and was sent to Ephesus, Thessalonica, and possibly to some other churches. Archdeacon Farrar advocates this view in " The Expositon," first ser., 9, 211; and also in his " Life and Work of Paul," ii., 170. This theory is used to defend the view which places the doxology of Rom 16:25-27 at the end of ch. 14. See note there.

Vincent: Rom 1:7 - -- Called to be saints ( κλητοῖς ἁγίοις ) Or, saints by way of call . See on called to be an apostle , Rom 1:1....

Called to be saints ( κλητοῖς ἁγίοις )

Or, saints by way of call . See on called to be an apostle , Rom 1:1. It is asserted that they are what they are called . The term ἅγιοι saints is applied to Christians in three senses in theNew Testament. 1, As members of a visible and local community (Act 9:32, Act 9:41; Act 26:10); 2, as members of a spiritual community (1Co 1:2; Col 3:12); 3, as individually holy (Eph 1:18; Col 1:12; Rev 13:10).

Vincent: Rom 1:8 - -- First ( πρῶτον μὲν ) Not above all , but in the first place . The form of the phrase leads us to expect a succeeding claus...

First ( πρῶτον μὲν )

Not above all , but in the first place . The form of the phrase leads us to expect a succeeding clause introduced by secondly or next ; but this is omitted in the fullness and rapidity of Paul's thought, which so often makes him negligent of the balance of his clauses.

Vincent: Rom 1:8 - -- Through Jesus Christ As the medium of his thanksgiving: " As one who is present to his grateful thoughts; in so far, namely, as that for which he...

Through Jesus Christ

As the medium of his thanksgiving: " As one who is present to his grateful thoughts; in so far, namely, as that for which he thanks God is vividly perceived and felt by him to have been brought about through Christ." Compare Rom 7:25; Col 3:17; Eph 5:20. In penitence and in thanksgiving alike, Jesus Christ is the one mediator through whom we have access to God.

Vincent: Rom 1:8 - -- For you all ( περὶ πάντων ὑμῶν ) The preposition means rather concerning , about .

For you all ( περὶ πάντων ὑμῶν )

The preposition means rather concerning , about .

Vincent: Rom 1:8 - -- Is proclaimed ( καταγγέλλεται ) The different compounds of the simple verb ἀγγέλλω to announce , are interesting. Th...

Is proclaimed ( καταγγέλλεται )

The different compounds of the simple verb ἀγγέλλω to announce , are interesting. The simple verb occurs only at Joh 20:18. Ἁναγγέλλειν is to report with the additional idea of bringing tidings up to or back to the person receiving them. So Joh 5:15. The impotent man brought back information to the Jews. Compare Mar 5:14. So Christ will send the Comforter, and He will bring back to the disciples tidings of things to come. Joh 16:13-15. See Act 14:27; 2Co 7:7; 1Pe 1:12.

Ἁπαγγέλλειν is to announce with a reference to the source from (ἀπό ) which the message comes So Mat 2:8; Act 12:14. Compare Luk 7:22; Luk 8:34, Act 5:22.

Καταγγέλλειν is to proclaim with authority, as commissioned to spread the tidings throughout , down among those that hear them, with the included idea of celebrating or commending . So here. Compare Act 16:21; Act 17:3. Thus in ἀναγγέλλειν the recipient of the news is contemplated; in ἀπαγγέλλειν the source ; in καταγγέλλειν the relation of the bearer and hearer of the message. The first is found mostly in John, Mark, and Acts; the second in the Synoptists and Acts; the third only. in the Acts and Paul.

Vincent: Rom 1:8 - -- Throughout the whole world Hyperbolical, but according with the position of the metropolitan church. Compare 1Th 1:8.

Throughout the whole world

Hyperbolical, but according with the position of the metropolitan church. Compare 1Th 1:8.

Vincent: Rom 1:9 - -- I serve ( λατρεύω ) See on Luk 1:74. The word was used in a special sense to denote the service rendered to Jehovah by the Israelites as...

I serve ( λατρεύω )

See on Luk 1:74. The word was used in a special sense to denote the service rendered to Jehovah by the Israelites as His peculiar people. See Rom 9:4; Act 26:7. Compare Heb 9:1, Heb 9:6. As in his Philippian letter, Paul here appropriates the Jewish word for the spiritual Christian service. See on Phi 3:3.

Vincent: Rom 1:10 - -- I might have a prosperous journey ( εὐοδωθήσομαι ) Rev., I may be prospered . The A.V. brings out the etymological force o...

I might have a prosperous journey ( εὐοδωθήσομαι )

Rev., I may be prospered . The A.V. brings out the etymological force of the word. See on 3Jo 1:2.

Vincent: Rom 1:11 - -- Some spiritual gift ( τι χάρισμα ) Note the modesty in some . Χάρισμα is a gift of grace (χάρις ) a favor rece...

Some spiritual gift ( τι χάρισμα )

Note the modesty in some . Χάρισμα is a gift of grace (χάρις ) a favor received without merit on the recipient's part. Paul uses it both in this ordinary sense (Rom 5:15, Rom 5:16; Rom 6:23), and in a special, technical sense, denoting extraordinary powers bestowed upon individuals by the Holy Spirit, such as gifts of healing, speaking with tongues, prophecy, etc. See Rom 12:6; 1Co 1:7; 1Co 12:4, 1Co 12:31; 1Pe 4:10. In 1Ti 4:14; 2Ti 1:6, it is used of the sum of the powers requisite for the discharge of the office of an evangelist.

Vincent: Rom 1:11 - -- To the end ye may be established ( εἰς τὸ στηριχθῆναι ὑμᾶς ) Not that I may establish you . The modest use...

To the end ye may be established ( εἰς τὸ στηριχθῆναι ὑμᾶς )

Not that I may establish you . The modest use of the passive leaves out of view Paul's personal part. For established , see on Luk 22:32; see on 1Pe 5:10. The word shows that he had in view their christian character no less than their instruction in doctrine.

Vincent: Rom 1:12 - -- That is ( τοῦου δέ ἐστιν ) The A.V. and Rev. omit δέ however , thus losing an important shade of meaning. That is is n...

That is ( τοῦου δέ ἐστιν )

The A.V. and Rev. omit δέ however , thus losing an important shade of meaning. That is is not merely an explanatory repetition of the preceding phrase, but modifies the idea contained in it. It is a modest and delicate explanation, by which Paul guards himself against the possible appearance of underestimating the christian standpoint of his readers, to whom he was still, personally, a stranger. Hence he would say: " I desire to impart some spiritual gift that you may be strengthened, not that I would imply a reproach of weakness or instability; but that I desire for you the strengthening of which I stand in need along with you, and which I hope may be wrought in us both by our personal intercourse and our mutual faith."

Vincent: Rom 1:13 - -- I would not have you ignorant An emphatic expression calling special attention to what follows. Compare 1Co 10:1; 1Th 4:13.

I would not have you ignorant

An emphatic expression calling special attention to what follows. Compare 1Co 10:1; 1Th 4:13.

Vincent: Rom 1:13 - -- Have some fruit ( τινὰ καρπὸν σχῶ ) For the phrase, compare Rom 6:22. A metaphorical statement of what is stated literally in ...

Have some fruit ( τινὰ καρπὸν σχῶ )

For the phrase, compare Rom 6:22. A metaphorical statement of what is stated literally in Rom 1:11. Not equivalent to bear fruit , but to gather as a harvest. Compare Joh 4:36; Phi 1:22; Col 1:6. Fruit is a favorite metaphor with Paul. He uses it in both a good and a bad sense. See Rom 7:4, Rom 7:5; Rom 6:22; Gal 5:22.

Vincent: Rom 1:14 - -- Debtor ( ὀφειλέτης ) All men, without distinction of nation or culture, are Paul's creditors, " He owes them his life, his person, i...

Debtor ( ὀφειλέτης )

All men, without distinction of nation or culture, are Paul's creditors, " He owes them his life, his person, in virtue of the grace bestowed upon him, and of the office which he has received." (Godet).

Vincent: Rom 1:14 - -- Greeks - Barbarians Gentiles without distinction. Paul takes the conventional Greek division of all mankind into Greeks and non-Greeks. See on Ac...

Greeks - Barbarians

Gentiles without distinction. Paul takes the conventional Greek division of all mankind into Greeks and non-Greeks. See on Act 6:1. The question whether he includes the Romans among the Greeks or the Barbarians, is irrelevant.

Vincent: Rom 1:15 - -- To you also that are in Rome To you refers to the christian Church, not to the population generally. In every verse, from Rom 1:6 to Rom 1:13...

To you also that are in Rome

To you refers to the christian Church, not to the population generally. In every verse, from Rom 1:6 to Rom 1:13, ὑμεῖς you refers to the Church.

Vincent: Rom 1:16 - -- For ( γὰρ ) Marking the transition from the introduction to the treatise. " I am ready to preach at Rome, for , though I might seem to be d...

For ( γὰρ )

Marking the transition from the introduction to the treatise. " I am ready to preach at Rome, for , though I might seem to be deterred by the contempt in which the Gospel is held, and by the prospect of my own humiliation as its preacher, I am not ashamed of it." The transition occupies Rom 1:16, Rom 1:17.

Vincent: Rom 1:16 - -- The Gospel Omit of Christ .

The Gospel

Omit of Christ .

Vincent: Rom 1:16 - -- Power ( δύναμις ) Not merely a powerful means in God's hands, but in itself a divine energy.

Power ( δύναμις )

Not merely a powerful means in God's hands, but in itself a divine energy.

Vincent: Rom 1:16 - -- First Not principally , nor in preference to the Greek; but first in point of time . Compare Joh 4:22; Rom 3:1; Rom 9:1; Mat 15:24.

First

Not principally , nor in preference to the Greek; but first in point of time . Compare Joh 4:22; Rom 3:1; Rom 9:1; Mat 15:24.

Vincent: Rom 1:17 - -- For therein is the righteousness of God revealed ( δικαιοσύνη γὰρ Θεοῦ ἐν ἀυτῷ ἀποκαλύπτεται )....

For therein is the righteousness of God revealed ( δικαιοσύνη γὰρ Θεοῦ ἐν ἀυτῷ ἀποκαλύπτεται ).

Rev., more correctly, therein is revealed a righteousness of God . The absence of the article denotes that a peculiar kind of righteousness is meant. This statement contains the subject of the epistle: Righteousness is by faith . The subject is not stated formally nor independently, but as a proof that the Gospel is a power, etc.

This word δικαιοσύνη righteousness , and its kindred words δίκαιος righteous , and δικαιόω to make righteous , play so important a part in this epistle that it is desirable to fix their meaning as accurately as possible.

Classical Usage. In the Greek classics there appears an eternal, divine, unwritten principle of right, dwelling in the human consciousness, shaping both the physical and the moral ordering of the world, and personified as Themis (Θέμις ). This word is used as a common noun in the phrase θέμις ἐστὶ it is right (fundamentally and eternally), like the Latin fas est . Thus Homer, of Penelope mourning for Ulysses, θέμις ἐστὶ γυναικός it is the sacred obligation of the wife (founded in her natural relation to her husband, ordained of heaven) to mourn (" Odyssey," 14, 130). So Antigone appeals to the unwritten law against the barbarity of refusing burial to her brother.

" Nor did I deem thy edicts strong enough,

That thou, a mortal man, shouldst overpass

The unwritten laws of God that know not change."

Sophocles, " Antigone ," 453-455.

See, also, " Odyssey," 14, 91; Aristophanes, " Clouds," 140; " Antigone," 880.

This divine ordering requires that men should be shown or pointed to that which is according to it - a definite circle of duties and obligations which constitute right (δίκη ). Thus what is δίκαιος righteous , is properly the expression of the eternal Themis . While δίκη and θέμις are not to be distinguished as human and divine, δίκη has a more distinctively human, personal character, and comes into sharper definition. It introduces the distinction between absolute right and power. It imposes the recognition of a moral principle over against an absolutely constraining natural force. The conception of δίκη is strongly moral. Δίκαιος is right ; δικαιοσύνη is rightness as characterizing the entire being of man.

There is a religious background to the pagan conception. In the Homeric poems morality stands in a relation, loose and undeveloped indeed, but none the less real, to religion. This appears in the use of the oath in compacts; in the fear of the wrath of heaven for omission of sacrifices; in regarding refusal of hospitality as an offense against Zeus, the patron of strangers and suppliants. Certain tribes which are fierce and uncivilized are nevertheless described as δίκαιοι righteous . " The characteristic stand-point of the Homeric ethics is that the spheres of law, of morals, and of religion are by no means separate, but lie side by side in undeveloped unity." (Nagelsbach).

In later Greek literature this conception advances, in some instances, far toward the christian ideal; as in the fourth book of Plato's " Laws," where he asserts that God holds in His hand the beginning, middle, and end of all things; that justice always follows Him, and punishes those who fall short of His laws. Those who would be dear to God must be like Him. Without holiness no man is accepted of God.

Nevertheless, however clearly the religious background and sanction of morality may be recognized, it is apparent that the basis of right is found, very largely, in established social usage. The word ethics points first to what is established by custom . While with Mr. Grote we must admit the peculiar emphasis on the individual in the Homeric poems, we cannot help observing a certain influence of social sentiment on morals. While there are cases like the suitors, Paris and Helen, where public opinion imposes no moral check, there are others where the force of public opinion is clearly visible, such as Penelope and Nausicaa. The Homeric view of homicide reveals no relation between moral sentiment and divine enactment. Murder is a breach of social law, a private and civil wrong, entailing no loss of character. Its penalty is a satisfaction to the feelings of friends, or a compensation for lost services.

Later, we find this social aspect of morality even more strongly emphasized. " The city becomes the central and paramount source of obligation. The great, impersonal authority called 'the Laws' stands out separately, both as guide and sanction, distinct from religious duty or private sympathy" (Grote). Socrates is charged with impiety because he does not believe in the gods of the state, and Socrates himself agrees that that man does right who obeys what the citizens have agreed should be done, and who refrains from what they forbid.

The social basis of righteousness also appears in the frequent contrast between δίκη and βία , right and force . A violation of right is that which forces its way over the social sanction. The social conception of δίκαιος is not lost, even when the idea is so apprehended as to border on the christian love of one's neighbor. There is a wrong toward the gods, but every wrong is not in itself such. The inner, personal relation to deity, the absolute and constraining appeal of divine character and law to conscience, the view of duty as one's right, and of personal right as something to be surrendered to the paramount claim of love - all these elements which distinguish the christian conception of righteousness - are thus in sharp contrast with a righteousness dictated by social claims which limit the individual desire or preference, but which leave untouched the tenacity of personal right, and place obligation behind legitimacy.

It is desirable that the classical usage of these terms should be understood, in order to throw into sharper relief the Biblical usage, according to which God is the absolute and final standard of right, and every wrong is a sin against God (Psa 51:4). Each man stands in direct and primary relation to the holy God as He is by the law of His own nature. Righteousness is union with God in character. To the Greek mind of the legendary age such a conception is both strange and essentially impossible, since the Greek divinity is only the Greek man exaggerated in his virtues and vices alike. According to the christian ideal, righteousness is character, and the norm of character is likeness to God. This idea includes all the social aspects of right. Love and duty toward God involve love and duty to the neighbor.

Here must be noted a peculiar usage of δίκαιος righteous , and δικαιοσύνη righteousness , in the Septuagint. They are at times interchanged with ἐλεημοσύνη mercy , and ἔλεος kindness . The Hebrew chesed kindness , though usually rendered by ἔλεος , is nine times translated by δικαιοσύνη righteousness , and once by δίκαιος righteous . The Hebrew tsedakah , usually rendered by δικαιοσύνη , is nine times translated by ἐλεημοσύνη mercy , and three times by ἔλεος kindness . Compare the Heb. and Sept. at Deu 6:25; Deu 24:13 (15); Gen 19:19; Gen 24:27. This usage throws light on the reading δικαιοσύνην , Rev., righteousness ( kindness? ), instead of ἐλεημοσύνην mercy , A.V., alms , Mat 6:1. Mr. Hatch (" Essays in Biblical Greek" ) says that the meaning kindness is so clear in this passage that scribes, who were unaware of its existence, altered the text. He also thinks that this meaning gives a better sense than any other to Mat 1:19 " Joseph, being a kindly (δίκαιος , A.V., just ) man."

1. In the New Testament δίκαιος is used both of God and of Christ. Of God, 1Jo 1:9; Joh 17:25; Rev 16:5; Rom 3:26. Of Christ, 1Jo 2:1; 1Jo 3:7; Act 3:14; Act 7:52; Act 22:14. In these passages the word characterizes God and Christ either in their essential quality or in their action; either as righteous according to the eternal norm of divine holiness (Joh 17:25; 1Jo 3:7; Rom 3:26), or as holiness passes into righteous dealing with men (1Jo 1:9).

2. Δίκαιος is used of men, denoting their normal relation to the will and judgment of God. Hence it means virtuous , upright , pure in life , correct in thinking and feeling . It stands opposed to ἀνομία lawlessness ; ἁμαρτία sin ; ἀκαθαρσία impurity , a contrast wanting in classical usage, where the conception of sin is vague. See Rom 6:13, Rom 6:16, Rom 6:18, Rom 6:20; Rom 8:10; 2Co 6:7, 2Co 6:14; Eph 5:9; Eph 6:14; Phi 1:11; Jam 3:18.

Where δικαιοσύνη righteousness , is joined with ὁσιότης holiness (Luk 1:75; Eph 4:24), it denotes right conduct toward men, as holiness denotes piety toward God. It appears in the wider sense of answering to the demands of God in general , Mat 13:17; Mat 10:41; Mat 23:29; Act 10:22, Act 10:35; and in the narrower sense of perfectly answering the divine demands , guiltless . So of Christ, Act 3:14; 1Pe 3:18; 1Jo 2:1.

3. It is found in the classical sense of it is right , Phi 1:7, or that which is right, Col 4:1. This, however, is included within the Christian conception.

Δικαιοσύνη righteousness , is therefore that which fulfills the claims of δίκη right . " It is the state commanded by God and standing the test of His judgment; the character and acts of a man approved of Him, in virtue of which the man corresponds with Him and His will as His ideal and standard" (Cremer).

The medium of this righteousness is faith . Faith is said to be counted or reckoned for righteousness; i . e ., righteousness is ascribed to it or recognized in it. Rom 4:3, Rom 4:6, Rom 4:9, Rom 4:22; Gal 3:6; Jam 2:23.

In this verse the righteousness revealed in the Gospel is described as a righteousness of God . This does not mean righteousness as an attribute of God , as in Rom 3:5; but righteousness as bestowed on man by God . The state of the justified man is due to God. The righteousness which becomes his is that which God declares to be righteousness and ascribes to him. Righteousness thus expresses the relation of being right into which God puts the man who believes . See further, on justified , Rom 2:13.

Vincent: Rom 1:17 - -- Is revealed ( ἀποκαλύπτεται ) Emphasizing the peculiar sense in which " righteousness" is used here. Righteousness as an attrib...

Is revealed ( ἀποκαλύπτεται )

Emphasizing the peculiar sense in which " righteousness" is used here. Righteousness as an attribute of God was revealed before the Gospel. Righteousness in this sense is a matter of special revelation through the Gospel. The present tense describes the Gospel in its continuous proclamation: is being revealed .

Vincent: Rom 1:17 - -- From faith to faith ( ἐκ πίστεως εἰς πίστιν ) Rev., by faith unto faith. According to the A.V. the idea is that of ...

From faith to faith ( ἐκ πίστεως εἰς πίστιν )

Rev., by faith unto faith. According to the A.V. the idea is that of progress in faith itself; either from Old to New Testament faith, or, in the individual, from a lower to a higher degree of faith; and this idea, I think, must be held here, although it is true that it is introduced secondarily, since Paul is dealing principally with the truth that righteousness is by faith. We may rightly say that the revealed righteousness of God is unto faith, in the sense of with a view to produce faith ; but we may also say that faith is a progressive principle; that the aim of God's justifying righteousness is life , and that the just lives by his faith (Gal 2:20), and enters into " more abundant" life with the development of his faith. Compare 2Co 2:16; 2Co 3:18; 2Co 4:17; Rom 6:19; and the phrase, justification of life , Rom 5:18.

Vincent: Rom 1:18 - -- For All men require this mode of justification, for all men are sinners, and therefore exposed to God's wrath.

For

All men require this mode of justification, for all men are sinners, and therefore exposed to God's wrath.

Vincent: Rom 1:18 - -- The wrath of God ( ὀργὴ Θεοῦ ) Not punishment , but the personal emotion . See on Joh 3:36.

The wrath of God ( ὀργὴ Θεοῦ )

Not punishment , but the personal emotion . See on Joh 3:36.

Vincent: Rom 1:18 - -- Ungodliness and unrighteousness ( ἀσέβειαν καὶ ἀδικίαν ). Irreligiousness and immorality. See on godliness, 2Pe 1:3; ...

Ungodliness and unrighteousness ( ἀσέβειαν καὶ ἀδικίαν ).

Irreligiousness and immorality. See on godliness, 2Pe 1:3; also 2Pe 2:13.

Vincent: Rom 1:18 - -- Hold ( κατεχόντων ) Not possess : compare Rom 1:21. Rev., correctly, hold down ; i.e., hinder or repress . Compare 2Th 2:6, 2T...

Hold ( κατεχόντων )

Not possess : compare Rom 1:21. Rev., correctly, hold down ; i.e., hinder or repress . Compare 2Th 2:6, 2Th 2:7; Luk 4:42.

Vincent: Rom 1:18 - -- The truth Divine truth generally, as apparent in all God's self-revelations.

The truth

Divine truth generally, as apparent in all God's self-revelations.

Vincent: Rom 1:19 - -- That which may be known ( τὸ γνωστὸν ) So A.V. and Rev., as equivalent to that which is knowable . But that which is knowable...

That which may be known ( τὸ γνωστὸν )

So A.V. and Rev., as equivalent to that which is knowable . But that which is knowable was not revealed to the heathen. If it was, what need of a revelation? Better, that which is known , the universal sense in the New Testament, signifying the universal objective knowledge of God as the Creator, which is, more or less, in all men.

Vincent: Rom 1:19 - -- In them In their heart and conscience. The emphasis should be on in . Thus the apparent tautology - what is known is manifest - disappears.

In them

In their heart and conscience. The emphasis should be on in . Thus the apparent tautology - what is known is manifest - disappears.

Vincent: Rom 1:20 - -- The invisible things of Him The attributes which constitute God's nature, afterward defined as " His eternal power and divinity."

The invisible things of Him

The attributes which constitute God's nature, afterward defined as " His eternal power and divinity."

Vincent: Rom 1:20 - -- From the creation ( ἀπό ) From the time of. Rev., since .

From the creation ( ἀπό )

From the time of. Rev., since .

Vincent: Rom 1:20 - -- Are clearly seen ( καθορᾶται ) We have here an oxymoron , literally a pointedly foolish saying ; a saying which is impressive ...

Are clearly seen ( καθορᾶται )

We have here an oxymoron , literally a pointedly foolish saying ; a saying which is impressive or witty through sheer contradiction or paradox. Invisible things are clearly visible . See on Act 5:41. Illustrations are sometimes furnished by single words, as γλυκύπικρος bittersweet ; θρασύδειλος a bold coward . In English compare Shakespeare:

" Dove-feathered raven, fiend angelical;

Beautiful tyrant, wolfish-ravening lamb."

Spenser:

" Glad of such luck, the luckless lucky maid."

Vincent: Rom 1:20 - -- Godhead ( θειότης ) Rev., better, divinity . Godhead expresses deity (θεότης ). θειότης is godhood , not godhea...

Godhead ( θειότης )

Rev., better, divinity . Godhead expresses deity (θεότης ). θειότης is godhood , not godhead . It signifies the sum-total of the divine attributes.

Vincent: Rom 1:20 - -- So that they are ( εἰς τὸ εἶναι ) The A.V. expresses result ; but the sense is rather purpose . The revelation of God's power...

So that they are ( εἰς τὸ εἶναι )

The A.V. expresses result ; but the sense is rather purpose . The revelation of God's power and divinity is given, so that , if, after being enlightened, they fall into sin, they may be without defense.

Vincent: Rom 1:20 - -- Without excuse ( ἀναπολογήτους ) See on answer , 1Pe 3:15. Only here and Rom 2:1.

Without excuse ( ἀναπολογήτους )

See on answer , 1Pe 3:15. Only here and Rom 2:1.

Vincent: Rom 1:21 - -- Knowing - glorified not " I think it may be proved from facts that any given people, down to the lowest savages, has at any period of its life kn...

Knowing - glorified not

" I think it may be proved from facts that any given people, down to the lowest savages, has at any period of its life known far more than it has done: known quite enough to have enabled it to have got on comfortably, thriven and developed, if it had only done what no man does, all that it knew it ought to do and could do" (Charles Kingsley, " The Roman and the Teuton" ).

Vincent: Rom 1:21 - -- Became vain ( ἐματαιώθησαν ) Vain things (μάταια ) was the Jews' name for idols . Compare Act 4:15. Their ideas and ...

Became vain ( ἐματαιώθησαν )

Vain things (μάταια ) was the Jews' name for idols . Compare Act 4:15. Their ideas and conceptions of God had no intrinsic value corresponding with the truth. " The understanding was reduced to work in vacuo . It rendered itself in a way futile " (Godet).

Vincent: Rom 1:21 - -- Imaginations ( διαλογισμοῖς ) Rev., better, reasonings . See on Mat 15:19; see on Mar 7:21; see on Jam 2:4.

Imaginations ( διαλογισμοῖς )

Rev., better, reasonings . See on Mat 15:19; see on Mar 7:21; see on Jam 2:4.

Vincent: Rom 1:21 - -- Foolish ( ἀσύνετος ) See on συνετός prudent , Mat 11:25, and the kindred word σύνεσις understanding , see on Mar ...

Foolish ( ἀσύνετος )

See on συνετός prudent , Mat 11:25, and the kindred word σύνεσις understanding , see on Mar 12:33; see on Luk 2:47. They did not combine the facts which were patent to their observation.

Vincent: Rom 1:21 - -- Heart ( καρδία ) The heart is, first, the physical organ, the center of the circulation of the blood. Hence, the seat and center ...

Heart ( καρδία )

The heart is, first, the physical organ, the center of the circulation of the blood. Hence, the seat and center of physical life . In the former sense it does not occur in the New Testament. As denoting the vigor and sense of physical life, see Act 14:17; Jam 5:5; Luk 21:34. It is used fifty-two times by Paul.

Never used like ψυχή , soul , to denote the individual subject of personal life, so that it can be exchanged with the personal pronoun (Act 2:43; Act 3:23; Rom 13:1); nor like πνεῦμα spirit , to denote the divinely-given principle of life.

It is the central seat and organ of the personal life (ψυχή ) of man regarded in and by himself. Hence it is commonly accompanied with the possessive pronouns, my , his , thy , etc.

Like our heart it denotes the seat of feeling as contrasted with intelligence. 2Co 2:4; Rom 9:2; Rom 10:1; 2Co 6:11; Phi 1:7. But it is not limited to this. It is also the seat of mental action, feeling, thinking, willing. It is used -

1. Of intelligence , Rom 1:21; 2Co 3:15; 2Co 4:6; Eph 1:18.

2. Of moral choice , 1Co 7:37; 2Co 9:7.

3. As giving impulse and character to action , Rom 6:17; Eph 6:5; Col 3:22; 1Ti 1:5; 2Ti 2:22. The work of the law is written on the heart, Rom 2:15. The Corinthian Church is inscribed as Christ's epistle on hearts of flesh, 2Co 3:2-3.

4. Specially, it is the seat of the divine Spirit , Gal 4:6; Rom 5:5; 2Co 1:22. It is the sphere of His various operations, directing, comforting, establishing, etc., Phi 4:7; Col 3:15; 1Th 3:13; 2Th 2:17; 2Th 3:5. It is the seat of faith, and the organ of spiritual praise, Rom 10:9; Eph 5:19; Col 3:16.

It is equivalent to the inner man , Eph 3:16, Eph 3:17. Its characteristic is being hidden , Rom 2:28, Rom 2:29; Rom 8:27; 1Co 4:5; 1Co 14:25.

It is contrasted with the face , 1Th 2:17; 2Co 5:12; and with the mouth , Rom 10:8.

Vincent: Rom 1:22 - -- Professing ( φάσκοντες ) The verb is used of unfounded assertion, Act 24:9; Act 25:19; Rev 2:2.

Professing ( φάσκοντες )

The verb is used of unfounded assertion, Act 24:9; Act 25:19; Rev 2:2.

Vincent: Rom 1:22 - -- Wise, they became fools Another oxymoron; see on Rom 1:20. Compare Horace, insaniens sapientia raving wisdom . Plato uses the phrase μα...

Wise, they became fools

Another oxymoron; see on Rom 1:20. Compare Horace, insaniens sapientia raving wisdom . Plato uses the phrase μάταιον δοξοσοφίαν vain-glorying of wisdom (" Sophist," 231).

Vincent: Rom 1:23 - -- Image made like ( ὁμοιώματι εἰκόνος ) Rev ., more literally, the likeness of an image . See on Rev 13:14. Equiv...

Image made like ( ὁμοιώματι εἰκόνος )

Rev ., more literally, the likeness of an image . See on Rev 13:14. Equivalent to what was shaped like an image . Likeness indicates the conformity with the object of comparison in appearance; image , the type in the artist's mind; the typical human form. See, further, on Phi 2:7.

Vincent: Rom 1:23 - -- Birds and beasts and creeping things Deities of human form prevailed in Greece; those of the bestial form in Egypt; and both methods of worship w...

Birds and beasts and creeping things

Deities of human form prevailed in Greece; those of the bestial form in Egypt; and both methods of worship were practiced in Rome. See on Act 7:41. Serpent-worship was common in Chaldaea, and also in Egypt. The asp was sacred throughout the latter country. The worship of Isis was domesticated at Rome, and Juvenal relates how the priests of Isis contrived that the silver images of serpents kept in her temple should move their heads to a suppliant (" Satire" vi., 537). Many of the subjects of paintings in the tombs of the kings at Thebes show the importance which the serpent was thought to enjoy in the future state. Dollinger says that the vestal virgins were intrusted with the attendance upon a holy serpent, and were charged with supplying his table with meats on festival days.

Vincent: Rom 1:24 - -- Gave them up ( παρέδωκεν ) Handed them over to the power of sin. See on Mat 4:12; see on Mat 11:27; see on Mat 26:2; see on Mar 4:29; ...

Gave them up ( παρέδωκεν )

Handed them over to the power of sin. See on Mat 4:12; see on Mat 11:27; see on Mat 26:2; see on Mar 4:29; see on Luk 1:2; see on 1Pe 2:23.

Vincent: Rom 1:25 - -- Who changed ( οἵτινες μετήλλαξαν ) Rev., for that they exchanged . The double relative specifies the class to which...

Who changed ( οἵτινες μετήλλαξαν )

Rev., for that they exchanged . The double relative specifies the class to which they belonged, and thereby includes the reason for their punishment. He gave them up as being those who, etc. Μετήλλαξαν exchanged (so Rev.), is stronger than the simple verb in Rom 1:23. Godet renders travestied . Compare the same word in Rom 1:26.

Vincent: Rom 1:25 - -- Truth of God Equivalent to the true God .

Truth of God

Equivalent to the true God .

Vincent: Rom 1:25 - -- Into a lie ( ἐν τῷ ψεύδει ) Better, as Rev., exchanged , etc., for a lie. Lit., the lie; a general abstract expression for...

Into a lie ( ἐν τῷ ψεύδει )

Better, as Rev., exchanged , etc., for a lie. Lit., the lie; a general abstract expression for the whole body of false gods. Bengel remarks, " the price of mythology."

Vincent: Rom 1:25 - -- Worshipped and served ( ἐσεβάσθησαν καὶ ἐλάτρευσαν ) The former of worship generally; the latter of worship thr...

Worshipped and served ( ἐσεβάσθησαν καὶ ἐλάτρευσαν )

The former of worship generally; the latter of worship through special rites or sacrifices. On the latter verb, see on Rev 22:3.

Vincent: Rom 1:25 - -- More than the Creator ( παρά ) The preposition indicates passing by the Creator altogether; not merely giving preference to the cre...

More than the Creator ( παρά )

The preposition indicates passing by the Creator altogether; not merely giving preference to the creature. Hence Rev., rather than . Compare Luk 18:14, where the approved reading is παρ ' ἐκεῖνον rather than the other , implying that the Pharisee was in no respect justified.

Vincent: Rom 1:25 - -- Blessed ( εὐλογητὸς ) See on 1Pe 1:3.

Blessed ( εὐλογητὸς )

See on 1Pe 1:3.

Vincent: Rom 1:26 - -- Vile affections ( πάθη ἀτιμίας ) Lit., passions of dishonor . Rev., passions . As distinguished from ἐπιθυμία...

Vile affections ( πάθη ἀτιμίας )

Lit., passions of dishonor . Rev., passions . As distinguished from ἐπιθυμίαι lusts , in Rom 1:24, πάθη passions , is the narrower and intenser word. Ἐπιθυμία is the larger word, including the whole world of active lusts and desires, while the meaning of πάθος is passive, being the diseased condition out of which the lusts spring. Ἐπιθυμίαι are evil longings ; πάθη ungovernable affections . Thus it appears that the divine punishment was the more severe, in that they were given over to a condition , and not merely to an evil desire. The two words occur together, 1Th 4:5.

Vincent: Rom 1:26 - -- Women ( θήλειαι ) Strictly, females . This, and ἄρσενες males , are used because only the distinction of sex is contemplate...

Women ( θήλειαι )

Strictly, females . This, and ἄρσενες males , are used because only the distinction of sex is contemplated.

Vincent: Rom 1:27 - -- Burned ( ἐξεκαύθησαν ) The terms are terrible in their intensity. Lit., burned out . The preposition indicates the rage of th...

Burned ( ἐξεκαύθησαν )

The terms are terrible in their intensity. Lit., burned out . The preposition indicates the rage of the lust.

Vincent: Rom 1:27 - -- Lust ( ὀρέξει ) Only here in the New Testament. It is a reaching out after something with the purpose of appropriating it. In later...

Lust ( ὀρέξει )

Only here in the New Testament. It is a reaching out after something with the purpose of appropriating it. In later classical Greek it is the most general term for every kind of desire, as the appetite for food. The peculiar expressiveness of the word here is sufficiently evident from the context.

Vincent: Rom 1:27 - -- That which is unseemly ( τὴν ἀσχημοσύνην ) Primarily, want of form , disfigurement . Plato contrasts it with εὐσχ...

That which is unseemly ( τὴν ἀσχημοσύνην )

Primarily, want of form , disfigurement . Plato contrasts it with εὐσχημοσύνη gracefulness (" Symposium," 196).

Vincent: Rom 1:27 - -- Which was meet ( ἔδει ) Rev., was due , which is better, though the word expresses a necessity in the nature of the case - that which ...

Which was meet ( ἔδει )

Rev., was due , which is better, though the word expresses a necessity in the nature of the case - that which must needs be as the consequence of violating the divine law.

The prevalence of this horrible vice is abundantly illustrated in the classics. See Aristophanes, " Lysistrata," 110; Plato, " Symposium," 191; Lucian, " Amores," 18; " Dialogi Meretricii," v., 2; Juvenal, vi., 311; Martial, i., 91; vii., 67. See also Becker's " Charicles;" Forsyth's " Life of Cicero," pp. 289, 336; and Dollinger's " Heathen and Jew," ii., 273 sqq. Dollinger remarks that in the whole of the literature of the ante-Christian period, hardly a writer has decisively condemned it. In the Doric states, Crete and Sparta, the practice was favored as a means of education, and was acknowledged by law. Even Socrates could not forbear feeling like a Greek on this point (see Plato's " Charmides" ). In Rome, in the earlier centuries of the republic, it was of rare occurrence; but at the close of the sixth century it had become general. Even the best of the emperors, Antoninus and Trajan, were guilty.

On the Apostle's description Bengel remarks that " in stigmatizing we must often call a spade a spade. The unchaste usually demand from others an absurd modesty." Yet Paul's reserve is in strong contrast with the freedom of pagan writers (see Eph 5:12). Meyer notes that Paul delineates the female dishonor in less concrete traits than the male.

Vincent: Rom 1:28 - -- Even as Expressing the correlation between the sin and the punishment.

Even as

Expressing the correlation between the sin and the punishment.

Vincent: Rom 1:28 - -- They did not like to have God in their knowledge ( οὐκ ἐδοκίμασαν ). Lit., did not approve . Rev., refused . They did no...

They did not like to have God in their knowledge ( οὐκ ἐδοκίμασαν ).

Lit., did not approve . Rev., refused . They did not think God worth the knowing. Compare 1Th 2:4. Knowledge (ἐπιγνώσει ) is, literally, full knowledge. They did not suffer the rudimentary revelation of nature to develop into full knowledge - " a penetrating and living knowledge of God" (Meyer). In Dante's division of Hell, the section assigned to Incontinence, or want of self-control, is succeeded by that of Bestiality, or besotted folly, which comprises infidelity and heresy in all their forms - sin which Dante declares to be the most stupid, vile, and hurtful of follies. Thus the want of self-restraint is linked with the failure to have God in knowledge. Self is truly possessed only in God. The tendency of this is ever downward toward that demoniac animalism which is incarnated in Lucifer at the apex of the infernal cone, and which is so powerfully depicted in this chapter. See " Inferno," ix.

Vincent: Rom 1:28 - -- Reprobate mind ( ἀδόκιμον νοῦν ) Lit., not standing the test . See on is tried , Jam 1:12; and see on trial , 1Pe 1:...

Reprobate mind ( ἀδόκιμον νοῦν )

Lit., not standing the test . See on is tried , Jam 1:12; and see on trial , 1Pe 1:7. There is a play upon the words. As they did not approve , God gave them up unto a mind disapproved . This form of play upon words of similar sound is perhaps the most frequent of Paul's rhetorical figures, often consisting in the change of preposition in a compound, or in the addition of a preposition to the simple verb. Thus περιτομή circumcision , κατατομή concision , Phi 3:2, Phi 3:3. " Our epistle known (γινωσκομένη ) and read (ἀναγινωσκομένη )." Compare Rom 2:1; 1Co 11:29-31; Rom 12:3. The word reprobate is from re-probare , to reject on a second trial , hence, to condemn .

Vincent: Rom 1:29 - -- Filled The retribution was in full measure. Compare Pro 1:31; Rev 18:6.

Filled

The retribution was in full measure. Compare Pro 1:31; Rev 18:6.

Vincent: Rom 1:29 - -- Wickedness ( πονηρίᾳ ) See on Mar 7:22.

Wickedness ( πονηρίᾳ )

See on Mar 7:22.

Vincent: Rom 1:29 - -- Covetousness ( πλεονεξίᾳ ) Lit., the desire of having more . It is to be distinguished from φιλαργυρία , render...

Covetousness ( πλεονεξίᾳ )

Lit., the desire of having more . It is to be distinguished from φιλαργυρία , rendered love of money , 1Ti 6:10, and its kindred adjective φιλάργυρος , which A.V. renders covetous Luk 16:14; 2Ti 3:2; properly changed by Rev. into lovers of money . The distinction is expressed by covetousness and avarice . The one is the desire of getting , the other of keeping . Covetousness has a wider and deeper sense, as designating the sinful desire which goes out after things of time and sense of every form and kind. Hence it is defined by Paul (Col 3:5) as idolatry , the worship of another object than God, and is so often associated with fleshly sins, as 1Co 5:11; Eph 5:3, Eph 5:5; Col 3:5. Lightfoot says: " Impurity and covetousness may be said to divide between them nearly the whole domain of selfishness and vice." Socrates quotes an anonymous author who compares the region of the desires in the wicked to a vessel full of holes, and says that, of all the souls in Hades, these uninitiated or leaky persons are the most miserable, and that they carry water to a vessel which is full of holes in a similarly holey colander. The colander is the soul of the ignorant (Plato, " Gorgias," 493). Compare, also, the description of covetousness and avarice by Chaucer, " Romaunt of the Rose," 183-246.

" Covetise

That eggeth folk in many a guise

To take and yeve (give) right nought again,

And great treasoures up to laine (lay).

.....

And that is she that maketh treachours,

And she maketh false pleadours.

.....

Full crooked were her hondes (hands) two,

For Covetise is ever woode (violent)

To grippen other folkes goode."

" Avarice

Full foul in painting was that vice.

.....

She was like thing for hunger dead,

That lad (led) her life onely by bread.

.....

This Avarice had in her hand

A purse that honge by a band,

And that she hid and bond so strong,

Men must abide wonder long,

Out of the purse er (ere) there come aught,

For that ne commeth in her thought,

It was not certaine her entent

That fro that purse a peny went."

Vincent: Rom 1:29 - -- Maliciousness ( κακίᾳ ) See on naughtiness , Jam 1:21.

Maliciousness ( κακίᾳ )

See on naughtiness , Jam 1:21.

Vincent: Rom 1:29 - -- Full ( μεστοὺς ) Properly, stuffed .

Full ( μεστοὺς )

Properly, stuffed .

Vincent: Rom 1:29 - -- Envy, murder ( φθόνου , φόνου ) Phthonou , phonou . A paronomasia or combination of like-sounding words. Compare Gal 5:21. Mur...

Envy, murder ( φθόνου , φόνου )

Phthonou , phonou . A paronomasia or combination of like-sounding words. Compare Gal 5:21. Murder is conceived as a thought which has filled the man. See 1Jo 3:15.

Vincent: Rom 1:29 - -- Debate ( ἔριδος ) In the earlier sense of the word (French, debattre , to beat down , contend ) including the element of strife....

Debate ( ἔριδος )

In the earlier sense of the word (French, debattre , to beat down , contend ) including the element of strife. So Chaucer:

" Tales both of peace and of debates ."

" Man of Law's Tale ," 4550 .

Later usage has eliminated this element. Dr. Eadie (" English Bible" ) relates that a member of a Scottish Church-court once warned its members not to call their deliberations " a debate," since debate was one of the sins condemned by Paul in this passage. Rev., correctly, strife .

Vincent: Rom 1:29 - -- Deceit ( δόλου ) See on Joh 1:47.

Deceit ( δόλου )

See on Joh 1:47.

Vincent: Rom 1:29 - -- Malignity ( κακοηθείας ) Malicious disposition.

Malignity ( κακοηθείας )

Malicious disposition.

Vincent: Rom 1:30 - -- Haters of God ( θεοστυγεῖς ) Rev., hateful to God . All classical usage is in favor of the passive sense, but all the other item...

Haters of God ( θεοστυγεῖς )

Rev., hateful to God . All classical usage is in favor of the passive sense, but all the other items of the list are active. Meyer defends the passive on the ground that the term is a summary of what precedes. The weight of authority is on this side. The simple verb στυγέω to hate , does not occur in the New Testament. Στυγητός hateful , is found Tit 3:3. The verb is stronger than, μισέω I hate , since it means to show as well as to feel hatred.

Vincent: Rom 1:30 - -- Proud ( ὑπερηφάνους ) Rev., haughty . See on pride , Mar 7:22.

Proud ( ὑπερηφάνους )

Rev., haughty . See on pride , Mar 7:22.

Vincent: Rom 1:30 - -- Boasters ( ἀλαζόνας ). Swaggerers Not necessarily implying contempt or insult.

Boasters ( ἀλαζόνας ). Swaggerers

Not necessarily implying contempt or insult.

Vincent: Rom 1:31 - -- Without understanding, covenant-breakers ( ἀσυνέτους ἀσυνθέτους ) Another paronomasia: asynetous , asynthetous . Thi...

Without understanding, covenant-breakers ( ἀσυνέτους ἀσυνθέτους )

Another paronomasia: asynetous , asynthetous . This feature of style is largely due to the pleasure which all people, and especially Orientals, derive from the assonance of a sentence. Archdeacon Farrar gives a number of illustrations: the Arabic Abel and Kabel (Abel and Cain); Dalut and G'ialut (David and Goliath). A Hindoo constantly adds meaningless rhymes, even to English words, as button-bitten ; kettley-bittley . Compare the Prayer-book, holy and wholly ; giving and forgiving ; changes and chances . Shakespeare, sorted and consorted ; in every breath a death . He goes on to argue that these alliterations, in the earliest stages of language, are partly due to a vague belief in the inherent affinities of words (" Language and Languages," 227).

Vincent: Rom 1:32 - -- Judgment ( δικαίωμα ) Rev., correctly, ordinance .

Judgment ( δικαίωμα )

Rev., correctly, ordinance .

Vincent: Rom 1:32 - -- Commit ( πράσσοντες ) Rev., better, practice . See on Joh 3:21. Paul would have been familiar with the abominations of the pagan wo...

Commit ( πράσσοντες )

Rev., better, practice . See on Joh 3:21.

Paul would have been familiar with the abominations of the pagan world from the beginning of his life. The belief in paganism was more firmly rooted in the provinces than in Italy, and was especially vigorous in Tarsus; which was counted among the three Kappa Kakista , most villainous K's of antiquity - Kappadokia, Kilikia, and Krete. Religion there was chiefly of an Oriental character, marked by lascivious rites. See Farrar's " Life and Work of Paul," ii., 24-34

Wesley: Rom 1:2 - -- Of old time, frequently, solemnly. And the promise and accomplishment confirm each other. Deu 18:18; Isa 9:6-7; Isa 53:1; Isa 61:1; Jer 23:5.

Of old time, frequently, solemnly. And the promise and accomplishment confirm each other. Deu 18:18; Isa 9:6-7; Isa 53:1; Isa 61:1; Jer 23:5.

Wesley: Rom 1:3 - -- That is, with regard to his human nature. Both the natures of our Saviour are here mentioned; but the human is mentioned first, because the divine was...

That is, with regard to his human nature. Both the natures of our Saviour are here mentioned; but the human is mentioned first, because the divine was not manifested in its full evidence till after his resurrection.

Wesley: Rom 1:4 - -- That is, according to his divine nature.

That is, according to his divine nature.

Wesley: Rom 1:4 - -- For this is both the fountain and the object of our faith; and the preaching of the apostles was the consequence of Christ's resurrection.

For this is both the fountain and the object of our faith; and the preaching of the apostles was the consequence of Christ's resurrection.

Wesley: Rom 1:5 - -- I and the other apostles.

I and the other apostles.

Wesley: Rom 1:5 - -- The favour to be an apostle, and qualifications for it.

The favour to be an apostle, and qualifications for it.

Wesley: Rom 1:5 - -- That is, that all nations may embrace the faith of Christ.

That is, that all nations may embrace the faith of Christ.

Wesley: Rom 1:5 - -- For his sake; out of regard to him.

For his sake; out of regard to him.

Wesley: Rom 1:6 - -- The nations brought to the obedience of faith.

The nations brought to the obedience of faith.

Wesley: Rom 1:6 - -- But St. Paul gives them no preeminence above others.

But St. Paul gives them no preeminence above others.

Wesley: Rom 1:7 - -- Most of these were heathens by birth, Rom 1:13, though with Jews mixed among them. They were scattered up and down in that large city, and not yet red...

Most of these were heathens by birth, Rom 1:13, though with Jews mixed among them. They were scattered up and down in that large city, and not yet reduced into the form of a church. Only some had begun to meet in the house of Aquila and Priscilla.

Wesley: Rom 1:7 - -- And from his free love, not from any merit of yours, called by his word and his Spirit to believe in him, and now through faith holy as he is holy.

And from his free love, not from any merit of yours, called by his word and his Spirit to believe in him, and now through faith holy as he is holy.

Wesley: Rom 1:7 - -- The peculiar favour of God.

The peculiar favour of God.

Wesley: Rom 1:7 - -- All manner of blessings, temporal, spiritual, and eternal. This is both a Christian salutation and an apostolic benediction. From God our Father, and ...

All manner of blessings, temporal, spiritual, and eternal. This is both a Christian salutation and an apostolic benediction. From God our Father, and the Lord Jesus Christ - This is the usual way wherein the apostles speak, "God the Father," "God our Father." Nor do they often, in speaking of him, use the word Lord, as it implies the proper name of God, Jehovah. In the Old Testament, indeed, the holy men generally said, "The Lord our God;" for they were then, as it were, servants; whereas now they are sons: and sons so well know their father, that they need not frequently mention his proper name. It is one and the same peace, and one and the same grace, which is from God and from Jesus Christ. Our trust and prayer fix on God, as he is the Father of Christ; and on Christ, as he presents us to the Father.

Wesley: Rom 1:8 - -- In the very entrance of this one epistle are the traces of all spiritual affections; but of thankfulness above all, with the expression of which almos...

In the very entrance of this one epistle are the traces of all spiritual affections; but of thankfulness above all, with the expression of which almost all St. Paul's epistles begin. He here particularly thanks God, that what otherwise himself should have done, was done at Rome already.

Wesley: Rom 1:8 - -- This very word expresses faith, hope, love, and consequently all true religion.

This very word expresses faith, hope, love, and consequently all true religion.

Wesley: Rom 1:8 - -- The gifts of God all pass through Christ to us; and all our petitions and thanksgivings pass through Christ to God.

The gifts of God all pass through Christ to us; and all our petitions and thanksgivings pass through Christ to God.

Wesley: Rom 1:8 - -- In this kind of congratulations St. Paul describes either the whole of Christianity, as Col 1:3, &c.; or some part of it, as 1Co 1:5. Accordingly here...

In this kind of congratulations St. Paul describes either the whole of Christianity, as Col 1:3, &c.; or some part of it, as 1Co 1:5. Accordingly here he mentions the faith of the Romans, suitably to his design, Rom 1:12, Rom 1:17.

Wesley: Rom 1:8 - -- This joyful news spreading everywhere, that there were Christians also in the imperial city. And the goodness and wisdom of God established faith in t...

This joyful news spreading everywhere, that there were Christians also in the imperial city. And the goodness and wisdom of God established faith in the chief cities; in Jerusalem and Rome particularly; that from thence it might be diffused to all nations.

Wesley: Rom 1:9 - -- As an apostle.

As an apostle.

Wesley: Rom 1:9 - -- Not only with my body, but with my inmost soul.

Not only with my body, but with my inmost soul.

Wesley: Rom 1:9 - -- By preaching it.

By preaching it.

Wesley: Rom 1:10 - -- In all my solemn addresses to God.

In all my solemn addresses to God.

Wesley: Rom 1:10 - -- This accumulation of particles declares the strength of his desire.

This accumulation of particles declares the strength of his desire.

Wesley: Rom 1:11 - -- Face to face, by laying on of hands, prayer, preaching the gospel, private conversation.

Face to face, by laying on of hands, prayer, preaching the gospel, private conversation.

Wesley: Rom 1:11 - -- With such gifts the Corinthians, who had enjoyed the presence of St. Paul, abounded, 1Co 1:7; 1Co 12:1; 1Co 14:1. So did the Galatians likewise, Gal 3...

With such gifts the Corinthians, who had enjoyed the presence of St. Paul, abounded, 1Co 1:7; 1Co 12:1; 1Co 14:1. So did the Galatians likewise, Gal 3:5; and, indeed, all those churches which had had the presence of any of the apostles had peculiar advantages in this kind, from the laying on of their hands, Act 19:6; Act 8:17, &c., 2Ti 1:6. But as yet the Romans were greatly inferior to them in this respect; for which reason the apostle, in the twelfth chapter also, says little, if any thing, of their spiritual gifts. He therefore desires to impart some, that they might be established; for by these was the testimony of Christ confirmed among them. That St. Peter had no more been at Rome than St. Paul, at the time when this epistle was wrote, appears from the general tenor thereof, and from this place in particular: for, otherwise, what St. Paul wishes to impart to the Romans would have been imparted already by St. Peter.

Wesley: Rom 1:12 - -- He not only associates the Romans with, but even prefers them before, himself. How different is this style of the apostle from that of the modern cour...

He not only associates the Romans with, but even prefers them before, himself. How different is this style of the apostle from that of the modern court of Rome!

Wesley: Rom 1:13 - -- A frequent, holy, simple, sweet, and yet grand, appellation. The apostles but rarely address persons by their names; 'O ye Corinthians," "O Timotheus....

A frequent, holy, simple, sweet, and yet grand, appellation. The apostles but rarely address persons by their names; 'O ye Corinthians," "O Timotheus." St. Paul generally uses this appellation, " Brethren;" sometimes in exhortation, " My beloved," or, " My beloved brethren;" St. James, "Brethren," "My brethren," My beloved brethren;" St. Peter and Jude always, " Beloved;" St. John frequently, " Beloved;" once, " Brethren;" oftener than once, My little children." Though I have been hindered hitherto - Either by

business, see Rom 15:22; or

persecution, 1Th 2:2; or

the Spirit, Act 16:7.

Wesley: Rom 1:13 - -- Of my ministerial labours. Even as I have already had from the many churches I have planted and watered among the other gentiles.

Of my ministerial labours. Even as I have already had from the many churches I have planted and watered among the other gentiles.

Wesley: Rom 1:14 - -- He includes the Romans under the Greeks; so that this division comprises all nations. Both to the wise, and the unwise - For there were unwise even am...

He includes the Romans under the Greeks; so that this division comprises all nations. Both to the wise, and the unwise - For there were unwise even among the Greeks, and wise even among the barbarians.

Wesley: Rom 1:14 - -- I am bound by my divine mission to preach the gospel to them.

I am bound by my divine mission to preach the gospel to them.

Wesley: Rom 1:16 - -- To the world, indeed, it is folly and weakness, 1Co 1:18; therefore, in the judgment of the world, he ought to be ashamed of it; especially at Rome, t...

To the world, indeed, it is folly and weakness, 1Co 1:18; therefore, in the judgment of the world, he ought to be ashamed of it; especially at Rome, the head and theatre of the world. But Paul is not ashamed, knowing it is the power of God unto salvation to every one that believeth - The great and gloriously powerful means of saving all who accept salvation in God's own way. As St. Paul comprises the sum of the gospel in this epistle, so he does the sum of the epistle in this and the following verse. Both to the Jew, and to the gentile - There is a noble frankness, as well as a comprehensive sense, in these words, by which he, on the one hand, shows the Jews their absolute need of the gospel; and, on the other, tells the politest and greatest nation in the world both that their salvation depended on receiving it, and that the first offers of it were in every place to be made to the despised Jews.

Wesley: Rom 1:17 - -- This expression sometimes means God's eternal, essential righteousness, which includes both justice and mercy, and is eminently shown in condemning si...

This expression sometimes means God's eternal, essential righteousness, which includes both justice and mercy, and is eminently shown in condemning sin, and yet justifying the sinner. Sometimes it means that righteousness by which a man, through the gift of God, is made and is righteous; and that, both by receiving Christ through faith, and by a conformity to the essential righteousness of God. St. Paul, when treating of justification, means hereby the righteousness of faith; therefore called the righteousness of God, because God found out and prepared, reveals and gives, approves and crowns it. In this verse the expression means, the whole benefit of God through Christ for the salvation of a sinner.

Wesley: Rom 1:17 - -- Mention is made here, and Rom 1:18, of a twofold revelation, - of wrath and of righteousness: the former, little known to nature, is revealed by the l...

Mention is made here, and Rom 1:18, of a twofold revelation, - of wrath and of righteousness: the former, little known to nature, is revealed by the law; the latter, wholly unknown to nature, by the gospel. That goes before, and prepares the way; this follows. Each, the apostle says, is revealed at the present time, in opposition to the times of ignorance.

Wesley: Rom 1:17 - -- By a gradual series of still clearer and clearer promises.

By a gradual series of still clearer and clearer promises.

Wesley: Rom 1:17 - -- St. Paul had just laid down three propositions: Righteousness is by faith, Rom 1:17. Salvation is by righteousness, Rom 1:16. Both to the Jews and ...

St. Paul had just laid down three propositions:

Righteousness is by faith, Rom 1:17.

Salvation is by righteousness, Rom 1:16.

Both to the Jews and to the gentiles, Rom 1:16. Now all these are confirmed by that single sentence, The just shall live by faith - Which was primarily spoken of those who preserved their lives, when the Chaldeans besieged Jerusalem, by believing the declarations of God, and acting according to them. Here it means, He shall obtain the favour of God, and continue therein by believing. Hab 2:4

Wesley: Rom 1:18 - -- There is no other way of obtaining life and salvation. Having laid down his proposition, the apostle now enters upon the proof of it. His first argume...

There is no other way of obtaining life and salvation. Having laid down his proposition, the apostle now enters upon the proof of it. His first argument is, The law condemns all men, as being under sin. None therefore is justified by the works of the law. This is treated of Rom 3:20. And hence he infers, Therefore justification is by faith.

Wesley: Rom 1:18 - -- Not only by frequent and signal interpositions of divine providence, but likewise in the sacred oracles, and by us, his messengers.

Not only by frequent and signal interpositions of divine providence, but likewise in the sacred oracles, and by us, his messengers.

Wesley: Rom 1:18 - -- This speaks the majesty of Him whose wrath is revealed, his all - seeing eye, and the extent of his wrath: whatever is under heaven is under the effec...

This speaks the majesty of Him whose wrath is revealed, his all - seeing eye, and the extent of his wrath: whatever is under heaven is under the effects of his wrath, believers in Christ excepted.

Wesley: Rom 1:18 - -- These two are treated of, Rom 1:23, &c.

These two are treated of, Rom 1:23, &c.

Wesley: Rom 1:18 - -- He is speaking here of the gentiles, and chiefly the wisest of them.

He is speaking here of the gentiles, and chiefly the wisest of them.

Wesley: Rom 1:18 - -- For it struggles against their wickedness.

For it struggles against their wickedness.

Wesley: Rom 1:18 - -- The word here includes ungodliness also.

The word here includes ungodliness also.

Wesley: Rom 1:19 - -- Those great principles which are indispensably necessary to be known.

Those great principles which are indispensably necessary to be known.

Wesley: Rom 1:19 - -- By the light which enlightens every man that cometh into the world.

By the light which enlightens every man that cometh into the world.

Wesley: Rom 1:20 - -- By the eye of the mind.

By the eye of the mind.

Wesley: Rom 1:20 - -- They are seen by them, and them only, who use their understanding

They are seen by them, and them only, who use their understanding

Wesley: Rom 1:21 - -- For the wiser heathens did know that there was one supreme God; yet from low and base considerations they conformed to the idolatry of the vulgar. The...

For the wiser heathens did know that there was one supreme God; yet from low and base considerations they conformed to the idolatry of the vulgar. They did not glorify him as God, neither were thankful - They neither thanked him for his benefits, nor glorified him for his divine perfection.

Wesley: Rom 1:21 - -- Like the idols they worshipped.

Like the idols they worshipped.

Wesley: Rom 1:21 - -- Various, uncertain, foolish. What a terrible instance have we of this in the writings of Lucretius! What vain reasonings, and how dark a heart, amidst...

Various, uncertain, foolish. What a terrible instance have we of this in the writings of Lucretius! What vain reasonings, and how dark a heart, amidst so pompous professions of wisdom!

Wesley: Rom 1:23 - -- With the utmost folly. Here are three degrees of ungodliness and of punishment: the first is described, Rom 1:21-24; the second, Rom 1:25-27; the thir...

With the utmost folly. Here are three degrees of ungodliness and of punishment: the first is described, Rom 1:21-24; the second, Rom 1:25-27; the third, in Rom 1:28, and following verses. The punishment in each case is expressed by God gave them up. If a man will not worship God as God, he is so left to himself that he throws away his very manhood.

Wesley: Rom 1:23 - -- Or creeping things; as beetles, and various kinds of serpents.

Or creeping things; as beetles, and various kinds of serpents.

Wesley: Rom 1:24 - -- One punishment of sin is from the very nature of it, as Rom 1:27; another, as here, is from vindictive justice.

One punishment of sin is from the very nature of it, as Rom 1:27; another, as here, is from vindictive justice.

Wesley: Rom 1:24 - -- Ungodliness and uncleanness are frequently joined, 1Th 4:5 as are the knowledge of God and purity.

Ungodliness and uncleanness are frequently joined, 1Th 4:5 as are the knowledge of God and purity.

Wesley: Rom 1:24 - -- By withdrawing his restraining grace.

By withdrawing his restraining grace.

Wesley: Rom 1:25 - -- The true worship of God.

The true worship of God.

Wesley: Rom 1:25 - -- False, abominable idolatries.

False, abominable idolatries.

Wesley: Rom 1:25 - -- Inwardly.

Inwardly.

Wesley: Rom 1:25 - -- Outwardly.

Outwardly.

Wesley: Rom 1:26 - -- To which the heathen Romans were then abandoned to the last degree; and none more than the emperors themselves.

To which the heathen Romans were then abandoned to the last degree; and none more than the emperors themselves.

Wesley: Rom 1:27 - -- Their idolatry being punished with that unnatural lust, which was as horrible a dishonour to the body, as their idolatry was to God.

Their idolatry being punished with that unnatural lust, which was as horrible a dishonour to the body, as their idolatry was to God.

Wesley: Rom 1:28 - -- Treated of, Rom 1:32.

Treated of, Rom 1:32.

Wesley: Rom 1:28 - -- Even the vilest abominations, treated of Rom 1:29-31.

Even the vilest abominations, treated of Rom 1:29-31.

Wesley: Rom 1:29 - -- This stands in the first place; unmercifulness, in the last.

This stands in the first place; unmercifulness, in the last.

Wesley: Rom 1:29 - -- Includes here every species of uncleanness.

Includes here every species of uncleanness.

Wesley: Rom 1:29 - -- The Greek word properly implies a temper which delights in hurting another, even without any advantage to itself.

The Greek word properly implies a temper which delights in hurting another, even without any advantage to itself.

Wesley: Rom 1:30 - -- Such as secretly defame others.

Such as secretly defame others.

Wesley: Rom 1:30 - -- Such as speak against others behind their back.

Such as speak against others behind their back.

Wesley: Rom 1:30 - -- That is, rebels against him, deniers of his providence, or accusers of his justice in their adversities; yea, having an inward heart - enmity to his j...

That is, rebels against him, deniers of his providence, or accusers of his justice in their adversities; yea, having an inward heart - enmity to his justice and holiness.

Wesley: Rom 1:30 - -- Of new pleasures, new ways of gain, new arts of hurting, particularly in war.

Of new pleasures, new ways of gain, new arts of hurting, particularly in war.

Wesley: Rom 1:31 - -- breakers - It is well known, the Romans, as a nation, from the very beginning of their commonwealth, never made any scruple of vacating altogether the...

breakers - It is well known, the Romans, as a nation, from the very beginning of their commonwealth, never made any scruple of vacating altogether the most solemn engagement, if they did not like it, though made by their supreme magistrate, in the name of the whole people. They only gave up the general who had made it, and then supposed themselves to be at full liberty.

Wesley: Rom 1:31 - -- The custom of exposing their own new - born children to perish by cold, hunger, or wild beasts, which so generally prevailed in the heathen world, par...

The custom of exposing their own new - born children to perish by cold, hunger, or wild beasts, which so generally prevailed in the heathen world, particularly among the Greeks and Romans, was an amazing instance of this; as is also that of killing their aged and helpless parents, now common among the American heathens.

Wesley: Rom 1:32 - -- This is the highest degree of wickedness. A man may be hurried by his passions to do the thing he hates; but he that has pleasure in those that do evi...

This is the highest degree of wickedness. A man may be hurried by his passions to do the thing he hates; but he that has pleasure in those that do evil, loves wickedness for wickedness' sake. And hereby he encourages them in sin, and heaps the guilt of others upon his own head.

JFB: Rom 1:2 - -- Though the Roman Church was Gentile by nation (see on Rom 1:13), yet as it consisted mostly of proselytes to the Jewish faith (see on Introduction to ...

Though the Roman Church was Gentile by nation (see on Rom 1:13), yet as it consisted mostly of proselytes to the Jewish faith (see on Introduction to this Epistle), they are here reminded that in embracing Christ they had not cast off, but only the more profoundly yielded themselves to, Moses and the prophets (Act 13:32-33).

JFB: Rom 1:3-4 - -- The grand burden of this "Gospel of God."

The grand burden of this "Gospel of God."

JFB: Rom 1:3-4 - -- As, according to "the holy scriptures," He behooved to be. (See on Mat 1:1).

As, according to "the holy scriptures," He behooved to be. (See on Mat 1:1).

JFB: Rom 1:3-4 - -- That is, in His human nature (compare Rom 9:5; Joh 1:14); implying, of course, that He had another nature, of which the apostle immediately proceeds t...

That is, in His human nature (compare Rom 9:5; Joh 1:14); implying, of course, that He had another nature, of which the apostle immediately proceeds to speak.

JFB: Rom 1:4 - -- Literally, "marked off," "defined," "determined," that is, "shown," or "proved."

Literally, "marked off," "defined," "determined," that is, "shown," or "proved."

JFB: Rom 1:4 - -- Observe how studiously the language changes here. He "was MADE [says the apostle] of the seed of David, according to the flesh" (Rom 1:3); but He was ...

Observe how studiously the language changes here. He "was MADE [says the apostle] of the seed of David, according to the flesh" (Rom 1:3); but He was not made, He was only "declared [or proved] to BE the Son of God." So Joh 1:1, Joh 1:14, "In the beginning WAS the Word . . . and the Word was MADE flesh"; and Isa 9:6, "Unto us a Child is BORN, unto us a Son is GIVEN." Thus the Sonship of Christ is in no proper sense a born relationship to the Father, as some, otherwise sound divines, conceive of it. By His birth in the flesh, that Sonship, which was essential and uncreated, merely effloresced into palpable manifestation. (See on Luk 1:35; Act 13:32-33).

JFB: Rom 1:4 - -- This may either be connected with "declared," and then the meaning will be "powerfully declared" [LUTHER, BEZA, BENGEL, FRITZSCHE, ALFORD, &c.]; or (a...

This may either be connected with "declared," and then the meaning will be "powerfully declared" [LUTHER, BEZA, BENGEL, FRITZSCHE, ALFORD, &c.]; or (as in our version, and as we think rightly) with "the Son of God," and then the sense is, "declared to be the Son of God" in possession of that "power" which belonged to Him as the only-begotten of the Father, no longer shrouded as in the days of His flesh, but "by His resurrection from the dead" gloriously displayed and henceforth to be for ever exerted in this nature of ours [Vulgate, CALVIN, HODGE, PHILIPPI, MEHRING, &c.].

JFB: Rom 1:4 - -- If "according to the flesh" means here, "in His human nature," this uncommon expression must mean "in His other nature," which we have seen to be that...

If "according to the flesh" means here, "in His human nature," this uncommon expression must mean "in His other nature," which we have seen to be that "of the Son of God"--an eternal, uncreated nature. This is here styled the "spirit," as an impalpable and immaterial nature (Joh 4:24), and "the spirit of holiness," probably in absolute contrast with that "likeness, of sinful flesh" which He assumed. One is apt to wonder that if this be the meaning, it was not expressed more simply. But if the apostle had said "He was declared to be the Son of God according to the Holy Spirit," the reader would have thought he meant "the Holy Ghost"; and it seems to have been just to avoid this misapprehension that he used the rare expression, "the spirit of holiness."

JFB: Rom 1:5 - -- As the ordained channel.

As the ordained channel.

JFB: Rom 1:5 - -- The whole "grace that bringeth salvation" (Tit 2:11).

The whole "grace that bringeth salvation" (Tit 2:11).

JFB: Rom 1:5 - -- For the publication of that "grace," and the organization of as many as receive it into churches of visible discipleship. (We prefer thus taking them ...

For the publication of that "grace," and the organization of as many as receive it into churches of visible discipleship. (We prefer thus taking them as two distinct things, and not, with some good interpreters, as one--"the grace of apostleship").

JFB: Rom 1:5 - -- Rather, "for the obedience of faith"--that is, in order to men's yielding themselves to the belief of God's saving message, which is the highest of al...

Rather, "for the obedience of faith"--that is, in order to men's yielding themselves to the belief of God's saving message, which is the highest of all obedience.

JFB: Rom 1:5 - -- That He might be glorified.

That He might be glorified.

JFB: Rom 1:6 - -- That is, along with others; for the apostle ascribes nothing special to the Church of Rome (compare 1Co 14:36) [BENGEL].

That is, along with others; for the apostle ascribes nothing special to the Church of Rome (compare 1Co 14:36) [BENGEL].

JFB: Rom 1:6 - -- (See on Rom 8:30).

(See on Rom 8:30).

JFB: Rom 1:6 - -- That is, either called "by Him" (Joh 5:25), or the called "belonging to Him"; "Christ's called ones." Perhaps this latter sense is best supported, but...

That is, either called "by Him" (Joh 5:25), or the called "belonging to Him"; "Christ's called ones." Perhaps this latter sense is best supported, but one hardly knows which to prefer.

JFB: Rom 1:7 - -- (Compare Deu 33:12; Col 3:12).

(Compare Deu 33:12; Col 3:12).

JFB: Rom 1:7 - -- (See on Joh 1:14).

(See on Joh 1:14).

JFB: Rom 1:7 - -- The peace which Christ made through the blood of His cross (Col 1:20), and which reflects into the believing bosom "the peace of God which passeth all...

The peace which Christ made through the blood of His cross (Col 1:20), and which reflects into the believing bosom "the peace of God which passeth all understanding" (Phi 4:7).

JFB: Rom 1:7 - -- "Nothing speaks more decisively for the divinity of Christ than these juxtapositions of Christ with the eternal God, which run through the whole langu...

"Nothing speaks more decisively for the divinity of Christ than these juxtapositions of Christ with the eternal God, which run through the whole language of Scripture, and the derivation of purely divine influences from Him also. The name of no man can be placed by the side of the Almighty. He only, in whom the Word of the Father who is Himself God became flesh, may be named beside Him; for men are commanded to honor Him even as they honor the Father (Joh 5:23)" [OLSHAUSEN].

JFB: Rom 1:8 - -- This was quite practicable through the frequent visits paid to the capital from all the provinces; and the apostle, having an eye to the influence the...

This was quite practicable through the frequent visits paid to the capital from all the provinces; and the apostle, having an eye to the influence they would exercise upon others, as well as their own blessedness, given thanks for such faith to "his God through Jesus Christ," as being the source, according to his theology of faith, as of all grace in men.

JFB: Rom 1:9 - -- The word denotes religious service.

The word denotes religious service.

JFB: Rom 1:9 - -- From my inmost soul.

From my inmost soul.

JFB: Rom 1:9 - -- To which Paul's whole religious life and official activity were consecrated.

To which Paul's whole religious life and official activity were consecrated.

JFB: Rom 1:9 - -- So for the Ephesians (Eph 1:15-16); so for the Philippians (Phi 1:3-4); so for the Colossians (Col 1:3-4); so for the Thessalonians (1Th 1:2-3). What ...

So for the Ephesians (Eph 1:15-16); so for the Philippians (Phi 1:3-4); so for the Colossians (Col 1:3-4); so for the Thessalonians (1Th 1:2-3). What catholic love, what all-absorbing spirituality, what impassioned devotion to the glory of Christ among men!

JFB: Rom 1:10 - -- Though long anxious to visit the capital, he met with a number of providential hindrances (Rom 1:13; Rom 15:22; and see on Act 19:21; Act 23:11; Act 2...

Though long anxious to visit the capital, he met with a number of providential hindrances (Rom 1:13; Rom 15:22; and see on Act 19:21; Act 23:11; Act 28:15); insomuch that nearly a quarter of a century elapsed, after his conversion, ere his desire was accomplished, and that only as "a prisoner of Jesus Christ." Thus taught that his whole future was in the hands of God, he makes it his continual prayer that at length the obstacles to a happy and prosperous meeting might be removed.

JFB: Rom 1:11-12 - -- Not any supernatural gift, as the next clause shows, and compare 1Co 1:7. to the end that ye may be established.

Not any supernatural gift, as the next clause shows, and compare 1Co 1:7.

to the end that ye may be established.

JFB: Rom 1:12 - -- "Not wishing to "lord it over their faith," but rather to be a "helper of their joy," the apostle corrects his former expressions: my desire is to ins...

"Not wishing to "lord it over their faith," but rather to be a "helper of their joy," the apostle corrects his former expressions: my desire is to instruct you and do you good, that is, for us to instruct and do one another good: in giving I shall also receive" [JOWETT]. "Nor is he insincere in so speaking, for there is none so poor in the Church of Christ who may not impart to us something of value: it is only our malignity and pride that hinder us from gathering such fruit from every quarter" [CALVIN]. How "widely different is the apostolic style from that of the court of Papal Rome!" [BENGEL].

JFB: Rom 1:13 - -- Hindered.

Hindered.

JFB: Rom 1:13 - -- Chiefly by his desire to go first to places where Christ was not known (Rom 15:20-24).

Chiefly by his desire to go first to places where Christ was not known (Rom 15:20-24).

JFB: Rom 1:13 - -- Of my ministry

Of my ministry

JFB: Rom 1:13 - -- The GENTILE origin of the Church at Rome is here so explicitly stated, that those who conclude, merely from the Jewish strain of the argument, that th...

The GENTILE origin of the Church at Rome is here so explicitly stated, that those who conclude, merely from the Jewish strain of the argument, that they must have been mostly Israelites, decide in opposition to the apostle himself. (But see on Introduction to this Epistle.)

JFB: Rom 1:14-15 - -- Cultivated

Cultivated

JFB: Rom 1:14-15 - -- Rude.

Rude.

JFB: Rom 1:15 - -- He feels himself under an all-subduing obligation to carry the gospel to all classes of mankind, as adapted to and ordained equally for all (1Co 9:16)...

He feels himself under an all-subduing obligation to carry the gospel to all classes of mankind, as adapted to and ordained equally for all (1Co 9:16).

JFB: Rom 1:16 - -- (The words, "of Christ," which follow here, are not found in the oldest and best manuscripts). This language implies that it required some courage to ...

(The words, "of Christ," which follow here, are not found in the oldest and best manuscripts). This language implies that it required some courage to bring to "the mistress of the world" what "to the Jews was a stumbling-block and to the Greeks foolishness" (1Co 1:23). But its inherent glory, as God's life-giving message to a dying world, so filled his soul, that, like his blessed Master, he "despised the shame."

JFB: Rom 1:16 - -- Here and in Rom 1:17 the apostle announces the great theme of his ensuing argument; SALVATION, the one overwhelming necessity of perishing men; this r...

Here and in Rom 1:17 the apostle announces the great theme of his ensuing argument; SALVATION, the one overwhelming necessity of perishing men; this revealed IN THE GOSPEL MESSAGE; and that message so owned and honored of God as to carry, in the proclamation of it, GOD'S OWN POWER TO SAVE EVERY SOUL THAT EMBRACES IT, Greek and Barbarian, wise and unwise alike.

JFB: Rom 1:17 - -- That is (as the whole argument of the Epistle shows), GOD'S JUSTIFYING RIGHTEOUSNESS.

That is (as the whole argument of the Epistle shows), GOD'S JUSTIFYING RIGHTEOUSNESS.

JFB: Rom 1:17 - -- A difficult clause. Most interpreters (judging from the sense of such phrases elsewhere) take it to mean, "from one degree of faith to another." But t...

A difficult clause. Most interpreters (judging from the sense of such phrases elsewhere) take it to mean, "from one degree of faith to another." But this agrees ill with the apostle's design, which has nothing to do with the progressive stages of faith, but solely with faith itself as the appointed way of receiving God's "righteousness." We prefer, therefore, to understand it thus: "The righteousness of God is in the gospel message, revealed (to be) from (or 'by') faith to (or 'for') faith," that is, "in order to be by faith received." (So substantially, MELVILLE, MEYER, STUART, BLOOMFIELD, &c.).

JFB: Rom 1:17 - -- (Hab 2:4).

(Hab 2:4).

JFB: Rom 1:17 - -- This golden maxim of the Old Testament is thrice quoted in the New Testament--here; Gal 3:11; Heb 10:38 --showing that the gospel way of "LIFE BY FAIT...

This golden maxim of the Old Testament is thrice quoted in the New Testament--here; Gal 3:11; Heb 10:38 --showing that the gospel way of "LIFE BY FAITH," so far from disturbing, only continued and developed the ancient method.

JFB: Rom 1:17 - -- The Son of God now in resurrection--power and invested with authority to dispense all grace to men, and all gifts for the establishment and edificatio...

The Son of God now in resurrection--power and invested with authority to dispense all grace to men, and all gifts for the establishment and edification of the Church, Christ the righteousness provided of God for the justification of all that believe in His name; and that in this glorious Gospel, when preached as such, there resides the very power of God to save Jew and Gentile alike who embrace it. (3) While Christ is to be regarded as the ordained Channel of all grace from God to men (Rom 1:8), let none imagine that His proper divinity is in any respect compromised by this arrangement, since He is here expressly associated with "God the Father," in prayer for "grace and peace" (including all spiritual blessings) to rest upon this Church (Rom 1:7). (4) While this Epistle teaches, in conformity with the teaching of our Lord Himself, that all salvation is suspended upon faith, this is but half a truth, and will certainly minister to self-righteousness, if dissociated from another feature of the same truth, here explicitly taught, that this faith in God's own gift--for which accordingly in the case of the Roman believers, he "thanks his God through Jesus Christ" (Rom 1:8). (5) Christian fellowship, as indeed all real fellowship, is a mutual benefit; and as it is not possible for the most eminent saints and servants of Christ to impart any refreshment and profit to the meanest of their brethren without experiencing a rich return into their bosoms, so just in proportion to their humility and love will they feel their need of it and rejoice in it.

JFB: Rom 1:18 - -- His holy displeasure and righteous vengeance against sin.

His holy displeasure and righteous vengeance against sin.

JFB: Rom 1:18 - -- In the consciences of men, and attested by innumerable outward evidences of a moral government.

In the consciences of men, and attested by innumerable outward evidences of a moral government.

JFB: Rom 1:18 - -- That is, their whole irreligiousness, or their living without any conscious reference to God, and proper feelings towards Him.

That is, their whole irreligiousness, or their living without any conscious reference to God, and proper feelings towards Him.

JFB: Rom 1:18 - -- That is, all their deviations from moral rectitude in heart, speech, and behavior. (So these terms must be distinguished when used together, though, w...

That is, all their deviations from moral rectitude in heart, speech, and behavior. (So these terms must be distinguished when used together, though, when standing alone, either of them includes the other).

JFB: Rom 1:18 - -- Rather, "hold down," "hinder," or "keep back."

Rather, "hold down," "hinder," or "keep back."

JFB: Rom 1:18 - -- The apostle, though he began this verse with a comprehensive proposition regarding men in general, takes up in the end of it only one of the two great...

The apostle, though he began this verse with a comprehensive proposition regarding men in general, takes up in the end of it only one of the two great divisions of mankind, to whom he meant to apply it; thus gently sliding into his argument. But before enumerating their actual iniquities, he goes back to the origin of them all, their stifling the light which still remained to them. As darkness overspreads the mind, so impotence takes possession of the heart, when the "still small voice" of conscience is first disregarded, next thwarted, and then systematically deadened. Thus "the truth" which God left with and in men, instead of having free scope and developing itself, as it otherwise would, was obstructed (compare Mat 6:22-23; Eph 4:17-18).

JFB: Rom 1:19 - -- Rather, "which is."

Rather, "which is."

JFB: Rom 1:19 - -- The sense of this pregnant statement the apostle proceeds to unfold in Rom 1:20.

The sense of this pregnant statement the apostle proceeds to unfold in Rom 1:20.

JFB: Rom 1:20 - -- Or "since"

Or "since"

JFB: Rom 1:20 - -- The mind brightly beholding what the eye cannot discern.

The mind brightly beholding what the eye cannot discern.

JFB: Rom 1:20 - -- Thus, the outward creation is not the parent but the interpreter of our faith in God. That faith has its primary sources within our own breast (Rom 1:...

Thus, the outward creation is not the parent but the interpreter of our faith in God. That faith has its primary sources within our own breast (Rom 1:19); but it becomes an intelligible and articulate conviction only through what we observe around us ("by the things which are made," Rom 1:20). And thus are the inner and the outer revelation of God the complement of each other, making up between them one universal and immovable conviction that God is. (With this striking apostolic statement agree the latest conclusions of the most profound speculative students of Theism).

JFB: Rom 1:20 - -- Both that there is an Eternal Power, and that this is not a mere blind force, or pantheistic "spirit of nature," but the power of a living Godhead.

Both that there is an Eternal Power, and that this is not a mere blind force, or pantheistic "spirit of nature," but the power of a living Godhead.

JFB: Rom 1:20 - -- All their degeneracy being a voluntary departure from truth thus brightly revealed to the unsophisticated spirit.

All their degeneracy being a voluntary departure from truth thus brightly revealed to the unsophisticated spirit.

JFB: Rom 1:21 - -- That is, while still retaining some real knowledge of Him, and ere they sank down into the state next to be described.

That is, while still retaining some real knowledge of Him, and ere they sank down into the state next to be described.

JFB: Rom 1:21 - -- Neither yielded the adoration due to Himself, nor rendered the gratitude which His beneficence demanded.

Neither yielded the adoration due to Himself, nor rendered the gratitude which His beneficence demanded.

JFB: Rom 1:21 - -- (compare Jer 2:5).

(compare Jer 2:5).

JFB: Rom 1:21 - -- Thoughts, notions, speculations, regarding God; compare Mat 15:19; Luk 2:35; 1Co 3:20, Greek.

Thoughts, notions, speculations, regarding God; compare Mat 15:19; Luk 2:35; 1Co 3:20, Greek.

JFB: Rom 1:21 - -- "senseless," "stupid."

"senseless," "stupid."

JFB: Rom 1:21 - -- That is, their whole inner man.

That is, their whole inner man.

JFB: Rom 1:21 - -- How instructively is the downward progress of the human soul here traced!

How instructively is the downward progress of the human soul here traced!

JFB: Rom 1:22-23 - -- "boasting," or "pretending to be"

"boasting," or "pretending to be"

JFB: Rom 1:22-23 - -- "It is the invariable property of error in morals and religion, that men take credit to themselves for it and extol it as wisdom. So the heathen" (1Co...

"It is the invariable property of error in morals and religion, that men take credit to themselves for it and extol it as wisdom. So the heathen" (1Co 1:21) [THOLUCK].

JFB: Rom 1:23 - -- Or "exchanged."

Or "exchanged."

JFB: Rom 1:23 - -- Or "for"

Or "for"

JFB: Rom 1:23 - -- The allusion here is doubtless to the Greek worship, and the apostle may have had in his mind those exquisite chisellings of the human form which lay ...

The allusion here is doubtless to the Greek worship, and the apostle may have had in his mind those exquisite chisellings of the human form which lay so profusely beneath and around him as he stood on Mars' Hill; and "beheld their devotions." (See on Act 17:29). But as if that had not been a deep enough degradation of the living God, there was found "a lower deep" still.

JFB: Rom 1:23 - -- Referring now to the Egyptian and Oriental worship. In the face of these plain declarations of the descent of man's religious belief from loftier to e...

Referring now to the Egyptian and Oriental worship. In the face of these plain declarations of the descent of man's religious belief from loftier to ever lower and more debasing conceptions of the Supreme Being, there are expositors of this very Epistle (as REICHE and JOWETT), who, believing neither in any fall from primeval innocence, nor in the noble traces of that innocence which lingered even after the fall and were only by degrees obliterated by wilful violence to the dictates of conscience, maintain that man's religious history has been all along a struggle to rise, from the lowest forms of nature worship, suited to the childhood of our race, into that which is more rational and spiritual.

JFB: Rom 1:24 - -- In righteous retribution.

In righteous retribution.

JFB: Rom 1:24 - -- This divine abandonment of men is here strikingly traced in three successive stages, at each of which the same word is used (Rom 1:24, Rom 1:26; and R...

This divine abandonment of men is here strikingly traced in three successive stages, at each of which the same word is used (Rom 1:24, Rom 1:26; and Rom 1:28, where the word is rendered "gave over"). "As they deserted God, God in turn deserted them; not giving them divine (that is, supernatural) laws, and suffering them to corrupt those which were human; not sending them prophets, and allowing the philosophers to run into absurdities. He let them do what they pleased, even what was in the last degree vile, that those who had not honored God, might dishonor themselves" [GROTIUS].

JFB: Rom 1:25 - -- That is, the truth concerning God into idol falsehood.

That is, the truth concerning God into idol falsehood.

JFB: Rom 1:25 - -- Professing merely to worship the Creator by means of the creature, they soon came to lose sight of the Creator in the creature. How aggravated is the ...

Professing merely to worship the Creator by means of the creature, they soon came to lose sight of the Creator in the creature. How aggravated is the guilt of the Church of Rome, which, under the same flimsy pretext, does shamelessly what the heathen are here condemned for doing, and with light which the heathen never had!

JFB: Rom 1:25 - -- By this doxology the apostle instinctively relieves the horror which the penning of such things excited within his breast; an example to such as are c...

By this doxology the apostle instinctively relieves the horror which the penning of such things excited within his breast; an example to such as are called to expose like dishonor done to the blessed God.

JFB: Rom 1:26-27 - -- (See on Rom 1:24).

(See on Rom 1:24).

JFB: Rom 1:26-27 - -- That sex whose priceless jewel and fairest ornament is modesty, and which, when that is once lost, not only becomes more shameless than the other sex,...

That sex whose priceless jewel and fairest ornament is modesty, and which, when that is once lost, not only becomes more shameless than the other sex, but lives henceforth only to drag the other sex down to its level.

JFB: Rom 1:26-27 - -- The practices here referred to, though too abundantly attested by classic authors, cannot be further illustrated, without trenching on things which "o...

The practices here referred to, though too abundantly attested by classic authors, cannot be further illustrated, without trenching on things which "ought not to be named among us as become the saints." But observe how vice is here seen consuming and exhausting itself. When the passions, scourged by violent and continued indulgence in natural vices, became impotent to yield the craved enjoyment, resort was had to artificial stimulants by the practice of unnatural and monstrous vices. How early these were in full career, in the history of the world, the case of Sodom affectingly shows; and because of such abominations, centuries after that, the land of Canaan "spued out" its old inhabitants. Long before this chapter was penned, the Lesbians and others throughout refined Greece had been luxuriating in such debasements; and as for the Romans, TACITUS, speaking of the emperor Tiberius, tells us that new words had then to be coined to express the newly invented stimulants to jaded passion. No wonder that, thus sick and dying as was this poor humanity of ours under the highest earthly culture, its many-voiced cry for the balm in Gilead, and the Physician there, "Come over and help us," pierced the hearts of the missionaries of the Cross, and made them "not ashamed of the Gospel of Christ!"

JFB: Rom 1:27 - -- Alluding to the many physical and moral ways in which, under the righteous government of God, vice was made self-avenging.

Alluding to the many physical and moral ways in which, under the righteous government of God, vice was made self-avenging.

JFB: Rom 1:28-31 - -- Or "up" (see on Rom 1:24).

Or "up" (see on Rom 1:24).

JFB: Rom 1:28-31 - -- In the old sense of that word, that is, "not becoming," "indecorous," "shameful."

In the old sense of that word, that is, "not becoming," "indecorous," "shameful."

JFB: Rom 1:30 - -- The word usually signifies "God-hated," which some here prefer, in the sense of "abhorred of the Lord"; expressing the detestableness of their charact...

The word usually signifies "God-hated," which some here prefer, in the sense of "abhorred of the Lord"; expressing the detestableness of their character in His sight (compare Pro 22:14; Psa 73:20). But the active sense of the word, adopted in our version and by the majority of expositors, though rarer, agrees perhaps better with the context.

JFB: Rom 1:32 - -- From the voice of conscience, Rom 2:14-15

From the voice of conscience, Rom 2:14-15

JFB: Rom 1:32 - -- The stern law of divine procedure.

The stern law of divine procedure.

JFB: Rom 1:32 - -- Here used in its widest known sense, as the uttermost of divine vengeance against sin: see Act 28:4.

Here used in its widest known sense, as the uttermost of divine vengeance against sin: see Act 28:4.

JFB: Rom 1:32 - -- Which they might do under the pressure of temptation and in the heat of passion.

Which they might do under the pressure of temptation and in the heat of passion.

JFB: Rom 1:32 - -- Deliberately set their seal to such actions by encouraging and applauding the doing of them in others. This is the climax of our apostle's charges aga...

Deliberately set their seal to such actions by encouraging and applauding the doing of them in others. This is the climax of our apostle's charges against the heathen; and certainly, if the things are in themselves as black as possible, this settled and unblushing satisfaction at the practice of them, apart from all the blinding effects of present passion, must be regarded as the darkest feature of human depravity.

JFB: Rom 1:32 - -- "against all ungodliness" as well as "unrighteousness of men," against all disregard of God in the conduct of life as well as against all deviations f...

"against all ungodliness" as well as "unrighteousness of men," against all disregard of God in the conduct of life as well as against all deviations from moral rectitude; and therefore, since no child of Adam can plead guiltless either of "ungodliness" or of "unrighteousness," to a greater or less extent, it follows that every human being is involved in the awful sweep of "the wrath of God" (Rom 1:18). The apostle places this terrible truth in the forefront of his argument on justification by faith, that upon the basis of universal condemnation he might rear the edifice of a free, world-wide salvation; nor can the Gospel be scripturally preached or embraced, save as the good news of salvation to those that are all equally "lost." (2) We must not magnify the supernatural revelation which God has been pleased to make of Himself, through Abraham's family to the human race, at the expense of that older, and, in itself, lustrous revelation which He has made to the whole family of man through the medium of their own nature and the creation around them. Without the latter, the former would have been impossible, and those who have not been favored with the former will be without excuse, if they are deaf to the voice and blind to the glory of the latter (Rom 1:19-20). (3) Wilful resistance of light has a retributive tendency to blunt the moral perceptions and weaken the capacity to apprehend and approve of truth and goodness; and thus is the soul prepared to surrender itself, to an indefinite extent, to error and sin (Rom 1:21, &c.). (4) Pride of wisdom, as it is a convincing evidence of the want of it, so it makes the attainment of it impossible (Rom 1:22; and compare Mat 11:25; 1Co 3:18-20). (5) As idolatry, even in its most plausible forms, is the fruit of unworthy views of the Godhead, so its natural effect is to vitiate and debase still further the religious conceptions; nor is there any depth of degradation too low and too revolting for men's ideas of the Godhead to sink to, if only their natural temperament and the circumstances they are placed in be favorable to their unrestrained development (Rom 1:23, Rom 1:25). The apostle had Greece and Egypt in his eye when he penned this description. But all the paganisms of the East at this day attest its accuracy, from the more elaborate idolatry of India and the simpler and more stupid idolatry of China down to the childish rudiments of nature worship prevalent among the savage tribes. Alas! Christendom itself furnishes a melancholy illustration of this truth; the constant use of material images in the Church of Rome and the materialistic and sensuous character of its entire service (to say nothing of the less offensive but more stupid service of the Greek Church,) debasing the religious ideas of millions of nominal Christians, and lowering the whole character and tone of Christianity as represented within their immense pale. (6) Moral corruption invariably follows religious debasement. The grossness of pagan idolatry is only equalled by the revolting character and frightful extent of the immoralities which it fostered and consecrated (Rom 1:24, Rom 1:26-27). And so strikingly is this to be seen in all its essential features in the East at this day, that (as HODGE says) the missionaries have frequently been accused by the natives of having forged the whole of the latter part of this chapter, as they could not believe that so accurate a description of themselves could have been written eighteen centuries ago. The kingdoms of Israel and Judah furnish a striking illustration of the inseparable connection between religion and morals. Israel corrupted and debased the worship of Jehovah, and the sins with which they were charged were mostly of the grosser kind--intemperance and sensuality: the people of Judah, remaining faithful to the pure worship, were for a long time charged mostly with formality and hypocrisy; and only as they fell into the idolatries of the heathen around them, did they sink into their vices. And may not a like distinction be observed between the two great divisions of Christendom, the Popish and the Protestant? To test this, we must not look to Popery, surrounded with, and more or less influenced by, the presence and power of Protestantism; nor to Protestantism under every sort of disadvantage, internal and external. But look at Romanism where it has unrestrained liberty to develop its true character, and see whether impurity does not there taint society to its core, pervading alike the highest and the lowest classes; and then look at Protestantism where it enjoys the same advantages, and see whether it be not marked by a comparatively high standard of social virtue. (7) To take pleasure in what is sinful and vicious for its own sake, and knowing it to be such, is the last and lowest stage of human recklessness (Rom 1:32). But (8) this knowledge can never be wholly extinguished in the breast of men. So long as reason remains to them, there is still a small voice in the worst of men, protesting, in the name of the Power that implanted it, "that they which do such things are worthy of death" (Rom 1:32).

Clarke: Rom 1:2 - -- Which he had promised afore - Both in the law and in the prophets God showed his purpose to introduce into the world a more perfect and glorious sta...

Which he had promised afore - Both in the law and in the prophets God showed his purpose to introduce into the world a more perfect and glorious state of things; which state was to take place by and under the influence of the Messiah, who should bring life and immortality to light by his Gospel.

Clarke: Rom 1:3 - -- Concerning his Son - That is, the Gospel relates every thing concerning the conception, birth, preaching, miracles, passion, death, resurrection, an...

Concerning his Son - That is, the Gospel relates every thing concerning the conception, birth, preaching, miracles, passion, death, resurrection, and ascension of Jesus Christ, who was of the seed-royal, being, as far as his humanity was considered, the son of David, and then the only rightful heir to the Israelitish throne.

Clarke: Rom 1:4 - -- And declared to be the Son of God - See the note on Act 13:33, where this subject is considered at large. The word ορισθεντος, which we r...

And declared to be the Son of God - See the note on Act 13:33, where this subject is considered at large. The word ορισθεντος, which we render declared, comes from οριζω, to bound, define, determine, or limit, and hence our word horizon, the line that determines the farthest visible part of the earth, in reference to the heavens. In this place the word signifies such a manifest and complete exhibition of the subject as to render it indubitable. The resurrection of Christ from the dead was such a manifest proof of our Lord’ s innocence, the truth of his doctrine, and the fulfillment of all that the prophets had spoken, as to leave no doubt on any considerate and candid mind

Clarke: Rom 1:4 - -- With power - εν δυναμει, With a miraculous display of Divine energy; for, how could his body be raised again, but by the miraculous energy...

With power - εν δυναμει, With a miraculous display of Divine energy; for, how could his body be raised again, but by the miraculous energy of God? Some apply the word here to the proof of Christ’ s sonship; as if it were said that he was most manifestly declared to be the Son of God, with such powerful evidence and argument as to render the truth irresistible

Clarke: Rom 1:4 - -- According to the spirit of holiness - There are many differences of sentiment relative to the meaning of this phrase in this place; some supposing t...

According to the spirit of holiness - There are many differences of sentiment relative to the meaning of this phrase in this place; some supposing that the spirit of holiness implies the Divine nature of Jesus Christ; others, his immaculate sanctity, etc. To me it seems that the apostle simply means that the person called Jesus, lately crucified at Jerusalem, and in whose name salvation was preached to the world, was the Son of God, the very Messiah promised before in the holy Scriptures; and that he was this Messiah was amply demonstrated

1st, By his resurrection from the dead, the irrefragable proof of his purity, innocence, and the Divine approbation; for, had he been a malefactor, as the Jews pretended, the miraculous power of God would not have been exerted in raising his body from the dead

2nd, He was proved to be the Son of God, the promised Messiah, by the Holy Spirit, (called here the spirit of holiness), which he sent down upon his apostles, and not on them only, but on all that believed on his name; by whose influence multitudes were convinced of sin, righteousness, and judgment, and multitudes sanctified unto God; and it was by the peculiar unction of this spirit of holiness, that the apostles gave witness of the resurrection of the Lord Jesus, Act 4:33

Thus, then, Christ was proved to be the true Messiah, the son of David according to the flesh, having the sole right to the throne of Israel; and God recognized this character, and this right, by his resurrection from the dead, and sending forth the various gifts and graces of the Spirit of holiness in his name.

Clarke: Rom 1:5 - -- Grace and apostleship - The peculiar influence and the essential qualifications which such an office requires. Without the Grace, favor, and peculia...

Grace and apostleship - The peculiar influence and the essential qualifications which such an office requires. Without the Grace, favor, and peculiar help of God, he could not have been an apostle: he had an extraordinary conversion, and an extraordinary call to preach the Gospel. Probably χαριν και αποστολην, grace and apostleship, mean the same as χαριν της αποστολης, the apostolical office; for so the word χαρις means in Rom 12:3; Rom 15:15; 1Co 3:10; Eph 3:8. See the various acceptations of the word grace, Rom 1:7

Clarke: Rom 1:5 - -- For obedience to the faith - That by this office, which I have received from God, and the power by which it is accompanied, I might proclaim the fai...

For obedience to the faith - That by this office, which I have received from God, and the power by which it is accompanied, I might proclaim the faith, the Gospel of Jesus; and show all nations the necessity of believing in it, in order to their salvation. Here is

1.    The Gospel of the Son of God

2.    An apostle divinely commissioned and empowered to preach it

3.    The necessity of faith in the name of Jesus, as the only Savior of the world

4.    Of obedience, as the necessary consequence of genuine faith. And

5.    This is to be proclaimed among all nations; that all might have the opportunity of believing and being saved.

Clarke: Rom 1:6 - -- Ye are the called - Ye Romans are all invited to believe in Christ Jesus, for the salvation of your souls; and to you, with the rest, my apostolical...

Ye are the called - Ye Romans are all invited to believe in Christ Jesus, for the salvation of your souls; and to you, with the rest, my apostolical mission extends. This appears to be the most obvious sense of the word called in this place - to be called by the Gospel is to be invited to believe in Christ Jesus, and become his disciples. The word sometimes means constituted, or made, as in Rom 1:1.

Clarke: Rom 1:7 - -- Called to be saints - Invited to become holy persons, by believing the Gospel and receiving the gifts of the Holy Ghost. Or, here, the word may have...

Called to be saints - Invited to become holy persons, by believing the Gospel and receiving the gifts of the Holy Ghost. Or, here, the word may have the meaning of made or constituted, as above; κλητοις αγιοις, to all that be in Rome, Constituted saints, for they had already received the Gospel grace, and were formed into a Christian Church

Clarke: Rom 1:7 - -- Grace to you - χαρις υμιν ; May you be partakers of the Divine favor, the source whence every blessing is derived I think it necessary, on...

Grace to you - χαρις υμιν ; May you be partakers of the Divine favor, the source whence every blessing is derived

I think it necessary, once for all, to give the several acceptations of this word grace which occur in the sacred writings

1.    The word χαριν signifies in general favor or benevolence, but especially that favor which is powerful and active, and loads its objects with benefits. Luk 1:30 : Fear not, Mary, thou hast found Favor, χαριν, with God. Luk 2:40 : And the child grew - and the Grace of God, χαρις θεου, the favor of God was upon him. Luk 1:52 : And Jesus increased in Favor, χαριτι Grace, with God and man. Act 2:47 : Having Favor, χαριν, Grace, with all the people. Act 4:33 : And great Grace, χαρις, Favor, was upon them all. The apostles were at that time in universal favor with the multitude. In this sense the word occurs in a great variety of places, both in the Old and New Testaments

2.    Hence it is often used for the blessing which it dispenses; for, if God be favourably disposed towards a person, his beneficent acts, in that person’ s behalf, will be a necessary consequence of such favor. Joh 1:14 : Full of Grace and truth; accomplished in all spiritual blessings. Joh 1:16 : And Grace upon Grace: he who is full of the most excellent blessings, confers them liberally on all believers. Act 11:23 : When he had seen the Grace of God, i.e. had the fullest evidence that they were richly endowed with heavenly gifts. 1Co 1:4 : For the Grace of God which is given you - the Divine blessings conferred upon you. 2Co 9:8 : God is able to make all Grace abound toward you; i.e. to enrich you with every benediction. This is also a very common acceptation of the word; and in this sense the word grace or favor is now generally understood among religious people. The grace of God meaning with them some Divine or spiritual blessing communicated

3.    It is sometimes taken for the whole of the Christian religion, as being the grandest possible display of God’ s favor to a lost, ruined world: and in this sense it appears to be used, Joh 1:17 : For the Law was given by Moses; but Grace and truth came by Jesus Christ: where the term Grace is evidently opposed to Law; the latter meaning the Mosaic, the other the Christian, dispensation. Act 13:43 : Barnabas persuaded them to continue in the Grace of God; i.e. to hold fast their profession of the religion of Christ. Rom 6:14 : Ye are not under the Law, but under Grace - ye are no longer under obligation to fulfill the Mosaic precepts, but are under the Christian dispensation. See also Rom 6:15; and see 2Co 1:12; 2Co 6:1; Gal 1:6; Col 1:6; 2Ti 2:1, Tit 2:11 : The Grace of God, that bringeth salvation unto all men, hath appeared. The Jewish religion was restricted in its benefits to a few; but the Christian religion proposes the salvation of all men; and the author of it has become a sacrifice for the sins of the whole world. Heb 12:15 : Looking diligently lest any man fall from the Grace of God - lest any man apostatize from the Christian religion, and the blessings of pardon and holiness which he has received through it. 1Pe 5:12 : This is the true Grace of God wherein ye stand - the Christian religion which ye have received is the genuine religion of God

4.    It signifies all the blessings and benefits which Christ has purchased, and which he gives to true believers, both in time and eternity. See Rom 5:15, Rom 5:17, where the grace of God is opposed to death; i.e. to all the wretchedness and misery brought into the world by Adam’ s transgression. 1Co 16:23 : The Grace of the Lord Jesus Christ be with you all - May every blessing purchased by Christ’ s passion and death be the portion of you all. Gal 5:4 : Ye are fallen from Grace - ye have lost the blessings of the Gospel by submitting to circumcision

5.    It signifies the apostolic and ministerial office, or the authority to propagate the Christian religion, and the unction or influence by which that office is executed; so in the 5th verse of this chapter, (Rom 1:5) as has been already noted: By whom we have received Grace and apostleship, or, the apostolic office. Rom 13:3 : I say, through the Grace given unto me; i.e. I command you, by the authority of my apostolic office, etc. See also Rom 13:6

6.    It signifies a gift, salary, or money collected for the use of the poor. 1Co 16:3 : Whomsoever ye shall approve - them will I send to bring your Liberality, την χαριν υμων, your Grace; i.e. the collection made for the poor saints: see 1Co 16:1. 2Co 8:4 : Praying us - that we would receive the Gift, την χαριν, the Grace, the contribution made in the Churches of Macedonia, for the relief of the poor. In this sense it is used in Ecclus. 17:22: He will keep the Good Deeds of man, χαριν, the same as ελεημοσυνη, alms, in the beginning of the verse; and it signifies a kind or friendly act, in the same author. Ecclus. 29:16: Forget not the Friendship, χαριτας, of thy surety. Graces or χαρις, was a deity among the ancients; and the three Graces, αι τρεις χαριτες, were called Pitho, Aglaia, and Euphrosyne; πειθω, mild persuasion; αγλαια, dignity; ευφροσυνη, liberality and joyfulness; and these were always painted naked, to show that all benefits should be gratuitous, this being essential to the nature of a gift. See Suidas, in χαριτας

7.    It sometimes signifies merely thanks or thanksgiving. See Luk 17:9 : Doth he thank, μη χαριν εχει, that servant? Rom 6:17 : But God be Thanked, χαρις οε τω θεω . 1Co 10:30 : For if I by Grace, χαριτι, Thanksgiving, as our margin has it, and properly

8.    It signifies remuneration, wages, or reward Luk 6:32-34 : If ye love them that love you - do good to them which do good to you - lend to them of whom ye hope to receive, what Thank have ye? ποια υμιν χαρις εστι ; what Reward have ye? This appears, from the parallel place, Mat 5:46, to be most evidently the meaning: τινα μισθον εχετε ; what Reward have ye? The word is used in this sense by several Greek writers

9.    It signifies whatever is the means of procuring the favor or kindness of another. 1Pe 2:19, 1Pe 2:20 : For this is Thankworthy, τουτο γαρ χαρις παρα τῳ Θεῳ, this is the means of Procuring Favor from God

10.    It signifies joy, pleasure, and gratification, which is the, meaning of cara, and with which it is often confounded in the New Testament. Phm 1:7 : For we have great Joy, χαριν γαρ εχομεν πολλην . Tobit 7:18: The Lord give thee Joy, χαριν, for this thy sorrow. In this sense the word is used by the best Greek writers; and in this sense it appears to be used, 2Co 1:15

11.    It signifies the performance of an act which is pleasing or grateful to others. Act 24:27 : Felix, willing to show the Jews a Pleasure, χαριτας καταθεσθαι, to perform an act which he knew would be highly gratifying to them

12.    It signifies whatever has the power or influence to procure favor, etc. Suavity, kindness, benevolence, gentle demeanour. Luk 4:22 : All wondered at the Gracious Words, τοις λογοις της χαριτος, the benevolent, kind, and tender expressions; such as his text, Luk 4:18, would naturally lead him to speak. He hath anointed me to preach the Gospel to the poor; he hath sent me to heal the broken-hearted, to preach deliverance to the captives, etc. Eph 4:29; Col 4:6 : Let your speech be always with Grace; i.e. gracious, kind, benevolent, savouring of the doctrine of Christ: it is thus used by several Greek writers. See Schleusner. As the word χαρις Grace, most frequently signifies some blessing or benefit calculated to promote human happiness, it is generally derived from χαρω, I rejoice, because of the effect produced by the blessing

Clarke: Rom 1:7 - -- And peace - ειρηνη, the same as שלום shalom in Hebrew, generally signifying all kinds of blessing, but especially harmony and unity, ...

And peace - ειρηνη, the same as שלום shalom in Hebrew, generally signifying all kinds of blessing, but especially harmony and unity, and the bond of such unity. The most probable derivation of the word ειρηνη is from ειρω, I bind, and εν, one - because peace unites and binds those who were, by discord, before disunited. In the New Testament it signifies -

1.    Peace, public or private, in the general acceptation of the word, as implying reconciliation and friendship; and to the etymology of the word the apostle seems to allude in Eph 4:3 : Endeavouring to keep the Unity of the Spirit in the Bond of Peace. Act 12:20 : They of Tyre and Sidon desired Peace - they sought reconciliation, with Herod, by means of Blastus, the king’ s chamberlain

2.    It signifies regularity, good order. 1Co 14:33 : God is not the God of confusion, but of Peace

3.    It signifies the labor or study of preserving peace and concord; and this is supposed to be its meaning, Mat 10:34; Luk 12:51; and Act 7:26. Rom 14:17 : For the kingdom of God is righteousness and Peace - the Christian dispensation admits of no contention, but inculcates peace. 1Co 7:15 : God hath called us to Peace - to labor to preserve quietness and concord. Heb 12:14 : Follow Peace - labor to preserve it

4.    It signifies the author or procurer of peace and concord. Eph 2:14 : He is our Peace - the author of concord betwixt Jews and Gentiles

5.    It signifies the Gospel and its blessings. Eph 2:17 : And came and preached Peace to you which were afar off, and to them that were nigh

6.    It signifies all kinds of mental and corporeal happiness, and especially the happiness of Christians. Luk 1:79 : To guide our feet into the way of Peace - to show us the way to obtain true happiness. Luk 19:42 : The things which belong unto thy Peace - that by which thou mightest have been made truly happy. 1Th 5:23 : The very God of Peace - God, the only source of true felicity. Joh 16:33 : These things have I spoken unto you, that in me ye might have Peace - that ye might have confidence and happiness in believing on me as your only Savior

7.    It signifies good wishes and affectionate prayers. Mat 10:13 : And if the house be worthy, let your Peace come upon it. Our Lord commands his disciples, Mat 10:12, to salute the house into which they entered; and this was done by saying, Peace be unto this house! that is, Let every blessing, spiritual and temporal, be the portion of this family! See Luk 10:6; Joh 14:27; Act 15:33 : They were let go in Peace - they had the most fervent and affectionate prayers of the Church

8.    It signifies praise. Luk 19:38 : Peace in heaven and glory in the highest! - May all the heavenly host praise God, and give him the highest honor

9.    It signifies benignity, benevolence, favor. Rom 5:1 : Being justified by faith, we have Peace with God - In consequence of having our sins forgiven, we have a clear sense of the Divine favor. Phi 4:7 : The Peace of God which passeth all understanding - the inexpressible blessedness of a sense of the Divine favor. See Schleusner’ s Lexicon

Clarke: Rom 1:7 - -- From God our Father - The apostle wishes them all the blessings which can flow from God, as the fountain of grace, producing in them all the happine...

From God our Father - The apostle wishes them all the blessings which can flow from God, as the fountain of grace, producing in them all the happiness which a heart filled with the peace of God can possess; all of which are to be communicated to them through the Lord Jesus Christ. See the note on Act 28:31.

Clarke: Rom 1:8 - -- First, I thank my God - From this to the end of Rom 1:17 belongs to the preface, in which the apostle endeavors to conciliate the good opinion of th...

First, I thank my God - From this to the end of Rom 1:17 belongs to the preface, in which the apostle endeavors to conciliate the good opinion of the Christians at Rome, and to prepare their minds for his reproofs and exhortations

Clarke: Rom 1:8 - -- Your faith is spoken - καταγγελλεται, is celebrated, throughout the whole world - in every place where the Christian religion is profe...

Your faith is spoken - καταγγελλεται, is celebrated, throughout the whole world - in every place where the Christian religion is professed, through all parts of the Roman dominions; for in this sense we should understand the words, the whole world.

Clarke: Rom 1:9 - -- Whom I serve with my spirit - λατπευω Whom I worship with the profoundest religious reverence; for so the original certainly means: I not o...

Whom I serve with my spirit - λατπευω Whom I worship with the profoundest religious reverence; for so the original certainly means: I not only employ all the powers of my body in this service, but all those of my soul; being thoroughly convinced of the absolute truth of the religion I preach. Probably St. Paul opposes, in this place, the spiritual worship of the Gospel to the external, or what some call the carnal, worship of the Jews. Mine is not a religion of ceremonies, but one in which the life and power of the eternal Spirit are acknowledged and experienced.

Clarke: Rom 1:10 - -- Making request, etc. - By this we see how earnestly the apostle longed to see Rome. It had long been a subject of continual prayer to God, that he m...

Making request, etc. - By this we see how earnestly the apostle longed to see Rome. It had long been a subject of continual prayer to God, that he might have a prosperous journey to, or rather meeting with, them, for so we should understand the word ευοδωθησμαι· that he had a prosperous meeting with them we cannot doubt; that he had a disastrous journey to them the 27th of the Acts fully proves.

Clarke: Rom 1:11 - -- Some spiritual gift - This probably means some of the extraordinary gifts of the Holy Spirit, which, being given to them, might tend greatly to esta...

Some spiritual gift - This probably means some of the extraordinary gifts of the Holy Spirit, which, being given to them, might tend greatly to establish their faith in the Gospel of Christ; and it is very likely that such gifts were only conferred by means of apostles; and as the apostle had not yet been at Rome, consequently the Roman Christians had not yet received any of these miraculous gifts, and thus they differed widely from all the other Churches which had been raised by the apostle’ s ministry.

Clarke: Rom 1:12 - -- That I may be comforted together with you - He here, with great address, intimates that he longs for this opportunity, as well on his own account as...

That I may be comforted together with you - He here, with great address, intimates that he longs for this opportunity, as well on his own account as on theirs, and to show them that he arrogates nothing to himself; for he intimates that it will require the conjoint action of their faith as well as his own, to be the means of receiving those blessings from God to which he refers.

Clarke: Rom 1:13 - -- But was let hitherto - The word let, from the Anglo-Saxon to hinder, signifies impediment or hinderance of any kind: but it is likely that the origi...

But was let hitherto - The word let, from the Anglo-Saxon to hinder, signifies impediment or hinderance of any kind: but it is likely that the original word, εκωλυθην, I was forbidden, refers to a Divine prohibition: - he would have visited them long before, but God did not see right to permit him.

Clarke: Rom 1:14 - -- I am a debtor both to the Greeks, and to the barbarians - It has been remarked before that all the nations of the earth, themselves excepted, were t...

I am a debtor both to the Greeks, and to the barbarians - It has been remarked before that all the nations of the earth, themselves excepted, were termed barbarians by the Greeks. See the origin of the word barbarous in the note on Act 28:2 (note). The apostle considers himself, by his apostolical office and call, under obligation to preach the Gospel to all people, as far as the providence of God might open his way; for this is implied in the Divine commission: - Go ye into all the world, and preach the Gospel to every creature - to the wise and the unwise; to the learned and cultivated as well as to the unlearned and uncultivated. This evidently appears to be the import of the terms.

Clarke: Rom 1:15 - -- I am ready to preach - προθυμον ; I have a ready mind. I was only prevented by the providence of God from visiting you long ago. His time i...

I am ready to preach - προθυμον ; I have a ready mind. I was only prevented by the providence of God from visiting you long ago. His time is best: in the mean time I write, by his direction, to comfort and instruct you.

Clarke: Rom 1:16 - -- I am not ashamed of the Gospel of Christ - This text is best illustrated by Isa 28:16; Isa 49:23, quoted by the apostle, Rom 10:11 : For the Scriptu...

I am not ashamed of the Gospel of Christ - This text is best illustrated by Isa 28:16; Isa 49:23, quoted by the apostle, Rom 10:11 : For the Scripture saith, Whosoever believeth on him, shall not be ashamed; i.e. they shall neither be confounded, nor disappointed of their hope. The Jews, by not believing on Jesus Christ, by not receiving him as the promised Messiah, but trusting in others, have been disappointed, ashamed, and confounded, from that time to the present day. Their expectation is cut off; and, while rejecting Christ, and expecting another Messiah, they have continued under the displeasure of God, and are ashamed of their confidence. On the other hand, those who have believed on Christ have, in and through him, all the blessings of which the prophets spoke; every promise of God being yea and amen through him. Paul, as a Jew, believed on Christ Jesus; and in believing he had life through his name; through him he enjoyed an abundance of grace; so that, being filled with that happiness which an indwelling Christ produces, he could cheerfully say, I am not ashamed of the Gospel of Christ. And why? Because he felt it to be the power of God to the salvation of his believing soul. This appears to be the true sense of this passage, and this interpretation acquires additional strength from the consideration that St. Paul is here most evidently addressing himself to the Jews

Clarke: Rom 1:16 - -- It is the power of God unto salvation - δυναμις γαρ θεου εστιν· The almighty power of God accompanies this preaching to the so...

It is the power of God unto salvation - δυναμις γαρ θεου εστιν· The almighty power of God accompanies this preaching to the souls of them that believe; and the consequence is, they are saved; and what but the power of God can save a fallen, sinful soul

Clarke: Rom 1:16 - -- To the Jew first - Not only the Jews have the first offer of this Gospel, but they have the greatest need of it; being so deeply fallen, and having ...

To the Jew first - Not only the Jews have the first offer of this Gospel, but they have the greatest need of it; being so deeply fallen, and having sinned against such glorious privileges, they are much more culpable than the Gentiles, who never had the light of a Divine revelation

Clarke: Rom 1:16 - -- And also to the Greek - Though the salvation of God has hitherto been apparently confined to the Jewish people, yet it shall be so no longer, for th...

And also to the Greek - Though the salvation of God has hitherto been apparently confined to the Jewish people, yet it shall be so no longer, for the Gospel of Christ is sent to the Gentiles as well as the Jews; God having put no difference between them; and Jesus Christ having tasted death for Every man.

Clarke: Rom 1:17 - -- For therein - In the Gospel of Christ

For therein - In the Gospel of Christ

Clarke: Rom 1:17 - -- Is the righteousness of God - God’ s method of saving sinners

Is the righteousness of God - God’ s method of saving sinners

Clarke: Rom 1:17 - -- Revealed from faith to faith - Shown to be by faith, and not by the works of any law; for Abraham, the father and founder of the Jewish people, was ...

Revealed from faith to faith - Shown to be by faith, and not by the works of any law; for Abraham, the father and founder of the Jewish people, was justified by faith, before even the law was given; and by believing, in reference to the spiritual object held forth in the various ordinances of the law, and now revealed under the Gospel, he and all his believing descendants have been justified. And thus the faith of the old covenant led on to the faith of the new covenant, which shows that salvation has been by faith from the call of Abraham to the present time. And, from the beginning, all that were just or righteous in the earth became such by faith, and by this principle alone they were enabled to persevere; as it is written, The just shall live by faith. That δικαιοσυνη, which we translate righteousness in this verse, signifies God’ s method of saving mankind by faith in Christ, is fully evident from the use of the term in Rom 9:30 : The Gentiles which followed not after Righteousness - who had no knowledge by revelation, of God’ s method of justifying and saving sinners, have attained to Righteousness - have had imparted to them God’ s method of salvation by faith in Christ. Rom 9:31 : But Israel, the Jews, which followed after the law of righteousness - that law, the end or object of which is Christ, and through him justification to all that believe (Rom 10:4), have not attained to the law of righteousness - have not found out the genuine plan of salvation, even in that law which so strongly and generally proclaims justification by faith. And why have they not found it? Rom 9:32 : Because they sought it not by faith, but as it were by the works of the law - they did not discern that even its works or prescribed religious observances were intended to lead to faith in that glorious Mediator of whom they were the types and representatives; but the Jews trusted in the observances themselves, hoping to acquire justification and final salvation by that means. For they stumbled at the stumbling-stone - at the doctrine of Christ crucified as the only sure ground on which the expectation of future salvation can be founded. Therefore, being ignorant of God’ s righteousness - God’ s method of saving sinners, and going about to establish their own righteousness - their own method of salvation, by the observance of those rites and ceremonies which should have led them by faith to Christ, they did not submit themselves to the righteousness of God - they would not submit to be saved in God’ s way, and therefore rejected, persecuted, and crucified the Lord Jesus; see Rom 10:3. This collation of passages most evidently shows that the word righteousness here means simply God’ s method of saving sinners, or God’ s way of salvation, in opposition to the ways and means invented by the fancies or prejudices of men

There are few words in the sacred writings which are taken in a greater variety of acceptations than the word צדקה tsedakah in Hebrew, and δικαιοσυνη in Greek, both of which we generally translate righteousness. Our English word was originally rightwiseness, from the Anglo-Saxon justice, right, and to know ; and thus the righteous man was a person who was allowed to understand the claims of justice and right, and who, knowing them, acted according to their dictates. Such a man is thoroughly wise; he aims at the attainment of the best end by the use of the best means. This is a true definition of wisdom, and the righteous man is he that knows most and acts best. The Hebrew צדק tsadak , in its ideal meaning, contains the notion of a beam or scales in equipoise, what we call even balance; and it is well known that in all the personifications of Justice, both ancient and modern, she is represented as a beautiful female with a bandage on her eyes, and a beam and scales in her hand, so perfectly poised that neither end preponderates

The Greek word δικαιοσυνη has been derived from διχαζω, to divide; and hence δικη, justice, because it is the property of this virtue to divide to each his due. With other etymologies it is useless to trouble the reader. Both the noun δικαιοσυνη and the verb δικαιοω have a great variety of meaning in the New Testament; but they are all reducible to this original idea, acting according to the requisitions of justice or right. It may not be improper to notice some of the chief of these acceptations in this place

1.    The act of distributing to each man his due is the sense of the word, Act 17:31 : He will judge the world in Righteousness, i.e. according to the principles of eternal justice and rectitude. See also Rev 19:2 : In Righteousness doth he judge and make war

2.    It signifies a holy life, as proceeding from piety towards God. Luk 1:75 : Might serve him in holiness and Righteousness all the days of our life

3.    It signifies benignity, liberality, and particularly almsgiving, as justice and righteousness require us, being only stewards of God’ s bounty, to share it with the necessitous. Mat 6:1 : Take heed that ye do not your Alms, δικαιοσυνην, your Righteousness, before men. Rom 3:5 : But if our unrighteousness commend the Righteousness, the benignity of God. 2Co 9:10 : Increase the fruits of your Righteousness, i.e. of your liberality

4.    It signifies God’ s method of saving sinners; the way which is agreeable to his righteousness and liberality. See the former part of this note, and the scriptures there referred to

5.    It signifies the reward or issue of liberality. 2Co 9:9 : He hath scattered abroad; he hath given to the poor; his Righteousness - the reward of his bounty, remaineth for ever. See Psa 112:9

6.    It signifies the whole collection of graces, which constitute the complete Christian character. Mat 5:6 : Blessed are they that hunger and thirst after Righteousness - they who ardently long for the full salvation of God. Mat 5:10, Mat 5:20 : If your Righteousness exceed not the righteousness, etc. Mat 6:33 : Seek the kingdom of God and his Righteousness

7.    It signifies the result of faith in God and submission to his will, exemplified in a holy and useful life. Heb 11:7 : By faith Noah prepared an ark, and became heir of the Righteousness which is by faith - he escaped the deluge and became the instrument of repeopling the world

8.    It signifies an exact observance of religious ordinances and precepts. Phi 3:6 : Touching the Righteousness which is of the law, blameless - having lived in an exact conformity to all the Mosaic precepts. In this sense it is to be understood, Mat 3:15 : Thus it becomes us to fulfill all Righteousness - to observe every precept of the law

9.    It signifies the favor or pardoning mercy of God. Rom 4:6 : The blessedness of the man unto whom God imputeth Righteousness - without works - the man is happy to whom God has granted the remission of sins, without respect to his observance of the law of Moses

10.    In 2Co 5:21, δικαιοσυνη, righteousness, is put for δικαιος, righteous: That we might become the righteousness of God - that we might receive such a righteousness or holiness, such a salvation, as is worthy of God’ s grace to impart, and such as the necessities of mankind require

A few of the leading acceptations of the verb δικαιοω, which we translate to justify, may be here properly subjoined, as this verb is so repeatedly used in this epistle

1.    It signifies so declare or pronounce one just or righteous; or, in other words, to declare him to be what he really is. 1Ti 3:16 : He was Justified in the Spirit. - By the almighty power of the Spirit he was proved to be the True Messiah

2.    To esteem a thing properly. Mat 11:19 : Wisdom is Justified of her children. - Wisdom, propriety of conduct, is properly estimated by wise men

3.    It signifies to approve, praise, and commend. The publicans Justified God, Luk 7:29; praised him for calling them to such a state of salvation. Luk 16:15 : Ye are they which Justify yourselves before men - Ye are self-commended, self-applauded, and self-praised. In this sense it is often used in the Greek apocryphal books. Ecclus. 7:5: Justify not thyself before the Lord - Do not applaud thyself in the presence of thy - Maker. Ecclus.10:29: Who will Justify (praise or applaud) him that sinneth against his own soul. Ecclus 18:2: The Lord only is righteous, δικαιωθησεται, shall be Justified, i.e. praised, because there is none other but he

4.    The verb δικαιοομαι is used to clear from all sin. 1Co 4:4 : For I know nothing by myself; yet am I not hereby Justified - A man’ s own consciousness of integrity is not a proof that he is clear from all sin in the sight of God

5.    A judge is said to justify not only when he condemns and punishes, but also when he defends the cause of the innocent. See Eurip. Heraclid. ver. 190. Thucyd. iii. p. 200. Polyb. iii. 31, and Schleusner on δικαιοω . Hence δικαιουσθαι is taken in a forensic sense, and signifies to be found or declared righteous, innocent, etc. Mat 12:37 : By thy words shalt thou be Justified - thou shalt be declared to be righteous. Rom 3:4 : That thou mightest be Justified in thy saying - that thou mightest be proved to be true in what thou hast said

6.    It signifies to set free, to escape from. Act 13:39 : And by him all that believe are Justified from all things, from which ye could not be Justified by the law - by faith in Christ a man escapes those evils which, otherwise, the law of Moses would inflict upon him. Rom 6:7 : For he that is dead, δεδικαιωται, is Justified, properly rendered by our translators, is Freed from sin

7.    It signifies also to receive one into favor, to pardon sin. Rom 8:30 : Whom he called, them he also Justified - he received them into favor and pardoned their sins. Luk 18:14 : This man went down to his house Justified - he humbled himself, repented of his iniquity, and God forgave his sin. Rom 3:20 : By the deeds of the law there shall no flesh be Justified - no soul can have his sins forgiven through the observance of the Mosaic law. Rom 4:2 : If Abraham were Justified (had his sin pardoned) by works. 1Co 6:11 : Such were some of you, but ye are Justified - ye are received into the Divine favor, and have your sins forgiven. See Jam 2:21-25; Rom 3:24, Rom 3:28; Rom 5:1, Rom 5:9; Gal 2:16, Gal 2:17; Gal 3:11, Gal 3:24; Gal 5:4; Tit 3:7. In all these texts the word justify is taken in the sense of remission of sins through faith in Christ Jesus; and does not mean making the person just or righteous, but treating him as if he were so, having already forgiven him his sins

Clarke: Rom 1:17 - -- The just shall live by faith - This has been understood two ways 1.    That the just or righteous man cannot live a holy and useful l...

The just shall live by faith - This has been understood two ways

1.    That the just or righteous man cannot live a holy and useful life without exercising continual faith in our Lord Jesus: which is strictly true; for He only who has brought him into that state of salvation can preserve him in it; and he stands by faith

2.    It is contended by some able critics that the words of the original text should be pointed thus: ‘ ο δε δικαιος εκ πιστεως, ζησεται . The just by faith, shall live; that is, he alone that is justified by faith shall be saved: which is also true; as it is impossible to get salvation in any other way. This last meaning is probably the true one, as the original text in Hab 2:4, speaks of those who believed the declarations of God when the Chaldeans besieged Jerusalem, and, having acted conformably to them, escaped with their lives.

Clarke: Rom 1:18 - -- For the wrath of God is revealed - The apostle has now finished his preface, and comes to the grand subject of the epistle; namely, to show the abso...

For the wrath of God is revealed - The apostle has now finished his preface, and comes to the grand subject of the epistle; namely, to show the absolute need of the Gospel of Christ, because of the universal corruption of mankind; which was so great as to incense the justice of God, and call aloud for the punishment of the worl

1.    He shows that all the heathen nations were utterly corrupt, and deserved this threatened punishment. And this is the subject of the first chapter, from Rom 1:18 to the end (Rom 1:18-32)

2.    He shows that the Jews, notwithstanding the greatness of their privileges, were no better than the Gentiles; and therefore the wrath of God was revealed against them also. This subject he treats in Romans 2:1-29 and Romans 3:1-19

3.    He returns, as it were, on both, Rom 3:20-31, and proves that, as the Jews and Gentiles were equally corrupt, they could not be saved by the deeds of any law; that they stood equally in need of that salvation which God had provided; that both were equally entitled to that salvation, for God was the God of the Gentiles as well as of the Jews

By οργη θεου, the wrath of God, we are not to understand any uneasy passion in the Divine Being; but the displeasure of his righteousness, which is expressed by the punishments inflicted on the ungodly, those who retain not God in their knowledge; and the unrighteous, those whose lives are profligate

As, in the Gospel, the righteousness of God is revealed for the salvation of the ungodly, so is the wrath of God revealed against the workers of iniquity. Those who refuse to be saved in the way revealed by his mercy must be consumed in the way revealed by his justice

Clarke: Rom 1:18 - -- Ungodliness - ασεβειαν, from α , negative, and σεβω or σεβομαι, I worship, probably intended here to express atheism, polyt...

Ungodliness - ασεβειαν, from α , negative, and σεβω or σεβομαι, I worship, probably intended here to express atheism, polytheism, and idolatry of every kind

Clarke: Rom 1:18 - -- Unrighteousness - αδικιαν from α, negative, and δικη, justice; every thing contrary to strict morality; all viciousness and profliga...

Unrighteousness - αδικιαν from α, negative, and δικη, justice; every thing contrary to strict morality; all viciousness and profligacy of conduct

Clarke: Rom 1:18 - -- Who hold the truth in unrighteousness - In what sense could it be said that the heathen held the truth in unrighteousness, when they really had not ...

Who hold the truth in unrighteousness - In what sense could it be said that the heathen held the truth in unrighteousness, when they really had not that truth? Some think this refers to the conduct of their best philosophers, such as Socrates, Plato, Seneca, etc., who knew much more of the Divine nature than they thought safe or prudent to discover; and who acted in many things contrary to the light which they enjoyed. Others think this to be spoken of the Gentiles in general, who either did know, or might have known, much of God from the works of creation, as the apostle intimates in the following verses. But Rosenmuller and some others contend that the word κατεχειν here does not signify to hold, but to hinder; and that the place should be translated, who through maliciousness hinder the truth; i.e. prevent it from taking hold of their hearts, and from governing their conduct. This is certainly a very usual acceptation of the verb κατεχειν, which Hesychius interprets κρατειν, κωλυειν, συνεχειν, to retain, hinder, etc.; these men hindering, by their vicious conduct, the truth of God from being propagated in the earth.

Clarke: Rom 1:19 - -- That which may be known of God - Dr. Taylor paraphrases this and the following verse thus: "Although the Gentiles had no written revelation, yet wha...

That which may be known of God - Dr. Taylor paraphrases this and the following verse thus: "Although the Gentiles had no written revelation, yet what may be known of God is every where manifest among them, God having made a clear discovery of himself to them. For his being and perfections, invisible to our bodily eyes, have been, ever since the creation of the world, evidently to be seen, if attentively considered, in the visible beauty, order, and operations observable in the constitution and parts of the universe; especially his eternal power and universal dominion and providence: so that they cannot plead ignorance in excuse of their idolatry and wickedness."

Clarke: Rom 1:20 - -- The invisible things of him - His invisible perfections are manifested by his visible works, and may be apprehended by what he has made; their immen...

The invisible things of him - His invisible perfections are manifested by his visible works, and may be apprehended by what he has made; their immensity showing his omnipotence, their vast variety and contrivance, his omniscience; and their adaptation to the most beneficent purposes, his infinite goodness and philanthropy

Clarke: Rom 1:20 - -- His eternal power - αιδιος αυτου δυναμις, That all-powerful energy that ever was, and ever will exist; so that, ever since there ...

His eternal power - αιδιος αυτου δυναμις, That all-powerful energy that ever was, and ever will exist; so that, ever since there was a creation to be surveyed, there have been intelligent beings to make that survey

Clarke: Rom 1:20 - -- And Godhead - θειοτης, His acting as God in the government and support of the universe. His works prove his being; the government and suppor...

And Godhead - θειοτης, His acting as God in the government and support of the universe. His works prove his being; the government and support of these works prove it equally. Creation and providence form a twofold demonstration of God

1st. in the perfections of his nature; and

2ndly. in the exercise of those perfections.

Clarke: Rom 1:21 - -- Because that when they knew God - When they thus acquired a general knowledge of the unity and perfections of the Divine nature, they glorified him ...

Because that when they knew God - When they thus acquired a general knowledge of the unity and perfections of the Divine nature, they glorified him not as God - they did not proclaim him to the people, but shut up his glory (as Bishop Warburton expresses it) in their mysteries, and gave the people, in exchange for an incorruptible God, an image made like to corruptible man. Wherefore God, in punishment for their sins, thus turning his truth into a lie, suffered even their mysteries, which they had erected for a school of virtue, to degenerate into an odious sink of vice and immorality; giving them up unto all uncleanness and vile affections

Clarke: Rom 1:21 - -- They glorified him not - They did not give him that worship which his perfections required

They glorified him not - They did not give him that worship which his perfections required

Clarke: Rom 1:21 - -- Neither were thankful - They manifested no gratitude for the blessings they received from his providence, but became vain in their imaginations, δ...

Neither were thankful - They manifested no gratitude for the blessings they received from his providence, but became vain in their imaginations, διαλογισμοις, in their reasonings. This certainly refers to the foolish manner in which even the wisest of their philosophers discoursed about the Divine nature, not excepting Socrates, Plato, or Seneca. Who can read their works without being struck with the vanity of their reasonings, as well as with the stupidity of their nonsense, when speaking about God? I might crowd my page with proofs of this; but it is not necessary to those who are acquainted with their writings, and to others it would not be useful. In short, their foolish, darkened minds sought God no where but in the place in which he is never to be found; viz. the vile, corrupted, and corrupting passions of their own hearts. As they did not discover him there, they scarcely sought him any where else.

Clarke: Rom 1:22 - -- Professing themselves to be wise - This is most strikingly true of all the ancient philosophers, whether Greeks or Romans, as their works, which rem...

Professing themselves to be wise - This is most strikingly true of all the ancient philosophers, whether Greeks or Romans, as their works, which remain, sufficiently testify. The word φασκοντες signifies not merely the professing but the assumption of the philosophic character. In this sense the word φασκειν is used by the best Greek writers. See Kypke. A dispassionate examination of the doctrine and lives of the most famed philosophers of antiquity, of every nation, will show that they were darkened in their mind and irregular in their conduct. It was from the Christian religion alone that true philosophy and genuine philosophers sprang.

Clarke: Rom 1:23 - -- They changed the glory, etc. - The finest representation of their deities was in the human figure; and on such representative figures the sculptors ...

They changed the glory, etc. - The finest representation of their deities was in the human figure; and on such representative figures the sculptors spent all their skill; hence the Hercules of Farnese, the Venus of Medicis, and the Apollo of Belvidere. And when they had formed their gods according to the human shape, they endowed them with human passions; and as they clothed them with attributes of extraordinary strength, beauty, wisdom, etc., not having the true principles of morality, they represented them as slaves to the most disorderly and disgraceful passions; excelling in irregularities the most profligate of men, as possessing unlimited powers of sensual gratification

Clarke: Rom 1:23 - -- And to birds - As the eagle of Jupiter among the Romans, and the ibis and hawk among the Egyptians; which were all sacred animals

And to birds - As the eagle of Jupiter among the Romans, and the ibis and hawk among the Egyptians; which were all sacred animals

Clarke: Rom 1:23 - -- Four-footed beasts - As the apis or white ox among the Egyptians; from which the idolatrous Israelites took their golden calf. The goat, the monkey,...

Four-footed beasts - As the apis or white ox among the Egyptians; from which the idolatrous Israelites took their golden calf. The goat, the monkey, and the dog, were also sacred animals among the same people

Clarke: Rom 1:23 - -- Creeping things - Such as the crocodile and scarabeus, or beetle, among the Egyptians.

Creeping things - Such as the crocodile and scarabeus, or beetle, among the Egyptians.

Clarke: Rom 1:24 - -- God - gave them up, etc. - They had filled up the measure of their iniquities, and God, by permitting them to plunge into all manner of irregulariti...

God - gave them up, etc. - They had filled up the measure of their iniquities, and God, by permitting them to plunge into all manner of irregularities, thus, by one species of sin, inflicted punishment on another

Clarke: Rom 1:24 - -- Dishonour their own bodies - Probably alluding here to what is more openly expressed, Rom 1:26, Rom 1:27

Dishonour their own bodies - Probably alluding here to what is more openly expressed, Rom 1:26, Rom 1:27

Clarke: Rom 1:24 - -- Between themselves - εν εαυτοις, Of themselves, of their own free accord; none inciting, none impelling.

Between themselves - εν εαυτοις, Of themselves, of their own free accord; none inciting, none impelling.

Clarke: Rom 1:25 - -- Changed the truth of God into a lie - In the place of the true worship of God, they established idolatry. In various places of Scripture idols are t...

Changed the truth of God into a lie - In the place of the true worship of God, they established idolatry. In various places of Scripture idols are termed lies. Isa 44:20; Jer 10:14; Jer 13:25. The true God was known among the primitive inhabitants of the earth, those who first became idolaters literally changed the truth of God into a lie: they did know the true God, but they put idols in his place.

Clarke: Rom 1:26 - -- For this cause God gave them up, etc. - Their system of idolatry necessarily produced all kinds of impurity. How could it be otherwise, when the hig...

For this cause God gave them up, etc. - Their system of idolatry necessarily produced all kinds of impurity. How could it be otherwise, when the highest objects of their worship were adulterers, fornicators, and prostitutes of the most infamous kind, such as Jupiter, Apollo, Mars, Venus, etc.? Of the abominable evils with which the apostle charges the Gentiles in this and the following verse I could produce a multitude of proofs from their own writings; but it is needless to make the subject plainer than the apostle has left it.

Clarke: Rom 1:27 - -- Receiving in themselves that recompense, etc. - Both the women and men, by their unnatural prostitutions, enervated their bodies, so that barrenness...

Receiving in themselves that recompense, etc. - Both the women and men, by their unnatural prostitutions, enervated their bodies, so that barrenness prevailed, and those disorders which are necessarily attendant on prostitution and sodomitical practices.

Clarke: Rom 1:28 - -- They did not like to retain God - It would, perhaps, be more literal to translate ουκ εδοκιμασαν, They Did Not Search to retain God in...

They did not like to retain God - It would, perhaps, be more literal to translate ουκ εδοκιμασαν, They Did Not Search to retain God in their knowledge. They did not examine the evidences before them (Rom 1:19, Rom 1:20) of his being and attributes; therefore God gave them over to a Reprobate mind, εις αδοκιμον νουν, to an Unsearching or undiscerning mind; for it is the same word in both places. They did not reflect on the proofs they had of the Divine nature, and God abandoned them to the operations of a mind incapable of reflection. How men of such powers and learning, as many of the Greek and Roman philosophers and poets really were, could reason so inconsecutively concerning things moral and Divine is truly astonishing. But here we see the hand of a just and avenging God; they abused their powers, and God deprived them of the right use of these powers.

Clarke: Rom 1:29 - -- Being filled with all unrighteousness - αδικια, every vice contrary to justice and righteousness

Being filled with all unrighteousness - αδικια, every vice contrary to justice and righteousness

Clarke: Rom 1:29 - -- Fornication - Πορνειᾳ, all commerce between the sexes out of the bounds of lawful marriage. Some of the best MSS. omit this reading; and o...

Fornication - Πορνειᾳ, all commerce between the sexes out of the bounds of lawful marriage. Some of the best MSS. omit this reading; and others have ακαθαρσιᾳ, uncleanness

Clarke: Rom 1:29 - -- Wickedness - Πονηριᾳ, malignity, that which is oppressive to its possessor and to its object; from πονος, labor, toil, etc

Wickedness - Πονηριᾳ, malignity, that which is oppressive to its possessor and to its object; from πονος, labor, toil, etc

Clarke: Rom 1:29 - -- Covetousness - Πλεονεξιᾳ, from πλειον, more, and ἑξω, I will have; the intense love or lust of gain; the determination to b...

Covetousness - Πλεονεξιᾳ, from πλειον, more, and ἑξω, I will have; the intense love or lust of gain; the determination to be rich; the principle of a dissatisfied and discontented soul

Clarke: Rom 1:29 - -- Maliciousness - Κακιᾳ, malice, ill-will; what is radically and essentially vicious

Maliciousness - Κακιᾳ, malice, ill-will; what is radically and essentially vicious

Clarke: Rom 1:29 - -- Full of envy - Φθονου, from φθινω, to wither, decay, consume, pine away, etc.; "pain felt and malignity conceived at the sight of excel...

Full of envy - Φθονου, from φθινω, to wither, decay, consume, pine away, etc.; "pain felt and malignity conceived at the sight of excellence or happiness in another."A fine personification of this vice is found in Ovid Metam. lib. ii. ver. 768-781, which I shall here insert, with Mr. Addison’ s elegant and nervous translation

- Videt intus edente

Vipereas carnes, vitiorum alimenta suoru

Invidiam: visaque oculos avertit. At ill

Surgit humo pigra: semesarumque relinqui

Corpora serpentum, passuque incedit inerti

Utgue deam vidit formaque armisque decoram

Ingemuit: vultumque ima ad suspiria duxit

Pallor in Ore sedet: macies in Corpore toto

Nusquam recta acies: livent rubigine dentes

Pectora felle virent: lingua est suffusa veneno

Risus abest, nisi quem visi movere dolores

Nec fruitur somno, vigilacibus excita curis

Sed videt ingratos, intabescitque vidend

Successus hominum; carpitgue et carpitur una

Suppliciumque suum est

- A poisonous morsel in her teeth she chewed

And gorged the flesh of vipers for her food

Minerva loathing, turned away her eye

The hideous monster, rising heavily

Came stalking forward with a sullen pace

And left her mangled offals on the place

Soon as she saw the goddess gay and bright

She fetched a groan at such a cheerful sight

Livid and meagre were her looks, her ey

In foul distorted glances turned awry

A hoard of gall her inward parts possessed

And spread a greenness o’ er her canker’ d breast

Her teeth were brown with rust, and from her tongu

In dangling drops the stringy poison hung

She never smiles but when the wretched weep

Nor lulls her malice with a moment’ s sleep

Restless in spite while watchful to destroy

She pines and sickens at another’ s joy

Foe to herself, distressing and distressed

She bears her own tormentor in her breast

Clarke: Rom 1:29 - -- Murder - Φονου, taking away the life of another by any means; mortal hatred; for he that hates his brother in his heart is a murderer

Murder - Φονου, taking away the life of another by any means; mortal hatred; for he that hates his brother in his heart is a murderer

Clarke: Rom 1:29 - -- Debate - Εριδος, contention, discord, etc. Of this vile passion the Greeks made a goddess

Debate - Εριδος, contention, discord, etc. Of this vile passion the Greeks made a goddess

Clarke: Rom 1:29 - -- Deceit - Δολου, lying, falsity, prevarication, imposition, etc.; from δελω, to take with a bait

Deceit - Δολου, lying, falsity, prevarication, imposition, etc.; from δελω, to take with a bait

Clarke: Rom 1:29 - -- Malignity - Κακοηθειας, from κακος, evil, and ηθος, a custom; bad customs, founded in corrupt sentiment, producing evil habits...

Malignity - Κακοηθειας, from κακος, evil, and ηθος, a custom; bad customs, founded in corrupt sentiment, producing evil habits, supported by general usage. It is generally interpreted, a malignity of mind, which leads its possessor to put the worst construction on every action; ascribing to the best deeds the worst motives

Clarke: Rom 1:29 - -- Whisperers - ψιθυριστος, secret detractors; those who, under pretended secrecy, carry about accusations against their neighbors, whether ...

Whisperers - ψιθυριστος, secret detractors; those who, under pretended secrecy, carry about accusations against their neighbors, whether true or false; blasting their reputation by clandestine tittle-tattle. This word should be joined to the succeeding verse

The whispering is well expressed by the Greek word Ψιθυριστας, psithuristas .

Clarke: Rom 1:30 - -- Backbiters - Καταλαλους, from κατα, against, and λαλεω, I speak; those who speak against others; false accusers, slanderers

Backbiters - Καταλαλους, from κατα, against, and λαλεω, I speak; those who speak against others; false accusers, slanderers

Clarke: Rom 1:30 - -- Haters of God - Θεοστυγεις, atheists, contemners of sacred things, maligners of providence, scorners, etc. All profligate deists are of t...

Haters of God - Θεοστυγεις, atheists, contemners of sacred things, maligners of providence, scorners, etc. All profligate deists are of this class; and it seems to be the finishing part of a diabolic character

Clarke: Rom 1:30 - -- Despiteful - Ὑβριστας, from ὑβριζω, to treat with injurious insolence; stormy, boisterous; abusing both the characters and perso...

Despiteful - Ὑβριστας, from ὑβριζω, to treat with injurious insolence; stormy, boisterous; abusing both the characters and persons of those over whom they can have any power

Clarke: Rom 1:30 - -- Proud - Ὑπερηφανους, from ὑπερ, above or over, and φαινω, I show or shine. They who are continually exalting themselves a...

Proud - Ὑπερηφανους, from ὑπερ, above or over, and φαινω, I show or shine. They who are continually exalting themselves and depressing others; magnifying themselves at the expense of their neighbors; and wishing all men to receive their sayings as oracles

Clarke: Rom 1:30 - -- Boasters - Αλαζονας, from λαζομαι, to assume; self-assuming, vain-glorious, and arrogant men

Boasters - Αλαζονας, from λαζομαι, to assume; self-assuming, vain-glorious, and arrogant men

Clarke: Rom 1:30 - -- Inventors of evil things - Εφευρετας κακων . Those who have invented destructive customs, rites, fashions, etc.; such as the differen...

Inventors of evil things - Εφευρετας κακων . Those who have invented destructive customs, rites, fashions, etc.; such as the different religious ceremonies among the Greeks and Romans - the orgies of Bacchus, the mysteries of Ceres, the lupercalia, feasts of the Bona Dea, etc., etc. Multitudes of which evil things, destructive and abominable ceremonies, are to be found in every part of the heathen worship

Clarke: Rom 1:30 - -- Disobedient to parents - Though filial affection was certainly more recommended and cultivated than many other virtues, yet there are many instances...

Disobedient to parents - Though filial affection was certainly more recommended and cultivated than many other virtues, yet there are many instances on record of the grossest violation of this great branch of the law of nature.

Clarke: Rom 1:31 - -- Without understanding - Ασυνετους, from α, negative, and συνετος, knowing; persons incapable of comprehending what was spoken; d...

Without understanding - Ασυνετους, from α, negative, and συνετος, knowing; persons incapable of comprehending what was spoken; destitute of capacity for spiritual things

Clarke: Rom 1:31 - -- Covenant-breakers - Ασυνθετους, from α, negative, and συντιθημυι, to make an agreement; persons who could be bound by no oat...

Covenant-breakers - Ασυνθετους, from α, negative, and συντιθημυι, to make an agreement; persons who could be bound by no oath, because, properly speaking, they had no God to witness or avenge their misconduct. As every covenant, or agreement, is made as in the presence of God, so he that opposes the being and doctrine of God is incapable of being bound by any covenant; he can give no pledge for his conduct

Clarke: Rom 1:31 - -- Without natural affection - Αστοργους ; without that attachment which nature teaches the young of all animals to have to their mothers, an...

Without natural affection - Αστοργους ; without that attachment which nature teaches the young of all animals to have to their mothers, and the mothers to have for their young. The heathens, in general, have made no scruple to expose the children they did not think proper to bring up, and to despatch their parents when they were grown old or past labor

Clarke: Rom 1:31 - -- Implacable - Ασπονδους, from α, negative; and σπονδη, A Libation. It was customary among all nations to pour out wine as a libati...

Implacable - Ασπονδους, from α, negative; and σπονδη, A Libation. It was customary among all nations to pour out wine as a libation to their gods, when making a treaty. This was done to appease the angry gods, and reconcile them to the contracting parties. The word here shows a deadly enmity; the highest pitch of an unforgiving spirit; in a word, persons who would not make reconciliation either to God or man

Clarke: Rom 1:31 - -- Unmerciful - Ανελεημονας ; those who were incapable, through the deep-rooted wickedness of their own nature, of showing mercy to an enem...

Unmerciful - Ανελεημονας ; those who were incapable, through the deep-rooted wickedness of their own nature, of showing mercy to an enemy when brought under their power, or doing any thing for the necessitous, from the principle of benevolence or commiseration.

Clarke: Rom 1:32 - -- Who, knowing the judgment of God - Δικαιωμα, the grand rule of right which God has revealed to every man, the knowledge of which he has, le...

Who, knowing the judgment of God - Δικαιωμα, the grand rule of right which God has revealed to every man, the knowledge of which he has, less or more, given to every nation of the world, relative to honouring parents, taking care of their own offspring, keeping their engagements, etc., etc. In the worst states of heathenism this great principle has been acknowledged; but, through the prevalence of corruption in the heart, this law, though acknowledged, was not obeyed; and the corruption increased so that those were highest in repute who had cast off all restraints of this kind; so that they even delighted in them; συνευδοκουσι, highly applauded, and gladly associated with those transgressors: which argues the very highest pitch of moral depravity

1.    The preceding chapter gives us one of the finest views of the Gospel of Christ, to be met with any where. It is God’ s method of saving a lost world, in a way which that world could never have imagined: there is nothing human in it; it is all truly and gloriously Divine; essentially necessary to the salvation of man, and fully adequate to the purposes of its institution. Though it is an extension of the old covenant, yet it is almost wholly dissimilar; being as different from that as the person is from the picture which represents it, and as the substance is from the shadow projected by it. It is a scheme as worthy of God as it is necessary for man; hence there are no excluding clauses in it - it is for the Jew and for the Greek; for the wise and for the unwise; for all the nations of the universe, and for all the individuals of those nations. He blasphemes God who holds the contrary

2.    As God never does any thing that is not fitting, suitable, and necessary to be done, he has not made an unnecessary display of his mercy and goodness in the incarnation and death of his Son - all this was necessary, else it had not been done. But how does the necessity appear? In the deep-rooted and widely extended corruption and profligacy of the nations of the earth. Of these the apostle gives a most affecting and distressing picture

1.    Almost every trace of original righteousness had been obliterated

2.    The proofs of God’ s eternal power and providence, so manifest in the creation and preservation of the universe, were wholly disregarded

3.    A vain philosophy, without right, principle, or end, was substituted for those Divine truths which had been discovered originally to man

4.    Their hearts were contaminated with every vice which could blind the understanding, pervert the judgment, corrupt the will, and debase the affections and passions

5.    This was proved in the most unequivocal manner, by a profligacy of conduct which had debased them far, far below the beasts that perish; and the apostle here gives a list of their crimes, every article of which can be incontrovertibly proved from their own history and their own writers: crimes which, even bad as the world is now, would shock common decency to describe. See the whole of the second, third, sixth, and ninth Satires of Juvenal

3.    So completely lost were the heathens to a knowledge of the influence of God on the souls and the necessity of that influence, that they asserted, in the most positive manner, that man was the author of his own virtue and wisdom. Cicero, Nat. Deor., lib. iii. c. 36, declares it a general opinion that, although mankind received from the gods the outward conveniencies of life - virtutem autem nemo unquam acceptam Deo retulit - "virtue none ever thought they received from the Deity."And again: - "This is the persuasion of all, that fortune is to be had from the gods; wisdom from ourselves."And again: - "Whoever thanked the gods for his being a good man? Men pray to Jupiter, not that he would make them just, temperate, and wise; but rich and prosperous.

Juvenal, on this point, speaks thus: -

Monstro, quod ipse tibi possis dare

Semita certe Tranquillae per virtutem patet unica vitae

Sat. x. v. 363

The path to peace is virtue; which, I show

Thyself may fully on thyself bestow

In the same stain, Horace, Epist. lib. i. E. xviii. v. penult

Haec satis est orare Jovem, qui donat et aufert

Det vitam det opes: aequum mi animum ipse parabo

To Jove for life and wealth I pray

These Jove may give or take away

But, for a firm and tranquil mind

That blessing for myself I find

Thus, they became vain in their imaginations, and their foolish heart was darkened; and professing themselves to be wise, they became fools. See Madan’ s Juvenal, vol. ii. p. 53

4.    By all this we see what the world was, and what it would have continued to be had not God sent a Divine revelation of his will, and established a public ministry to proclaim and enforce it. Were man left to the power and influence of his fallen nature he would be, in all places of his dispersion on the earth, what the apostle describes in the 29th, 30th, and 31st verses of this chapter. (Rom 1:29-31) Reader, magnify God, who has called thee from such deep darkness, to the marvellous light of the glorious Gospel of his Son; and walk as a child of the light and of the day, in whom there shall be no cause of stumbling.

Calvin: Rom 1:2 - -- 2.Which he had before promised, etc. — As the suspicion of being new subtracts much from the authority of a doctrine, he confirms the faith of th...

2.Which he had before promised, etc. — As the suspicion of being new subtracts much from the authority of a doctrine, he confirms the faith of the gospel by antiquity; as though he said, “Christ came not on the earth unexpectedly, nor did he introduce a doctrine of a new kind and not heard of before, inasmuch as he, and his gospel too, had been promised and expected from the beginning of the world.” But as antiquity is often fabulous, he brings witnesses, and those approved, even the Prophets of God, that he might remove every suspicion. He in the third place adds, that their testimonies were duly recorded, that is, in the Holy Scriptures.

We may learn from this passage what the gospel is: he teaches us, not that it was promulgated by the Prophets but only promised. If then the Prophets promised the gospel, it follows, that it was revealed, when our Lord was at length manifested in the flesh. They are then mistaken who confound the promises with the gospel, since the gospel is properly the appointed preaching of Christ as manifested, in whom the promises themselves are exhibited. 18

Calvin: Rom 1:3 - -- 3.=== Concerning his own Son, === etc. — This is a remarkable passage, by which we are taught that the whole gospel is included in Christ, so that...

3.=== Concerning his own Son, === etc. — This is a remarkable passage, by which we are taught that the whole gospel is included in Christ, so that if any removes one step from Christ, he withdraws himself from the gospel. For since he is the living and express image of the Father, it is no wonder, that he alone is set before us as one to whom our whole faith is to be directed and in whom it is to center. It is then a definition of the gospel, by which Paul expresses what is summarily comprehended in it. I have rendered the words which follow, Jesus Christ our Lord, in the same case; which seems to me to be most agreeable with the context. We hence learn, that he who has made a due proficiency in the knowledge of Christ, has acquired every thing which can be learned from the gospel; and, on the other hand, that they who seek to be wise without Christ, are not only foolish, but even completely insane.

===Who was made, === etc. — Two things must be found in Christ, in order that we may obtain salvation in him, even divinity and humanity. His divinity possesses power, righteousness, life, which by his humanity are conveyed to us. Hence the Apostle has expressly mentioned both in the Summary he gives of the gospel, that Christ was manifested in the flesh — and that in it he declared himself to be the Son of God. So John says; after having declared that the Word was made flesh, he adds, that in that flesh there was a glory as of the only-begotten Son of God. (Joh 1:14.) That he specially notices the descent and lineage of Christ from his ancestor David, is not superfluous; for by this he calls back our attention to the promise, that we may not doubt but that he is the very person who had been formerly promised. So well known was the promise made to David, that it appears to have been a common thing among the Jews to call the Messiah the Son of David. This then — that Christ did spring from David — was said for the purpose of confirming our faith.

He adds, according to the flesh; and he adds this, that we may understand that he had something more excellent than flesh, which he brought from heaven, and did not take from David, even that which he afterwards mentions, the glory of the divine nature. Paul does further by these words not only declare that Christ had real flesh, but he also clearly distinguishes his human from his divine nature; and thus he refutes the impious raving of Servetus, who assigned flesh to Christ, composed of three untreated elements.

Calvin: Rom 1:4 - -- 4.Declared 19 the Son of God, etc.: or, if you prefer, determined ( definitus); as though he had said, that the power, by which he was raised from ...

4.Declared 19 the Son of God, etc.: or, if you prefer, determined ( definitus); as though he had said, that the power, by which he was raised from the dead, was something like a decree by which he was proclaimed the Son of God, according to what is said in Psa 2:7, “I have this day begotten thee:” for this begetting refers to what was made known. Though some indeed find here three separate evidences of the divinity of Christ — “power,” understanding thereby miracles — then the testimony of the Spirit — and, lastly, the resurrection from the dead — I yet prefer to connect them together, and to reduce these three things to one, in this manner — that Christ was declared the Son of God by openly exercising a real celestial power, that is, the power of the Spirit, when he rose from the dead; but that this power is comprehended, when a conviction of it is imprinted on our hearts by the same Spirit. The language of the Apostle well agrees with this view; for he says that he was declared by power, because power, peculiar to God, shone forth in him, and uncontestably proved him to be God; and this was indeed made evident by his resurrection. Paul says the same thing in another place; having stated, that by death the weakness of the flesh appeared, he at the same time extols the power of the Spirit in his resurrection; (2Co 13:4) This glory, however, is not made known to us, until the same Spirit imprints a conviction of it on our hearts. And that Paul includes, together with the wonderful energy of the Spirit, which Christ manifested by rising from the dead, the testimony which all the faithful feel in their hearts, is even evident from this — that he expressly calls it the Spirit of Holiness; as though he had said, that the Spirit, as far as it sanctifies, confirms and ratifies that evidence of its power which it once exhibited. For the Scripture is wont often to ascribe such titles to the Spirit, as tend to illustrate our present subject. Thus He is called by our Lord the Spirit of Truth, on account of the effect which he mentions; (Joh 14:17)

Besides, a divine power is said to have shone forth in the resurrection of Christ for this reason — because he rose by his own power, as he had often testified:

“Destroy this temple, and in three days
I will raise it up again,” (Joh 2:19;)

“No man taketh it from me,” etc.; (Joh 10:18)

For he gained victory over death, (to which he yielded with regard to the weakness of the flesh,) not by aid sought from another, but by the celestial operation of his own Spirit.

Calvin: Rom 1:5 - -- 5.=== Through whom we have received, === etc. — Having completed his definition of the gospel, which he introduced for the recommendation of his o...

5.=== Through whom we have received, === etc. — Having completed his definition of the gospel, which he introduced for the recommendation of his office, he now returns to speak of his own call; and it was a great point that this should be proved to the Romans. By mentioning grace and apostleship apart, he adopts a form of speech, 20 which must be understood as meaning, gratuitous apostleship or the favor of the apostleship; by which he means, that it was wholly through divine favor, not through his own worthiness, that he had been chosen for so high an office. For though it has hardly any thing connected with it in the estimation of the world, except dangers, labors, hatred, and disgrace; yet before God and his saints, it possesses a dignity of no common or ordinary kind. It is therefore deservedly counted a favor. If you prefer to say, “I have received grace that I should be an Apostle,” the sense would be the same. 21

The expression, on account of his name, is rendered by [Ambrose], “in his name,” as though it meant, that the Apostle was appointed in the place of Christ to preach the gospel, according to that passage, “We are ambassadors for Christ,” etc. (2Co 5:20.) Their opinion, however, seems better, who take name for knowledge; for the gospel is preached for this end — that we may believe on the name of the Son of God. (1Jo 3:23.) And Paul is said to have been a chosen vessel, to carry the name of Christ among the Gentiles. (Act 9:15.) On account then of his name, which means the same, as though he had said, that I might make known what Christ is. 22

===For the obedience of faith, === etc. — That is, we have received a command to preach the gospel among all nations, and this gospel they obey by faith. By stating the design of his calling, he again reminds the Romans of his office, as though he said, “It is indeed my duty to discharge the office committed to me, which is to preach the word; and it is your duty to hear the word and willingly to obey it; you will otherwise make void the vocation which the Lord has bestowed on me.”

We hence learn, that they perversely resist the authority of God and upset the whole of what he has ordained, who irreverently and contemptuously reject the preaching of the gospel; the design of which is to constrain us to obey God. We must also notice here what faith is; the name of obedience is given to it, and for this reason — because the Lord calls us by his gospel; we respond to his call by faith; as on the other hand, the chief act of disobedience to God is unbelief, I prefer rendering the sentence, “For the obedience of faith,” rather than, “In order that they may obey the faith;” for the last is not strictly correct, except taken figuratively, though it be found once in the Act 6:7. Faith is properly that by which we obey the gospel. 23

===Among all nations, === etc. It was not enough for him to have been appointed an Apostle, except his ministry had reference to some who were to be taught: hence he adds, that his apostleship extended to all nations. He afterwards calls himself more distinctly the Apostle of the Romans, when he says, that they were included in the number of the nations, to whom he had been given as a minister. And further, the Apostles had in common the command to preach the gospel to all the world; and they were not, as pastors and bishops, set over certain churches. But Paul, in addition to the general undertaking of the apostolic function, was constituted, by a special appointment, to be a minister to proclaim the gospel among the Gentiles. It is no objection to this, that he was forbidden to pass through Macedonia and to preach the word in Mysia: for this was done, not that there were limits prescribed to him, but that he was for a time to go elsewhere; for the harvest was not as yet ripe there.

===Ye are the called of Jesus Christ, === etc. He assigns a reason more nearly connected with them — because the Lord had already exhibited in them an evidence by which he had manifested that he had called them to a participation of the gospel. It hence followed, that if they wished their own calling to remain sure, they were not to reject the ministry of Paul, who had been chosen by the same election of God. I therefore take this clause, “the called of Jesus Christ,” as explanatory, as though the particle “even” were inserted; for he means, that they were by calling made partakers of Christ. For they who shall be heirs of eternal life, are chosen by the celestial Father to be children in Christ; and when chosen, they are committed to his care and protection as their shepherd. 24

Calvin: Rom 1:7 - -- 7.=== To all of you who are at Rome, === etc. By this happy arrangement he sets forth what there is in us worthy of commendation; he says, that firs...

7.=== To all of you who are at Rome, === etc. By this happy arrangement he sets forth what there is in us worthy of commendation; he says, that first the Lord through his own kindness made us the objects of his favor and love; and then that he has called us; and thirdly, that he has called us to holiness: but this high honor only then exists, when we are not wanting to our call.

Here a rich truth presents itself to us, to which I shall briefly refer, and leave it to be meditated upon by each individual: Paul does by no means ascribe the praise of our salvation to ourselves, but derives it altogether from the fountain of God’s free and paternal love towards us; for he makes this the first thing — God loves us: and what is the cause of his love, except his own goodness alone? On this depends our calling, by which in his own time he seals his adoption to those whom he had before freely chosen. We also learn from this passage that none rightly connect themselves with the number of the faithful, except they feel assured that the Lord is gracious, however unworthy and wretched sinners they may be, and except they be stimulated by his goodness and aspire to holiness, for he hath not called us to uncleanness, but to holiness. (1Th 4:7.) As the Greek can be rendered in the second person, I see no reason for any change.

===Grace to you and peace, === etc. Nothing is more desirable than to have God propitious to us, and this is signified by grace; and then to have prosperity and success in all things flowing from him, and this is intimated by peace; for however things may seem to smile on us, if God be angry, even blessing itself is turned to a curse. The very foundation then of our felicity is the favor of God, by which we enjoy true and solid prosperity, and by which also our salvation is promoted even when we are in adversities. 25 And then as he prays to God for peace, we must understand, that whatever good comes to us, it is the fruit of divine benevolence. Nor must we omit to notice, that he prays at the same time to the Lord Jesus Christ for these blessings. Worthily indeed is this honor rendered to him, who is not only the administrator and dispenser of his Father’s bounty to us, but also works all things in connection with him. It was, however, the special object of the Apostle to show, that through him all God’s blessings come to us. 26

There are those who prefer to regard the word peace as signifying quietness of conscience; and that this meaning belongs to it sometimes, I do not deny: but since it is certain that the Apostle wished to give us here a summary of God’s blessings, the former meaning, which is adduced by Bucer, is much the most suitable. Anxiously wishing then to the godly what makes up real happiness, he betakes himself, as he did before, to the very fountain itself, even the favor of God, which not only alone brings to us eternal felicity but is also the source of all blessings in this life.

Calvin: Rom 1:8 - -- 8.. I first 28 indeed, etc. Here the beginning commences, altogether adapted to the occasion, as he seasonably prepares them for receiving instruc...

8.. I first 28 indeed, etc. Here the beginning commences, altogether adapted to the occasion, as he seasonably prepares them for receiving instruction by reasons connected with himself as well as with them. What he states respecting them is, the celebrity of their faith; for he intimates that they being honored with the public approbation of the churches, could not reject an Apostle of the Lord, without disappointing the good opinion entertained of them by all; and such a thing would have been extremely uncourteous and in a manner bordering on perfidy. As then this testimony justly induced the Apostle, by affording him an assurance of their obedience, to undertake, according to his office, to teach and instruct the Romans; so it held them bound not to despise his authority. With regard to himself, he disposes them to a teachable spirit by testifying his love towards them: and there is nothing more effectual in gaining credit to an adviser, than the impression that he is cordially anxious to consult our wellbeing.

The first thing worthy of remark is, that he so commends their faith, 29 that he implies that it had been received from God. We are here taught that faith is God’s gift; for thanksgiving is an acknowledgment of a benefit. He who gives thanks to God for faith, confesses that it comes from him. And since we find that the Apostle ever begins his congratulations with thanksgiving, let us know that we are hereby reminded, that all our blessings are God’s free gifts. It is also needful to become accustomed to such forms of speaking, that we may be led more fully to rouse ourselves in the duty of acknowledging God as the giver of all our blessings, and to stir up others to join us in the same acknowledgment. If it be right to do this in little things, how much more with regard to faith; Which is neither a small nor an indiscriminate ( promiscua ) gift of God. We have here besides an example, that thanks ought to be given through Christ, according to the Apostle’s command in Heb 13:15; inasmuch as in his name we seek and obtain mercy from the Father. — I observe in the last place, that he calls him his God. This is the faithful’s special privilege, and on them alone God bestows this honor. There is indeed implied in this a mutual relationship, which is expressed in this promise,

“I will be to them a God;
they shall be to me a people.” (Jer 30:22.)

I prefer at the same time to confine this to the character which Paul sustained, as an attestation of his obedience to the end in the work of preaching the gospel. So Hezekiah called God the God of Isaiah, when he desired him to give him the testimony of a true and faithful Prophet. (Isa 37:4.) So also he is called in an especial manner the God of Daniel. (Dan 6:20.)

Through the whole world The eulogy of faithful men was to Paul equal to that of the whole world, with regard to the faith of the Romans; for the unbelieving, who deemed it detestable, could not have given an impartial or a correct testimony respecting it. We then understood that it was by the mouths of the faithful that the faith of the Romans was proclaimed through the whole world; and that they were alone able to judge rightly of it, and to pronounce a correct opinion. That this small and despised handful of men were unknown as to their character to the ungodly, even at Rome, was a circumstance he regarded as nothing; for Paul made no account of their judgment.

Calvin: Rom 1:9 - -- 9.For God is my witness, === etc. He proves his love by its effects; for had he not greatly loved them, he would not have so anxiously commended the...

9.For God is my witness, === etc. He proves his love by its effects; for had he not greatly loved them, he would not have so anxiously commended them to the Lord, and especially he would not have so ardently desired to promote their welfare by his own labors. His anxiety then and his ardent desire were certain evidences of his love; for had they not sprung from it, they would never have existed. And as he knew it to be necessary for establishing confidence in his preaching, that the Romans should be fully persuaded of his sincerity, he added an oath — a needful remedy, whenever a declaration, which ought to be received as true and indubitable vacillates through uncertainty. For since an oath is nothing else but an appeal to God as to the truth of what we declare, most foolish is it to deny that the Apostle used here an oath. He did not notwithstanding transgress the prohibition of Christ.

It hence appears that it was not Christ’s design (as the superstitious Anabaptists dream) to abolish oaths altogether, but on the contrary to call attention to the due observance of the law; and the law, allowing an oath, only condemns perjury and needless swearing. If then we would use an oath aright, let us imitate the seriousness and the reverent manner exhibited by the Apostles; and that you may understand what it is, know that God is so called as a witness, that he is also appealed to as an avenger, in case we deceive; which Paul expresses elsewhere in these words,

“God is a witness to my soul.” (2Co 1:23.) 30

===Whom I serve with my spirit, === etc. It is usual with profane men, who trifle with God, to pretend his name, no less boldly than presumptuously; but the Apostle here speaks of his own piety, in order to gain credit; and those, in whom the fear of God and reverence for his name prevail, will dread to swear falsely. At the same time, he sets his own spirit in opposition to the outward mask of religion; for as many falsely pretend to be the worshippers of God, and outwardly appear to be so, he testifies that he, from the heart served, God. 31 It may be also that he alluded to the ancient ceremonies, in which alone the Jews thought the worship of God consisted. He then intimates, that though he retained not observance of these, he was yet a sincere worshipper of God, according to what he says in Phi 3:3,

“We are the true circumcision, who in spirit serve God,
and glory not in the flesh.”

He then glories that he served God with sincere devotion of heart, which is true religion and approved worship.

But it was expedient, as I have said, in order that his oath might attain more credit, that Paul should declare his piety towards God; for perjury is a sport to the ungodly, while the pious dread it more than a thousand deaths; inasmuch as it cannot be, but that where there is a real fear of God, there must be also a reverence for his name. It is then the same thing, as though Paul had said, that he knew how much sacredness and sincerity belonged to an oath, and that he did not rashly appeal to God as a witness, as the profane are wont to do. And thus, by his own example, he teaches us, that whenever we swear, we ought to give such evidence of piety, that the name of God, which we use in our declarations, may retain its sacredness. And further, he gives a proof, even by his own ministry, that he worshipped not God feignedly; for it was the fullest evidence, that he was a man devoted to God’s glory, when he denied himself, and hesitated not to undergo all the hardships of reproach, poverty, and hatred, and even the peril of death, in advancing the kingdom of God. 32

Some take this clause, as though Paul intended to recommend that worship which he said he rendered to God, on this account, — because it corresponded with what the gospel prescribes. It is indeed certain that spiritual worship is enjoined on us in the gospel; but the former interpretation is far the most suitable, — that he devoted his service to God in preaching the gospel. He, however, makes at the same time a difference between himself and hypocrites, who have something else in view rather than to serve God; for ambition, or some such thing, influences most men; and it is far from being the case, that all engage cordially and faithfully in this office. The meaning is, that Paul performed sincerely the office of teaching; for what he says of his own devotion he applies to this subject.

But we hence gather a profitable doctrine; for it ought to add no little encouragement to the ministers of the gospel, when they hear that, in preaching the gospel, they render an acceptable and a valuable service to God. What, indeed, is there to prevent them from regarding it an excellent service, when they know that their labor is pleasing to God, and is approved by him? Moreover, he calls it the gospel of the Son of God; for Christ is in it made known, who has been appointed by the Father for this end, — that he, being glorified, should also glorify the Father.

===That continually, etc. He still further sets forth the ardor of his love by his very constancy in praying for them. It was, indeed, a strong evidence, when he poured forth no prayers to the Lord without making mention of them. That the meaning may be clearer, I render παντοτε, “always;” as though it was said, “In all my prayers,” or, “whenever I address God in prayer, I join a mention of you.” 33 Now he speaks not of every kind of calling on God, but of those prayers to which the saints, being at liberty, and laying aside all cares, apply their whole attention to the work; for he might have often expressed suddenly this or that wish, when the Romans did not come into his mind; but whenever he had previously intended, and, as it were, prepared himself to offer up prayers to God, among others he remembered them. He then speaks peculiarly of those prayers, for which the saints deliberately prepare themselves; as we find to have been the case with our Lord himself, who, for this purpose, sought retirement. He at the same time intimates how frequently, or rather, how unceasingly he was engaged in such prayers, since he says that he prayed continually.

Calvin: Rom 1:10 - -- 10.=== Requesting, if by any means, === etc. As it is not probable that we from the heart study his benefit, whom we are not ready to assist by our ...

10.=== Requesting, if by any means, === etc. As it is not probable that we from the heart study his benefit, whom we are not ready to assist by our labors, he now adds, after having said that he was anxious for their welfare, that he showed by another proof his love to them, as before God, even by requesting that he might be able to advance their interest. That you may, therefore, perceive the full meaning, read the words as though the word also were inserted, requesting also, if by any means, etc. By saying, A prosperous journey by the will of God he shows, not only that he looked to the Lord’s favor for success in his journey, but that he deemed his journey prosperous, if it was approved by the Lord. According to this model ought all our wishes to be formed.

Calvin: Rom 1:11 - -- 11.For I greatly desire to see you He might, indeed, while absent, have confirmed their faith by his doctrine; but as advice is better taken from one...

11.For I greatly desire to see you He might, indeed, while absent, have confirmed their faith by his doctrine; but as advice is better taken from one present, he had a desire to be with them. But he explains what his object was, and shows that he wished to undertake the toil of a journey, not for his own, but for their advantage. — Spiritual gifts 34 he calls those which he possessed, being either those of doctrine, or of exhortation, or of prophesy which he knew had come to him through God’s favor. He has here strikingly pointed out the use of gifts by the word, imparting: for different gifts are distributed to each individual, that all may in kindness mutually assist one another, and transfer to others what each one possesses. See Rom 12:3

To confirm you, etc. He modifies what he had said of imparting, lest he should seem to regard them such as were yet to be instructed in the first elements of religion, as though they were not hitherto rightly taught in Christ. He then says, that he wished so to lend his aid to them, that they who had for the most part made a proficiency, might be further assisted: for a confirmation is what we all want, until Christ be fully formed in us. (Eph 4:13.)

Calvin: Rom 1:12 - -- 12. Being not satisfied with this modest statement, he qualifies it, and shows, that he did not so occupy the place of a teacher, but that he wished...

12. Being not satisfied with this modest statement, he qualifies it, and shows, that he did not so occupy the place of a teacher, but that he wished to learn also from them; as though he said, “I desire so to confirm you according to the measure of grace conferred on me, that your example may also add courage ( alacritatem — alacrity) to my faith, and that we may thus mutually benefit one another.”

See to what degree of modesty his pious heart submitted itself, so that he disdained not to seek confirmation from unexperienced beginners: nor did he speak dissemblingly, for there is no one so void of gifts in the Church of Christ, who is not able to contribute something to our benefit: but we are hindered by our envy and by our pride from gathering such fruit from one another. Such is our high-mindedness, such is the inebriety produced by vain reputation, that despising and disregarding others, every one thinks that he possesses what is abundantly sufficient for himself. I prefer to read with Bucer, exhortation ( exhortationem — encouragement) rather than consolatim ; for it agrees better with the former part. 35

Calvin: Rom 1:13 - -- 13.I would not that you should be ignorant. What he has hitherto testified — that he continually requested of the Lord that he might visit them, mi...

13.I would not that you should be ignorant. What he has hitherto testified — that he continually requested of the Lord that he might visit them, might have appeared a vain thing, and could not have obtained credit, had he neglected to seize the occasion when offered: he therefore says, that the effort had not been wanting, but the opportunity; for he had been prevented from executing a purpose often formed.

We hence learn that the Lord frequently upsets the purposes of his saints, in order to humble them, and by such humiliation to teach them to regard his Providence, that they may rely on it; though the saints, who design nothing without the Lord’s will, cannot be said, strictly speaking, to be driven away from their purposes. It is indeed the presumption of impiety to pass by God, and without him to determine on things to come, as though they were in our own power; and this is what James sharply reprehends in Jas 4:13.

But he says that he was hindered: you must take this in no other sense, but that the Lord employed him in more urgent concerns, which he could not have neglected without loss to the Church. Thus the hinderances of the godly and of the unbelieving differ: the latter perceive only that they are hindered, when they are restrained by the strong hand of the Lord, so as not to be able to move; but the former are satisfied with an hinderance that arises from some approved reason; nor do they allow themselves to attempt any thing beyond their duty, or contrary to edification.

That I might obtain some fruit, etc. He no doubt speaks of that fruit, for the gathering of which the Lord sent his Apostles,

“I have chosen you, that ye may go and bring forth fruit,
and that your fruit may remain.” (Joh 15:16.)

Though he gathered it not for himself, but for the Lord, he yet calls it his own; for the godly have nothing more as their own than the work of promoting the glory of the Lord, with which is connected all their happiness. And he records what had happened to him with respect to other nations, that the Romans might entertain hope, that his coming to them would not be unprofitable, which so many nations had found to have been attended with so much benefit.

Calvin: Rom 1:14 - -- 14.I am a debtor both to the Greeks and to the Barbarians, etc. Those whom he means by the Greeks and the Barbarians, he afterwards explains by addin...

14.I am a debtor both to the Greeks and to the Barbarians, etc. Those whom he means by the Greeks and the Barbarians, he afterwards explains by adding, both to the wise and to the foolish; which words Erasmus has not rendered amiss by “learned and unlearned,” ( eruditos et rudes ,) but I prefer to retain the very words of Paul. He then takes an argument from his own office, and intimates that it ought not to be ascribed to his arrogance, that he thought himself in a manner capable of teaching the Romans, however much they excelled in learning and wisdom and in the knowledge of things, inasmuch as it had pleased the Lord to make him a debtor even to the wise. 36

Two things are to be here considered — that the gospel is by a heavenly mandate destined and offered to the wise, in order that the Lord may subject to himself all the wisdom of this world, and make all variety of talents, and every kind of science, and the loftiness of all arts, to give way to the simplicity of his doctrine; and what is more, they are to be reduced to the same rank with the unlearned, and to be made so meek, as to be able to bear those to be their fellow-disciples under their master, Christ, whom they would not have deigned before to take as their scholars; and then that the unlearned are by no means to be driven away from this school, nor are they to flee away from it through groundless fear; for if Paul was indebted to them, being a faithful debtor, he had doubtless discharged what he owed; and thus they will find here what they will be capable of enjoying. All teachers have also a rule here which they are to follow, and that is, modestly and kindly to accommodate themselves to the capacities of the ignorant and unlearned. Hence it will be, that they will be able, with more evenness of mind, to bear with many absurdities and almost innumerable things that may disgust them, by which they might otherwise be overcome. They are, however, to remember, that they are not so indebted to the foolish, as that they are to cherish their folly by immoderate indulgence.

Calvin: Rom 1:15 - -- 15.I am therefore ready, 37 etc. He concludes what he had before said of his desire — that as he knew it to be his duty to spread the gospel amon...

15.I am therefore ready, 37 etc. He concludes what he had before said of his desire — that as he knew it to be his duty to spread the gospel among them, in order to gather fruit for the Lord, he was anxious to fulfill God’s calling, as far as he was allowed to do so by the Lord.

Calvin: Rom 1:16 - -- 16.I am not indeed ashamed, === etc. This is an anticipation of an objection; for he declares beforehand, that he cared not for the taunts of the un...

16.I am not indeed ashamed, === etc. This is an anticipation of an objection; for he declares beforehand, that he cared not for the taunts of the ungodly; and he thus provides a way for himself, by which he proceeds to pronounce an eulogy on the value of the gospel, that it might not appear contemptible to the Romans. He indeed intimates that it was contemptible in the eyes of the world; and he does this by saying, that he was not ashamed of it. And thus he prepares them for bearing the reproach of the cross of Christ, lest they should esteem the gospel of less value by finding it exposed to the scoffs and reproaches of the ungodly; and, on the other hand, he shows how valuable it was to the faithful. If, in the first place, the power of God ought to be extolled by us, that power shines forth in the gospel; if, again, the goodness of God deserves to be sought and loved by us, the gospel is a display of his goodness. It ought then to be reverenced and honored, since veneration is due to God’s power; and as it avails to our salvation, it ought to be loved by us.

But observe how much Paul ascribes to the ministry of the word, when he testifies that God thereby puts forth his power to save; for he speaks not here of any secret revelation, but of vocal preaching. It hence follows, that those as it were willfully despise the power of God, and drive away from them his delivering hand, who withdraw themselves from the hearing of the word.

At the same time, as he works not effectually in all, but only where the Spirit, the inward Teacher, illuminates the heart, he subjoins, To every one who believeth. The gospel is indeed offered to all for their salvation, but the power of it appears not everywhere: and that it is the savor of death to the ungodly, does not proceed from what it is, but from their own wickedness. By setting forth but one Salvation he cuts off every other trust. When men withdraw themselves from this one salvation, they find in the gospel a sure proof of their own ruin. Since then the gospel invites all to partake of salvation without any difference, it is rightly called the doctrine of salvation: for Christ is there offered, whose peculiar office is to save that which was lost; and those who refuse to be saved by him, shall find him a Judge. But everywhere in Scripture the word salvation is simply set in opposition to the word destruction: and hence we must observe, when it is mentioned, what the subject of the discourse is. Since then the gospel delivers from ruin and the curse of endless death, its salvation is eternal life. 38

===First to the Jew and then to the Greek Under the word Greek, he includes all the Gentiles, as it is evident from the comparison that is made; for the two clauses comprehend all mankind. And it is probable that he chose especially this nation to designate other nations, because, in the first place, it was admitted, next to the Jews, into a participation of the gospel covenant; and, secondly, because the Greeks, on account of their vicinity, and the celebrity of their language, were more known to the Jews. It is then a mode of speaking, a part being taken for the whole, by which he connects the Gentiles universally with the Jews, as participators of the gospel: nor does he thrust the Jews from their own eminence and dignity, since they were the first partakers of God’s promise and calling. He then reserves for them their prerogative; but he immediately joins the Gentiles, though in the second place, as being partakers with them.

Calvin: Rom 1:17 - -- 17.For 39 the righteousness of God, etc. This is an explanation and a confirmation of the preceding clause — that the gospel is the power of God ...

17.For 39 the righteousness of God, etc. This is an explanation and a confirmation of the preceding clause — that the gospel is the power of God unto salvation. For if we seek salvation, that is, life with God, righteousness must be first sought, by which being reconciled to him, we may, through him being propitious to us, obtain that life which consists only in his favor; for, in order to be loved by God, we must first become righteous, since he regards unrighteousness with hatred. He therefore intimates, that we cannot obtain salvation otherwise than from the gospel, since nowhere else does God reveal to us his righteousness, which alone delivers us from perdition. Now this righteousness, which is the groundwork of our salvation, is revealed in the gospel: hence the gospel is said to be the power of God unto salvation. Thus he reasons from the cause to the effect.

Notice further, how extraordinary and valuable a treasure does God bestow on us through the gospel, even the communication of his own righteousness. I take the righteousness of God to mean, that which is approved before his tribunal; 40 as that, on the contrary, is usually called the righteousness of men, which is by men counted and supposed to be righteousness, though it be only vapor. Paul, however, I doubt not, alludes to the many prophecies in which the Spirit makes known everywhere the righteousness of God in the future kingdom of Christ.

Some explain it as the righteousness which is freely given us by God: and I indeed confess that the words will bear this sense; for God justifies us by the gospel, and thus saves us: yet the former view seems to me more suitable, though it is not what I make much of. Of greater moment is what some think, that this righteousness does not only consist in the free remission of sins, but also, in part, includes the grace of regeneration. But I consider, that we are restored to life because God freely reconciles us to himself, as we shall hereafter show in its proper place.

But instead of the expression he used before, “to every one who believeth,” he says now, from faith; for righteousness is offered by the gospel, and is received by faith. And he adds, to faith: for as our faith makes progress, and as it advances in knowledge, so the righteousness of God increases in us at the same time, and the possession of it is in a manner confirmed. When at first we taste the gospel, we indeed see God’s smiling countenance turned towards us, but at a distance: the more the knowledge of true religion grows in us, by coming as it were nearer, we behold God’s favor more clearly and more familiarly. What some think, that there is here an implied comparison between the Old and New Testament, is more refined than well-founded; for Paul does not here compare the Fathers who lived under the law with us, but points out the daily progress that is made by every one of the faithful.

As it is written, etc. By the authority of the Prophet Habakkuk he proves the righteousness of faith; for he, predicting the overthrow of the proud, adds this — that the life of the righteous consists in faith. Now we live not before God, except through righteousness: it then follows, that our righteousness is obtained by faith; and the verb being future, designates the real perpetuity of that life of which he speaks; as though he had said, — that it would not be momentary, but continue forever. For even the ungodly swell with the false notion of having life; but when they say, “Peace and safety,” a sudden destruction comes upon them, (1Th 5:3.) It is therefore a shadow, which endures only for a moment. Faith alone is that which secures the perpetuity of life; and whence is this, except that it leads us to God, and makes our life to depend on him? For Paul would not have aptly quoted this testimony had not the meaning of the Prophet been, that we then only stand, when by faith we recumb on God: and he has not certainly ascribed life to the faith of the godly, but in as far as they, having renounced the arrogance of the world, resign themselves to the protection of God alone. 41

He does not indeed professedly handle this subject; and hence he makes no mention of gratuitous justification: but it is sufficiently evident from the nature of faith, that this testimony is rightly applied to the present subject. Besides, we necessarily gather from his reasoning, that there is a mutual connection between faith and the gospel: for as the just is said to live by faith, he concludes that this life is received by the gospel.

We have now the principal point or the main hinge of the first part of this Epistle, — that we are justified by faith through the mercy of God alone. We have not this, indeed as yet distinctly expressed by Paul; but from his own words it will hereafter be made very clear — that the righteousness, which is grounded on faith, depends entirely on the mercy of God.

Calvin: Rom 1:18 - -- 18.For 42 revealed, etc. He reasons now by stating things of a contrary nature, and proves that there is no righteousness except what is conferred...

18.For 42 revealed, etc. He reasons now by stating things of a contrary nature, and proves that there is no righteousness except what is conferred, or comes through the gospel; for he shows that without this all men are condemned: by it alone there is salvation to be found. And he brings, as the first proof of condemnation, the fact, — that though the structure of the world, and the most beautiful arrangement of the elements, ought to have induced man to glorify God, yet no one discharged his proper duty: it hence appears that all were guilty of sacrilege, and of wicked and abominable ingratitude.

To some it seems that this is a main subject, and that Paul forms his discourse for the purpose of enforcing repentance; but I think that the discussion of the subject begins here, and that the principal point is stated in a former proposition; for Paul’s object was to teach us where salvation is to be found. He has already declared that we cannot obtain it except through the gospel: but as the flesh will not willingly humble itself so far as to assign the praise of salvation to the grace of God alone, Paul shows that the whole world is deserving of eternal death. It hence follows, that life is to be recovered in some other way, since we are all lost in ourselves. But the words, being well considered, will help us much to understand the meaning of the passage.

Some make a difference between impiety and unrighteousness, and think, that by the former word is meant the profanation of God’s worship, and by the latter, injustice towards men; but as the Apostle immediately refers this unrighteousness to the neglect of true religion, we shall explain both as referring to the same thing. 43 And then, all the impiety of men is to be taken, by a figure in language, as meaning “the impiety of all men,” or, the impiety of which all men are guilty. But by these two words one thing is designated, and that is, ingratitude towards God; for we thereby offend in two ways: it is said to be ἀσέβεια, impiety, as it is a dishonoring of God; it is ἀδικία, unrighteousness, because man, by transferring to himself what belongs to God, unjustly deprives God of his glory. The word wrath, according to the usage of Scripture, speaking after the manner of men, means the vengeance of God; for God, in punishing, has, according to our notion, the appearance of one in wrath. It imports, therefore, no such emotion in God, but only has a reference to the perception and feeling of the sinner who is punished. Then he says that it is revealed from heaven; though the expression, from heaven, is taken by some in the sense of an adjective, as though he had said “the wrath of the celestial God;” yet I think it more emphatical, when taken as having this import, “Wheresoever a man may look around him, he will find no salvation; for the wrath of God is poured out on the whole world, to the full extent of heaven.”

The truth of God means, the true knowledge of God; and to hold in that, is to suppress or to obscure it: hence they are charged as guilty of robbery. — What we render unjustly, is given literally by Paul, in unrighteousness, which means the same thing in Hebrew: but we have regard to perspicuity. 44

Calvin: Rom 1:19 - -- 19.=== Inasmuch as what may be known of God, === etc. He thus designates what it behoves us to know of God; and he means all that appertains to the ...

19.=== Inasmuch as what may be known of God, === etc. He thus designates what it behoves us to know of God; and he means all that appertains to the setting forth of the glory of the Lord, or, which is the same thing, whatever ought to move and excite us to glorify God. And by this expression he intimates, that God in his greatness can by no means be fully comprehended by us, and that there are certain limits within which men ought to confine themselves, inasmuch as God accommodates to our small capacities what he testifies of himself. Insane then are all they who seek to know of themselves what God is: for the Spirit, the teacher of perfect wisdom, does not in vain invite our attention to what may be known, τὸ γνωστὸν; and by what means this is known, he immediately explains. And he said, in them rather than to them, for the sake of greater emphasis: for though the Apostle adopts everywhere Hebrew phrases, and ב , beth, is often redundant in that language, yet he seems here to have intended to indicate a manifestation, by which they might be so closely pressed, that they could not evade; for every one of us undoubtedly finds it to be engraven on his own heart, 45 By saying, that God has made it manifest, he means, that man was created to be a spectator of this formed world, and that eyes were given him, that he might, by looking on so beautiful a picture, be led up to the Author himself.

Calvin: Rom 1:20 - -- 20.Since his invisible things, 46 etc. God is in himself invisible; but as his majesty shines forth in his works and in his creatures everywhere, m...

20.Since his invisible things, 46 etc. God is in himself invisible; but as his majesty shines forth in his works and in his creatures everywhere, men ought in these to acknowledge him, for they clearly set forth their Maker: and for this reason the Apostle in his Epistle to the Hebrews says, that this world is a mirror, or the representation of invisible things. He does not mention all the particulars which may be thought to belong to God; but he states, that we can arrive at the knowledge of his eternal power and divinity; 47 for he who is the framer of all things, must necessarily be without beginning and from himself. When we arrive at this point, the divinity becomes known to us, which cannot exist except accompanied with all the attributes of a God, since they are all included under that idea.

So that they are inexcusable It hence clearly appears what the consequence is of having this evidence — that men cannot allege any thing before God’s tribunal for the purpose of showing that they are not justly condemned. Yet let this difference be remembered, that the manifestation of God, by which he makes his glory known in his creation, is, with regard to the light itself, sufficiently clear; but that on account of our blindness, it is not found to be sufficient. We are not however so blind, that we can plead our ignorance as an excuse for our perverseness. We conceive that there is a Deity; and then we conclude, that whoever he may be, he ought to be worshipped: but our reason here fails, because it cannot ascertain who or what sort of being God is. Hence the Apostle in Heb 11:3, ascribes to faith the light by which man can gain real knowledge from the work of creation, and not without reason; for we are prevented by our blindness, so that we reach not to the end in view; we yet see so far, that we cannot pretend any excuse. Both these things are strikingly set forth by Paul in Act 14:16, when he says, that the Lord in past times left the nations in their ignorance, and yet that he left them not without witness ( amarturon ,) since he gave them rain and fertility from heaven. But this knowledge of God, which avails only to take away excuse, differs greatly from that which brings salvation, which Christ mentions in Joh 17:3, and in which we are to glory, as Jeremiah teaches us, Jer 9:24

Calvin: Rom 1:21 - -- 21.For when they knew God, etc. He plainly testifies here, that God has presented to the minds of all the means of knowing him, having so manifeste...

21.For when they knew God, etc. He plainly testifies here, that God has presented to the minds of all the means of knowing him, having so manifested himself by his works, that they must necessarily see what of themselves they seek not to know — that there is some God; for the world does not by chance exist, nor could it have proceeded from itself. But we must ever bear in mind the degree of knowledge in which they continued; and this appears from what follows.

They glorified him not as God. No idea can be formed of God without including his eternity, power, wisdom, goodness, truth, righteousness, and mercy. His eternity appears evident, because he is the maker of all things — his power, because he holds all things in his hand and continues their existence — his wisdom, because he has arranged things in such an exquisite order — his goodness, for there is no other cause than himself, why he created all things, and no other reason, why he should be induced to preserve them — his justice, because in his government he punishes the guilty and defends the innocent — his mercy, because he bears with so much forbearance the perversity of men — and his truth, because he is unchangeable. He then who has a right notion of God ought to give him the praise due to his eternity, wisdom, goodness, and justice. Since men have not recognized these attributes in God, but have dreamt of him as though he were an empty phantom, they are justly said to have impiously robbed him of his own glory. Nor is it without reason that he adds, that they were not thankful, 48 for there is no one who is not indebted to him for numberless benefits: yea, even on this account alone, because he has been pleased to reveal himself to us, he has abundantly made us indebted to him. But they became vain, 49 etc.; that is, having forsaken the truth of God, they turned to the vanity of their own reason, all the acuteness of which is fading and passes away like vapor. And thus their foolish mind, being involved in darkness, could understand nothing aright but was carried away headlong, in various ways, into errors and delusions. Their unrighteousness was this — they quickly choked by their own depravity the seed of right knowledge, before it grew up to ripeness.

Calvin: Rom 1:22 - -- 22.=== While they were thinking, === etc. It is commonly inferred from this passage, that Paul alludes here to those philosophers, who assumed to th...

22.=== While they were thinking, === etc. It is commonly inferred from this passage, that Paul alludes here to those philosophers, who assumed to themselves in a peculiar manner the reputation of wisdom; and it is thought that the design of his discourse is to show, that when the superiority of the great is brought down to nothing, the common people would have no reason to suppose that they had any thing worthy of being commended: but they seem to me to have been guided by too slender a reason; for it was not peculiar to the philosophers to suppose themselves wise in the knowledge of God, but it was equally common to all nations, and to all ranks of men. There were indeed none who sought not to form some ideas of the majesty of God, and to make him such a God as they could conceive him to be according to their own reason. This presumption I hold is not learned in the schools, but is innate, and comes with us, so to speak, from the womb. It is indeed evident, that it is an evil which has prevailed in all ages — that men have allowed themselves every liberty in coining superstitions. The arrogance then which is condemned here is this — that men sought to be of themselves wise, and to draw God down to a level with their own low condition, when they ought humbly to have given him his own glory. For Paul holds this principle, that none, except through their own fault, are unacquainted with the worship due to God; as though he said, “As they have proudly exalted themselves, they have become infatuated through the righteous judgment of God.” There is an obvious reason, which contravenes the interpretation which I reject; for the error of forming an image of God did not originate with the philosophers; but they, by their consent, approved of it as received from others. 50

Calvin: Rom 1:23 - -- 23.And changed, etc. Having feigned such a God as they could comprehend according to their carnal reason, they were very far from acknowledging the...

23.And changed, etc. Having feigned such a God as they could comprehend according to their carnal reason, they were very far from acknowledging the true God: but devised a fictitious and a new god, or rather a phantom. And what he says is, that they changed the glory of God; for as though one substituted a strange child, so they departed from the true God. Nor are they to be excused for this pretense, that they believe that God dwells in heaven, and that they count not the wood to be God, but his image; for it is a high indignity to God, to form so gross an idea of his majesty as to dare to make an image of him. But from the wickedness of such a presumption none were exempt, neither priests, nor statesmen, nor philosophers, of whom the most sound-minded, even Plato himself, sought to find out some likeness of God.

The madness then here noticed, is, that all attempted to make for themselves an image of God; which was a certain proof that their notions of God were gross and absurd. And, first, they befouled the majesty of God by forming him in the likeness of a corruptible man: for I prefer this rendering to that of mortal man, which is adopted by [Erasmus] ; for Paul sets not the immortality of God in opposition to the mortality of man, but that glory, which is subject to no defects, to the most wretched condition of man. And then, being not satisfied with so great a crime, they descended even to beasts and to those of the most filthy kind; by which their stupidity appeared still more evident. You may see an account of these abominations in Lactantius, in [Eusebius] , and in [Augustine] in his book on the city of God.

Calvin: Rom 1:24 - -- 24.=== God therefore gave them up, === etc. As impiety is a hidden evil, lest they should still find an evasion, he shows, by a more palpable demons...

24.=== God therefore gave them up, === etc. As impiety is a hidden evil, lest they should still find an evasion, he shows, by a more palpable demonstration, that, they cannot escape, but must be held fast by a just condemnation, since such fruits have followed this impiety as cannot be viewed otherwise than manifest evidences of the Lord’s wrath. As the Lord’s wrath is always just, it follows, that what has exposed them to condemnation, must have preceded it. By these evidences then he now proves the apostasy and defection of men: for the Lord indeed does so punish those, who alienate themselves from his goodness, that he casts them headlong into various courses which lead to perdition and ruin. And by comparing the vices, of which they were guilty, with the impiety, of which he had before accused them, he shows that they suffered punishment through the just judgment of God: for since nothing is dearer to us than our own honor, it is extreme blindness, when we fear not to bring disgrace on ourselves; and it is the most suitable punishment for a reproach done to the Divine Majesty. This is the very thing which he treats of to the end of the chapter; but he handles it in various ways, for the subject required ample illustration.

What then, in short, he proves to us is this, — that the ingratitude of men to God is incapable of being excused; for it is manifest, by unequivocal evidences, that the wrath of God rages against them: they would have never rolled themselves in lusts so filthy, after the manner of beasts, had not the majesty of God been provoked and incensed against them. Since, then, the worst abominations abounded everywhere, he concludes that there existed among them evidences of divine vengeance. Now, as this never rages without reason, or unjustly, but ever keeps within the limits of what is right, he intimates that it hence appears that perdition, not less certain than just, impended over all.

As to the manner in which God gives up or delivers men to wickedness, it is by no means necessary in this place to discuss a question so intricate, ( longam — tedious.) It is indeed certain, that he not only permits men to fall into sin, by allowing them to do so, and by conniving at them; but that he also, by his equitable judgment, so arranges things, that they are led and carried into such madness by their own lusts, as well as by the devil. He therefore adopts the word, give up, according to the constant usage of Scripture; which word they forcibly wrest, who think that we are led into sin only by the permission of God: for as Satan is the minister of God’s wrath, and as it were the executioner, so he is armed against us, not through the connivance, but by the command of his judge. God, however, is not on this account cruel, nor are we innocent, inasmuch as Paul plainly shows, that we are not delivered up into his power, except when we deserve such a punishment. Only we must make this exception, that the cause of sin is not from God, the roots of which ever abide in the sinner himself; for this must be true,

“Thine is perdition, O Israel; in me only is thy help.”
(Hos 13:9) 51

By connecting the desires or lusts of man’s heart with uncleanness, he indirectly intimates what sort of progeny our heart generates, when left to itself. The expression, among themselves, is not without its force; for it significantly expresses how deep and indelible are the marks of infamy imprinted on our bodies.

Calvin: Rom 1:25 - -- 25.Who changed, etc. He repeats what he had said before, though in different words, in order to fix it deeper in our minds. When the truth of God i...

25.Who changed, etc. He repeats what he had said before, though in different words, in order to fix it deeper in our minds. When the truth of God is turned to a lie, his glory is obliterated. It is then but just, that they should be besprinkled with every kind of infamy, who strive to take away from God his honor, and also to reproach his name. —

And worshipped, etc. That I might include two words in one, I have given this rendering. He points out especially the sin of idolatry; for religious honor cannot be given to a creature, without taking it away, in a disgraceful and sacrilegious manner, from God: and vain is the excuse that images are worshipped on God’s account, since God acknowledges no such worship, nor regards it as acceptable; and the true God is not then worshipped at all, but a fictitious God, whom the flesh has devised for itself. 52 What is added, Who is blessed for ever, I explain as having been said for the purpose of exposing idolaters to greater reproach, and in this way, “He is one whom they ought alone to have honored and worshipped, and from whom it was not right to take away any thing, no, not even the least.”

Calvin: Rom 1:26 - -- 26.God therefore gave them up, etc. After having introduced as it were an intervening clause, he returns to what he had before stated respecting th...

26.God therefore gave them up, etc. After having introduced as it were an intervening clause, he returns to what he had before stated respecting the judgment of God: and he brings, as the first example, the dreadful crime of unnatural lust; and it hence appears that they not only abandoned themselves to beastly lusts, but became degraded beyond the beasts, since they reversed the whole order of nature. He then enumerates a long catalogue of vices which had existed in all ages, and then prevailed everywhere without any restraint.

It is not to the purpose to say, that every one was not laden with so great a mass of vices; for in arraigning the common baseness of men, it is proof enough if all to a man are constrained to acknowledge some faults. So then we must consider, that Paul here records those abominations which had been common in all ages, and were at that time especially prevalent everywhere; for it is marvelous how common then was that filthiness which even brute beasts abhor; and some of these vices were even popular. And he recites a catalogue of vices, in some of which the whole race of man were involved; for though all were not murderers, or thieves, or adulterers, yet there were none who were not found polluted by some vice or another. He calls those disgraceful passions, which are shameful even in the estimation of men, and redound to the dishonoring of God.

Calvin: Rom 1:27 - -- 27.Such a reward for their error as was meet They indeed deserved to be blinded, so as to forget themselves, and not to see any thing befitting them,...

27.Such a reward for their error as was meet They indeed deserved to be blinded, so as to forget themselves, and not to see any thing befitting them, who, through their own malignity, closed their eyes against the light offered them by God, that they might not behold his glory: in short, they who were not ashamed to extinguish, as much as they could, the glory of God, which alone gives us light, deserved to become blind at noonday.

Calvin: Rom 1:28 - -- 28.And as they chose not, === etc. There is an evident comparison to be observed in these words, by which is strikingly set forth the just relation ...

28.And as they chose not, === etc. There is an evident comparison to be observed in these words, by which is strikingly set forth the just relation between sin and punishment. As they chose not to continue in the knowledge of God, which alone guides our minds to true wisdom, the Lord gave them a perverted mind, which can choose nothing that is right. 53 And by saying, that they chose not, ( non probasse - approved not,) it is the same as though he had said, that they pursued not after the knowledge of God with the attention they ought to have done, but, on the contrary, turned away their thoughts resignedly from God. He then intimates, that they, making a depraved choice, preferred their own vanities to the true God; and thus the error, by which they were deceived, was voluntary.

===To do those things which were not meet As he had hitherto referred only to one instance of abomination, which prevailed indeed among many, but was not common to all, he begins here to enumerate vices from which none could be found free: for though every vice, as it has been said, did not appear in each individual, yet all were guilty of some vices, so that every one might separately be accused of manifest depravity. As he calls them in the first instance not meet, understand him as saying, that they were inconsistent with every decision of reason, and alien to the duties of men: for he mentions it as an evidence of a perverted mind, that men addicted themselves, without any reflection, to those vices, which common sense ought to have led them to renounce.

But it is labor in vain so to connect these vices, as to make them dependent one on another, since this was not Paul’s design; but he set them down as they occurred to his mind. What each of them signifies, we shall very briefly explain.

Calvin: Rom 1:29 - -- 29. Understand by unrighteousness, the violation of justice among men, by not rendering to each his due. I have rendered πονηρίαν, according...

29. Understand by unrighteousness, the violation of justice among men, by not rendering to each his due. I have rendered πονηρίαν, according to the opinion of Ammonium, wickedness; for he teaches us that πονηρον, the wicked, is δραστίκον κακου, the doer of evil. The word ( nequitia ) then means practiced wickedness, or licentiousness in doing mischief: but maliciousness ( malitia ) is that depravity and obliquity of mind which leads us to do harm to our neighbour. 54 For the word πορνείαν, which Paul uses, I have put lust, ( libidinem .) I do not, however, object, if one prefers to render it fornication; but he means the inward passion as well as the outward act. 55 The words avarice, envy, and murder, have nothing doubtful in their meaning. Under the word strife, ( contentione ,) 56 he includes quarrels, fightings, and seditions. We have rendered κακοηθείαν, perversity, ( perversitatem ;) 57 which is a notorious and uncommon wickedness; that is, when a man, covered over, as it were, with hardness, has become hardened in a corrupt course of life by custom and evil habit.

Calvin: Rom 1:30 - -- 30. The word θεοστυγεῖς, means, no doubt, haters of God; for there is no reason to take it in a passive sense, (hated of God,) since Pau...

30. The word θεοστυγεῖς, means, no doubt, haters of God; for there is no reason to take it in a passive sense, (hated of God,) since Paul here proves men to be guilty by manifest vices. Those, then, are designated, who hate God, whose justice they seem to resist by doing wrong. Whisperers ( susurrones ) and slanderers ( obtrectatores ) 58 are to be thus distinguished; the former, by secret accusations, break off the friendships of good men, inflame their minds with anger, defame the innocent, and sow discords; and the latter through an innate malignity, spare the reputation of no one, and, as though they were instigated by the fury of evilspeaking, they revile the deserving as well as the undeserving We have translated ὑβριστὰς, villanous, ( maleficos ;) for the Latin authors are wont to call notable injuries villanies, such as plunders, thefts, burnings, and sorceries; and these where the vices which Paul meant to point out here. 59 I have rendered the word ὑπερήφανους, used by Paul, insolent, ( contumeliosos ;) for this is the meaning of the Greek word: and the reason for the word is this, — because such being raised, as it were, on high, look down on those who are, as it were, below them with contempt, and they cannot bear to look on their equals. Haughty are they who swell with the empty wind of overweeningness. Unsociable 60 are those who, by their iniquities, unloose the bands of society, or those in whom there is no sincerity or constancy of faith, who may be called truce-breakers.

Calvin: Rom 1:31 - -- 31.Without the feelings of humanity are they who have put off the first affections of nature towards their own relations. As he mentions the want of ...

31.Without the feelings of humanity are they who have put off the first affections of nature towards their own relations. As he mentions the want of mercy as an evidence of human nature being depraved, [Augustine], in arguing against the Stoics, concludes, that mercy is a Christian virtue.

Calvin: Rom 1:32 - -- 32.Who, knowing the judgement 61 of God, etc. Though this passage is variously explained, yet the following appears to me the correctest interpret...

32.Who, knowing the judgement 61 of God, etc. Though this passage is variously explained, yet the following appears to me the correctest interpretation, — that men left nothing undone for the purpose of giving unbridled liberty to their sinful propensities; for having taken away all distinction between good and evil, they approved in themselves and in others those things which they knew displeased God, and would be condemned by his righteous judgment. For it is the summit of all evils, when the sinner is so void of shame, that he is pleased with his own vices, and will not bear them to be reproved, and also cherishes them in others by his consent and approbation. This desperate wickedness is thus described in Scripture:

“They boast when they do evil,” (Pro 2:14.)

“She has spread out her feet,
and gloried in her wickedness,” (Eze 16:25.)

For he who is ashamed is as yet healable; but when such an impudence is contracted through a sinful habit, that vices, and not virtues, please us, and are approved, there is no more any hope of reformation. Such, then, is the interpretation I give; for I see that the Apostle meant here to condemn something more grievous and more wicked than the very doing of vices: what that is I know not, except we refer to that which is the summit of all wickedness, — that is, when wretched men, having cast away all shame, undertake the patronage of vices in opposition to the righteousness of God.

Defender: Rom 1:2 - -- Paul began his treatise by stressing that the gospel was not some new religion, but was the prophetic fulfillment of the promises given in God's Holy ...

Paul began his treatise by stressing that the gospel was not some new religion, but was the prophetic fulfillment of the promises given in God's Holy Scriptures from the beginning."

Defender: Rom 1:3 - -- The central truth of Christianity is the incarnation of God in human flesh, in the person of His Son, the Lord Jesus Christ. He was a true man, "made ...

The central truth of Christianity is the incarnation of God in human flesh, in the person of His Son, the Lord Jesus Christ. He was a true man, "made of the seed of David," as foretold by the prophets; His birth was completely natural from the point of conception, but His conception was altogether miraculous. He had no human father (although Joseph was his legal, adoptive father, conveying the legal right to David's throne) and His mother remained a virgin until after He was born. Since Mary herself was a descendant of David, and since He grew in her womb for nine months, He was indeed "made" of one who was of the seed of David. Nevertheless, He could have had no genetic connection to either Mary or Joseph. Otherwise, there could have been no natural way in which "that holy thing" (Luk 1:35) could have been kept from inherited sin or inherited mutational defects. Thus, His conception necessarily involved the special creation of the cell placed by the Holy Spirit in Mary's womb. "A body hast thou prepared me" (Heb 10:5). Just as the body of the first Adam was specially created by God, without genetic connection to human parents, so was that of "the last Adam" (1Co 15:45). Yet, He was no less fully human than the first Adam, the father of all other humans. Furthermore, His growing body was "made" through natural nourishment in Mary's womb as He grew, and Mary was "of the seed of David." Thus He was, indeed, "made of the seed of David according to the flesh," although the specifications for the "making" of His body were contained in the DNA code programmed by God in the created cell."

Defender: Rom 1:4 - -- While Jesus was fully man - in fact, perfect man, man as God had intended man to be - He was also fully God. This fact was perfectly demonstrated by H...

While Jesus was fully man - in fact, perfect man, man as God had intended man to be - He was also fully God. This fact was perfectly demonstrated by His bodily resurrection. The power to defeat death and rise again is beyond all human ability. Only the Creator of life, the God who imposed death as the penalty for sin, could defeat death. Christ's bodily resurrection, supported historically as it is by "many infallible proofs" (Act 1:3) is the crowning proof that He is, indeed, the eternal and unique Son of God."

Defender: Rom 1:14 - -- Those who used the Greek languages called anyone who could not use the Greek or Latin, which were considered the languages of cultured people, Barbari...

Those who used the Greek languages called anyone who could not use the Greek or Latin, which were considered the languages of cultured people, Barbarians. The term had nothing to do with intelligence or state of civilization. Both Greeks and "Barbarians" were Gentiles, of course, following some form of pagan evolutionary atheism or pantheism as their religion, and thus Paul felt he was debtor to both of them. That is, he owed them the gospel of salvation and he ought to be preaching it to them. The words debtor, owed and ought are all similar in the Greek."

Defender: Rom 1:16 - -- There are six Greek words translated "power." This one is dunamis, meaning "effective ability to accomplish an intended purpose." The gospel proclaims...

There are six Greek words translated "power." This one is dunamis, meaning "effective ability to accomplish an intended purpose." The gospel proclaims and produces salvation in everyone who believes it.

Defender: Rom 1:16 - -- Paul's custom, as he entered a new city, was always to go first to the local Jewish synagogue to preach the gospel. However, the Jews for the most par...

Paul's custom, as he entered a new city, was always to go first to the local Jewish synagogue to preach the gospel. However, the Jews for the most part, in every city from Jerusalem to Rome, rejected it. This had been especially true at Corinth (Act 18:6, Act 18:12), the city from which he wrote these words to the Romans. Finally, when this happened also at Rome, his final words to the Jews there were "that the salvation of God is sent unto the Gentiles, and that they will hear it" (Act 28:28). Several years later he wrote to the church at Colossae, that in Christ "there is neither Greek nor Jew" (Col 3:11; Gal 3:28). In fact, in none of Paul's later epistles, written after his rejection by the Jews at Rome, is there any relevant reference to the Jews at all. After this point, Paul apparently treated all alike, both Jews and Gentiles."

Defender: Rom 1:17 - -- The quotation is from Hab 2:4, also quoted in Gal 3:11 and Heb 10:38. In the ministry of Martin Luther, this verse eventually became the great watchwo...

The quotation is from Hab 2:4, also quoted in Gal 3:11 and Heb 10:38. In the ministry of Martin Luther, this verse eventually became the great watchword of the Reformation."

Defender: Rom 1:20 - -- That is, from the very time of creation, men should have seen the evidence of God's existence and His work in the marvelous universe He had created, f...

That is, from the very time of creation, men should have seen the evidence of God's existence and His work in the marvelous universe He had created, for "God hath shewed it unto them" (Rom 1:19). "The heavens declare the glory of God, and the firmament sheweth his handiwork" (Psa 19:1). Since these things should have been seen and understood by men from the very time of the creation of the world, it is clear that the latter did not take place billions of years before men appeared on earth, as evolutionists and progressive creationists have alleged. Men and women have been in the world ever since its very beginning, and all should have recognized the reality of God, even before God gave His written revelation. Those who apply uniformitarian reasoning and natural processes to deduce a multi-billion year age for the world are merely seeking a means to avoid the overwhelming evidence of the special creation of all things in the beginning, and are "without excuse."

Defender: Rom 1:20 - -- The phrase "things that are made" is one word, poiema, in the Greek, a word used elsewhere only in Eph 2:10 : "For we are his workmanship." God has wr...

The phrase "things that are made" is one word, poiema, in the Greek, a word used elsewhere only in Eph 2:10 : "For we are his workmanship." God has written two poetic masterpieces, as it were, one in the physical creation, one in the lives of men and women redeemed and saved by His grace (Eph 1:7; Eph 2:8). Both give eloquent testimony to the eternal power and Godhead of the Creator-Redeemer.

Defender: Rom 1:20 - -- It is God's eternal power which is evidenced in the cosmos, the power which created it, not just the power which sustains it once it has been created....

It is God's eternal power which is evidenced in the cosmos, the power which created it, not just the power which sustains it once it has been created. The remarkable significance of this fact is illuminated by the modern discovery of the two most basic and universal laws of science, known technically as the first and second laws of thermodynamics. More popularly, they can be understood, respectively, as the law of conservation in the quantity of all things God created, and the law of deterioration in the quality (or organized complexity) of all things God created. The first law reflects the completion of creation in the past (Gen 2:1-3), so that nothing is now being either created or annihilated; creation is being conserved. The second law reflects the subsequent curse on creation because of sin (Gen 3:17-20; Rom 8:20-22), so that everything now has a strong tendency to die - that is, to disintegrate back to the dust (the basic elements) which God had created in the beginning and from which He had made all the complex systems in the cosmos. Thus, the completed and sustained, yet deteriorating, cosmos testifies powerfully to God's eternal power. Since nothing is now being created, the universe could not have created itself by the natural processes which now function in it. Yet, since it is now disintegrating and dying, it must have been created at some finite time in the past; otherwise, if it were infinitely old, it would already be dead and completely disintegrated. If it must have been created, yet could not have been created by the temporal power contained in its existing processes, it must have been created by the eternal power of a transcendent Creator. The creation, therefore, eloquently testifies to the eternal power of its Creator. The only adequate Cause (by the scientific law of cause-and-effect) to produce an infinite, unending, power-filled, intelligible universe containing living creatures must be an infinite, eternal, omnipotent, omniscient, living, personal God.

Defender: Rom 1:20 - -- The "Godhead" has always been understood by Christian theologians to refer to the divine Trinity - Father, Son and Holy Spirit: one God manifest in th...

The "Godhead" has always been understood by Christian theologians to refer to the divine Trinity - Father, Son and Holy Spirit: one God manifest in three Persons. The Greek word itself does not mean "trinity," but simply "Godhood" - the nature of God: God as He has revealed Himself. But that is the point; He has revealed Himself as a triune God. He is one God (Deu 6:4; Jam 2:19), yet not as the ineffable, unapproachable unitary God of the Muslims but as invisible omnipresent Father and as visible, approachable Son, and also as indwelling, guiding Spirit. This remarkable structure of God, like His eternal power, is clearly reflected in His physical creation, which could almost be said to be a model of the Godhead. That is, the created universe is actually a tri-universe of space, matter and time, with each permeating and representing the whole.

However, the universe is not partly composed of space, partly of matter, partly of time (like, for example, the three sides of a triangle). A trinity is not a trio or a triad, but a tri-unity, with each part comprising the whole, yet all three are required to make the whole. Thus, the universe is all space, all time, and all matter (including energy as a form of matter); in fact, scientists speak of it as a space-matter-time continuum. Furthermore, note the parallels between the tri-universe and the divine Trinity in terms of the logical order of the three components. Space (like the Father) is the invisible, omnipresent background of everything. Matter (like the Son) reveals the universe (like the Godhead) in visible, understandable form. Time (like the Spirit) is the entity by which the universe (like the Godhead) becomes applicable and understandable in events and experience. But that is not all. Space is a tri-unity comprised of three dimensions, with each dimension permeating all space. The reality of any portion of space is obtained by multiplying the three dimensions together (the "mathematics of the Trinity" is not 1 + 1 + 1 = 1, but rather 1 x 1 x 1 = 1). Further, space is identified in one dimension, seen in the second dimension, experienced in the third dimension. Similarly, time is future, present and past. The future is the unseen source of time, manifest moment-by-moment in the present, experienced and understood in the past. Finally, matter is unseen, omnipresent energy, manifesting itself in various forms of measurable motion, then experienced in corresponding phenomena. For example, light energy generates light waves which are experienced in the seeing of light. Sound energy generates sound waves which we experience when we hear sound.

Thus the physical universe is a great "Trinity of trinities," with the inner relationships of each element beautifully modeling the relationships of Father, Son and Holy Spirit. All of this does not prove that God is a Trinity, but it certainly is a remarkable fact. It is an amazing effect which can be explained on the assumption that God is a triune God, and has made His creation to reflect Himself, but it is very hard to explain any other way. The two other references to the "Godhead" occur in Act 17:29 and Col 2:9.

Defender: Rom 1:20 - -- The phrase "without excuse" is, literally, "without an apologetic" or "without a defense." 1Pe 3:15 instructs Christians to "be ready always to give a...

The phrase "without excuse" is, literally, "without an apologetic" or "without a defense." 1Pe 3:15 instructs Christians to "be ready always to give an answer," where the word "answer" is practically the same in both cases (Greek apologia). In other words, Christians do have an apologetic and ought to be ready to give it whenever someone attacks or questions their faith. Those who do not see the eternal power and nature of God in the creation, on the other hand, have no apologetic. They are "without excuse" (anapologetos) if they do not believe in our Creator God. The evidence is all around them."

Defender: Rom 1:21 - -- Rom 1:21-28 describes the awful descent of the ancient world from their ancestral knowledge of the true God, as received from Father Noah, down into e...

Rom 1:21-28 describes the awful descent of the ancient world from their ancestral knowledge of the true God, as received from Father Noah, down into evolutionary pantheism and its accompanying polytheism (Rom 1:21-25) and then into the gross immorality and wickedness that inevitably eventually follows such apostasy."

Defender: Rom 1:22 - -- Those who deny the God of creation are fools (Psa 14:1) and "without a defense" (see notes on Rom 1:20). Yet they come to such a foolish decision in t...

Those who deny the God of creation are fools (Psa 14:1) and "without a defense" (see notes on Rom 1:20). Yet they come to such a foolish decision in the belief that they are scientific in trying to explain the infinitely complex, majestic, beautiful creation without a Creator. The ancient pagans did this, with immeasurably tragic results in the history of the human race. Modern evangelicals, compromising with evolutionism and increasingly flirting with New Age pantheism, feminism and occultism, are in serious danger of starting down that same slippery slope (compare 2Ti 3:1-13)."

Defender: Rom 1:25 - -- "Creature" is the same word in the Greek as "creation." The ancient pagans originally knew the true God but in only a few generations after the Flood,...

"Creature" is the same word in the Greek as "creation." The ancient pagans originally knew the true God but in only a few generations after the Flood, under the leadership of Nimrod (Gen 10:8-11; Gen 11:1-9). They rebelled against Him and proceeded to worship the forces and systems of nature instead of the God who had created all these things, assuming either that the cosmos had always existed or else that it had somehow evolved itself from primordial chaos. These natural phenomena became personified as various gods and goddesses, of whom images began to be erected and for whom temples and shrines began to be built. Many of these also were associated with the host of heaven, both the stars and the spirits that presumably occupy the stars and planets controlling human lives via the "science" of astrology. These spirits are actually the demons or fallen angels under the authority of Satan, who is ultimately the malevolent being behind this entire complex of idolatry, astrology, spiritism and evolutionary pantheism."

Defender: Rom 1:26 - -- The descent into evolutionary paganism is always soon followed by gross immorality, specifically including sexual perversion, such as described in Rom...

The descent into evolutionary paganism is always soon followed by gross immorality, specifically including sexual perversion, such as described in Rom 1:26-29. Ancient Sodom was so notorious for homosexuality that its practice has long been known as sodomy (Gen 13:13; Gen 19:4-9). The practice became so widespread in ancient Greece that it was considered normal and even desirable. Other examples are abundant and, of course, it is quickly becoming accepted - even encouraged - here in America. Not surprisingly, this was preceded by widespread return to evolutionism in science and education."

Defender: Rom 1:28 - -- The basic reason for all evolutionary religion, from atheism and humanism to ancient Babylonian paganism to modern New Age pantheism is that men and w...

The basic reason for all evolutionary religion, from atheism and humanism to ancient Babylonian paganism to modern New Age pantheism is that men and women did not like to believe in the God of creation. Therefore, they diligently sought to find some evolutionary explanation for the world with which they could be more comfortable.

Defender: Rom 1:28 - -- Note the sad sequence of events: (1) because of their deliberate repudiation of God, God "gave them up to uncleanness" (Rom 1:24); (2) Because they wo...

Note the sad sequence of events: (1) because of their deliberate repudiation of God, God "gave them up to uncleanness" (Rom 1:24); (2) Because they worshipped and served the creation more than the Creator, God "gave them up unto vile affections" (Rom 1:26); (3) because they did not even want to know anything about God, God "gave them over to a reprobate mind" (Rom 1:28). Long ago, God said: "My spirit shall not always strive with man" (Gen 6:3)."

TSK: Rom 1:2 - -- Which : Luk 24:26, Luk 24:27; Act 10:43, Act 26:6; Tit 1:2 by : Rom 3:21 the holy : Rom 3:2

TSK: Rom 1:3 - -- his Son : Rom 1:9, Rom 8:2, Rom 8:3, Rom 8:29-32; Psa 2:7; Mat 3:17, Mat 26:63, Mat 27:43; Luk 1:35; Joh 1:34, Joh 1:49; Joh 3:16-18, Joh 3:35, Joh 3:...

TSK: Rom 1:4 - -- declared : Gr. determined the Son : Rom 1:3; Joh 2:18-21; Act 2:24, Act 2:32, Act 3:15, Act 4:10-12, Act 5:30-32, Act 13:33-35, Act 17:31; 2Co 13:4; E...

TSK: Rom 1:5 - -- we have : Rom 12:3, Rom 15:15, Rom 15:16; Joh 1:16; 1Co 15:10; 2Co 3:5, 2Co 3:6; Gal 1:15, Gal 1:16; Eph 3:2-9; 1Ti 1:11, 1Ti 1:12 apostleship : Act 1...

we have : Rom 12:3, Rom 15:15, Rom 15:16; Joh 1:16; 1Co 15:10; 2Co 3:5, 2Co 3:6; Gal 1:15, Gal 1:16; Eph 3:2-9; 1Ti 1:11, 1Ti 1:12

apostleship : Act 1:25; 1Co 9:2; Gal 2:8, Gal 2:9

for obedience to the faith : or, to the obedience of faith, Rom 15:18, Rom 15:19, Rom 16:26; Act 6:7; 2Co 10:4-6; Heb 5:9

among : Rom 3:29

for his name : Mal 1:11, Mal 1:14; Act 15:14; Eph 1:6, Eph 1:12; 1Pe 2:9, 1Pe 2:10

TSK: Rom 1:6 - -- are ye also : Eph 1:11; Col 1:6, Col 1:21 the called : Rom 8:28-30, Rom 9:24; 1Co 1:9; Gal 1:6; 1Th 2:12; 2Th 2:14; 2Ti 1:9; Heb 3:1; 1Pe 2:9, 1Pe 2:2...

TSK: Rom 1:7 - -- To all : Act 15:23; 1Co 1:2; 2Co 1:1; Phi 1:1; Col 1:2; Jam 1:1; 1Pe 1:1, 1Pe 1:2; Jud 1:1; Rev 2:1, Rev 2:8, Rev 2:12, Rev 2:18, Rev 2:29, Rev 3:1, R...

TSK: Rom 1:8 - -- I thank : Rom 6:17 through : Eph 3:21, Eph 5:20; Phi 1:11; Heb 13:15; 1Pe 2:5, 1Pe 4:11 that your : Rom 16:19; 1Th 1:8, 1Th 1:9 the whole : Mat 24:14;...

TSK: Rom 1:9 - -- God : Rom 9:1; Job 16:19; 2Co 1:23, 2Co 11:10,2Co 11:11, 2Co 11:31; Gal 1:20; Phi 1:8; 1Th 2:5-10; 1Ti 2:7 whom : Act 27:23; Phi 2:22; Col 1:28, Col 1...

TSK: Rom 1:10 - -- request : Rom 15:22-24, Rom 15:30-32; Phi 4:6; 1Th 2:18, 1Th 3:10,1Th 3:11; Phm 1:22; Heb 13:19 a prosperous : Act 19:21, 27:1-28:31 by the will : Act...

TSK: Rom 1:11 - -- I long : Rom 15:23, Rom 15:32; Gen 31:30; 2Sa 13:39, 2Sa 23:15; 2Co 9:14; Phi 1:8, Phi 2:26, Phi 4:1 that : Rom 15:29; Act 8:15-19, Act 19:6; 1Co 12:1...

TSK: Rom 1:12 - -- that I may : Rom 15:24, Rom 15:32; Act 11:23; 2Co 2:1-3, 2Co 7:4-7, 2Co 7:13; 1Th 2:17-20, 1Th 3:7-10; 2Ti 1:4; 2Jo 1:4; 3Jo 1:3, 3Jo 1:4 with you : o...

TSK: Rom 1:13 - -- None, Rom 11:25; 1Co 10:1, 1Co 12:1; 2Co 1:8; 1Th 4:13 that oftentimes : Rom 15:23-28; Act 19:21; 2Co 1:15, 2Co 1:16 but : Rom 15:22; Act 16:6, Act 16...

TSK: Rom 1:14 - -- debtor : Rom 8:12, Rom 13:8 *Gr: Act 9:15, Act 13:2-4, Act 22:21, Act 26:17, Act 26:18; 1Co 9:16-23; 2Ti 2:10 Greeks : Act 28:4; 1Co 14:11; Col 3:11 b...

TSK: Rom 1:15 - -- so : Rom 12:18; 1Ki 8:18; Mar 14:8; 2Co 8:12 I : Isa 6:8; Mat 9:38; Joh 4:34; Act 21:13; 1Co 9:17; 2Co 10:15, 2Co 10:16

TSK: Rom 1:16 - -- I am : Psa 40:9, Psa 40:10, Psa 71:15, Psa 71:16, Psa 119:46; Mar 8:38; Luk 9:26; 1Co 2:2; 2Ti 1:8, 2Ti 1:12, 2Ti 1:16; 1Pe 4:16 the gospel : Rom 15:1...

TSK: Rom 1:17 - -- For therein : Rom 3:21 from faith : Rom 3:3 The just : Hab 2:4; Joh 3:36; Gal 3:11; Phi 3:9; Heb 10:38, Heb 11:6, Heb 11:7

For therein : Rom 3:21

from faith : Rom 3:3

The just : Hab 2:4; Joh 3:36; Gal 3:11; Phi 3:9; Heb 10:38, Heb 11:6, Heb 11:7

TSK: Rom 1:18 - -- the wrath : Rom 4:15 ungodliness : Rom 5:6 unrighteousness : Rom 6:13 who hold : Rom 1:19, Rom 1:28, Rom 1:32, Rom 2:3, Rom 2:15-23; Luk 12:46, Luk 12...

TSK: Rom 1:19 - -- that which : Rom 1:20; Psa 19:1-6; Isa 40:26; Jer 10:10-13; Act 14:16, Act 17:23-30 in them : or, to them for God : Joh 1:9

that which : Rom 1:20; Psa 19:1-6; Isa 40:26; Jer 10:10-13; Act 14:16, Act 17:23-30

in them : or, to them

for God : Joh 1:9

TSK: Rom 1:20 - -- For the : Joh 1:18; Col 1:15; 1Ti 1:17, 1Ti 6:16; Heb 11:27 from the : Rom 1:19; Deu 4:19; Job 31:26-28; Psa 8:3, Psa 33:6-9, Psa 104:5, Psa 104:31, P...

TSK: Rom 1:21 - -- when : Rom 1:19, Rom 1:28; Joh 3:19 they glorified : Rom 15:9; Psa 50:23, Psa 86:9; Hos 2:8; Hab 1:15, Hab 1:16; Luk 17:15-18; 2Ti 3:2; Rev 14:7, Rev ...

TSK: Rom 1:22 - -- Rom 11:25; Pro 25:14, Pro 26:12; Isa 47:10; Jer 8:8, Jer 8:9, Jer 10:14; Mat 6:23; 1Co 1:19-21, 1Co 3:18, 1Co 3:19

TSK: Rom 1:23 - -- changed : Rom 1:25; Psa 106:20; Jer 2:11 an image : Deu 4:15-18, Deu 5:8; Psa 115:5-8, Psa 135:15-18; Isa 40:18, Isa 40:26, Isa 44:13; Eze 8:10; Act 1...

TSK: Rom 1:24 - -- God : Psa 81:11, Psa 81:12; Hos 4:17, Hos 4:18; Mat 15:14; Act 7:42, Act 14:16, Act 17:29, Act 17:30; Eph 4:18; 2Th 2:10-12 through the lusts : Rom 6:...

TSK: Rom 1:25 - -- changed : Rom 1:23 the truth : Rom 1:18; 1Th 1:9; 1Jo 5:20 into a lie : Isa 44:20; Jer 10:14, Jer 10:15, Jer 13:25, Jer 16:19; Amo 2:4; Joh 2:8; Hab 2...

TSK: Rom 1:26 - -- gave them : Rom 1:24 vile : Gen 19:5; Lev 18:22-28; Deu 23:17, Deu 23:18; Jdg 19:22; 1Co 6:9; Eph 4:19; Eph 5:12; 1Ti 1:10; Jud 1:7, Jud 1:10

TSK: Rom 1:27 - -- that recompense : Rom 1:23, Rom 1:24

that recompense : Rom 1:23, Rom 1:24

TSK: Rom 1:28 - -- as they did : Rom 1:18, Rom 1:21; Job 21:14, Job 21:15; Pro 1:7, Pro 1:22, Pro 1:29, Pro 5:12, Pro 5:13, Pro 17:16; Jer 4:22, Jer 9:6; Hos 4:6; Act 17...

as they did : Rom 1:18, Rom 1:21; Job 21:14, Job 21:15; Pro 1:7, Pro 1:22, Pro 1:29, Pro 5:12, Pro 5:13, Pro 17:16; Jer 4:22, Jer 9:6; Hos 4:6; Act 17:23, Act 17:32; Rom 8:7, Rom 8:8; 1Co 15:34; 2Co 4:4-6, 2Co 10:5; 2Th 1:8, 2Th 2:10-12; 2Pe 3:5

retain : or, acknowledge

a reprobate mind : or, a mind void of judgment, Jer 6:30; 2Co 13:5-7; 2Ti 3:8; Tit 1:16

not convenient : Eph 5:4; Phm 1:8

TSK: Rom 1:29 - -- filled : Rom 3:10 whisperers : Psa 41:7; Pro 16:28, Pro 26:20; 2Co 12:20

filled : Rom 3:10

whisperers : Psa 41:7; Pro 16:28, Pro 26:20; 2Co 12:20

TSK: Rom 1:30 - -- Backbiters : Pro 25:23 haters : Rom 8:7, Rom 8:8; Num 10:35; Deu 7:10; 2Ch 19:2; Psa 81:15; Pro 8:36; Joh 7:7; Joh 15:23, Joh 15:24; Tit 3:3 boasters ...

TSK: Rom 1:31 - -- Without understanding : Rom 1:20,Rom 1:21, Rom 3:11; Pro 18:2; Isa 27:11; Jer 4:22; Mat 15:16 covenantbreakers : 2Kings 18:14-37; Isa 33:8; 2Ti 3:3 wi...

Without understanding : Rom 1:20,Rom 1:21, Rom 3:11; Pro 18:2; Isa 27:11; Jer 4:22; Mat 15:16

covenantbreakers : 2Kings 18:14-37; Isa 33:8; 2Ti 3:3

without natural affection : or, unsociable

TSK: Rom 1:32 - -- knowing : Rom 1:18, Rom 1:21, Rom 2:1-5, Rom 2:21-23 worthy : Rom 6:21 have pleasure in them : or, consent with them, Psa 50:18; Hos 7:3; Mar 14:10,Ma...

knowing : Rom 1:18, Rom 1:21, Rom 2:1-5, Rom 2:21-23

worthy : Rom 6:21

have pleasure in them : or, consent with them, Psa 50:18; Hos 7:3; Mar 14:10,Mar 14:11

collapse all
Commentary -- Word/Phrase Notes (per Verse)

Barnes: Rom 1:2 - -- Which he had promised afore - Which gospel, or which doctrines, he had before announced. By the prophets - The word "prophets"here is use...

Which he had promised afore - Which gospel, or which doctrines, he had before announced.

By the prophets - The word "prophets"here is used to include those who wrote as well as those who spake. It included the teachers of the ancient Jews generally.

In the holy scriptures - In the writings of the Old Testament. They were called holy because they were inspired by the Holy Spirit, and were regarded as separated from all other writings, and worthy of all reverence. The apostle here declares that he was not about to advance anything new. His doctrines were in accordance with the acknowledged oracles of God. Though they might appear to be new, yet he regarded the gospel as entirely consistent with all that had been declared in the Jewish dispensation; and not only consistent, but as actually promised there. He affirms, therefore:

(1) That all this was promised, and no small part of the Epistle is employed to show this.

\caps1 (2) t\caps0 hat it was confirmed by the authority of holy and inspired men.

\caps1 (3) t\caps0 hat it depended on no vague and loose tradition, but was recorded, so that people might examine for themselves.

The reason why the apostle was so anxious to show that his doctrine coincided with the Old Testament was because the church at Rome was made up in part of Jews. He wished to show them, and the remainder of his countrymen, that the Christian religion was built on the foundation of their prophets, and their acknowledged writings. So doing, he would disarm their prejudice, and furnish a proof of the truth of religion. It was a constant position with the apostle that he advanced nothing but what was maintained by the best and holiest men of the nation. Act 26:22-23, "saying none other things than those which the prophets and Moses did say should come,"etc. There was a further reason here for his appealing so much to the Old Testament. He had never been at Rome. He was therefore personally a stranger, and it was proper for him then especially to show his regard for the doctrines of the prophets. Hence, he appeals here so often to the Old Testament; and defends every point by the authority of the Bible. The particular passages of the Old Testament on which he relied will come before us in the course of the Epistle. See particularly Rom. 3;4; 9; 10; 11. We may see here,

(1)    The reverence which Paul showed for the Old Testament. He never undervalued it. He never regarded it as obsolete, or useless. He manifestly studied it; and never fell into the impious opinion that the Old Testament is of little value.

(2)\caps1     i\caps0 f these things were promised - predicted in the Old Testament, then Christianity is true. Every passage which he adduces is therefore proof that it is from God.

Barnes: Rom 1:3 - -- Concerning his Son - This is connected with the first verse, with the word "gospel."The gospel of God concerning his Son. The design of the gos...

Concerning his Son - This is connected with the first verse, with the word "gospel."The gospel of God concerning his Son. The design of the gospel was to make a communication relative to his Son Jesus Christ. This is the whole of it. There is no "good news"to man respecting salvation except what comes by Jesus Christ.

Which was made - The word translated "was made"means usually "to be,"or "to become."It is used, however, in the sense of being born. Thus, Gal 4:4, "God sent forth his Son made of a woman,"born of a woman. Joh 8:58, "before Abraham was (born), I am."In this sense it seems to be used here, who was born, or descended from the seed of David.

Of the seed of David - Of the posterity or lineage of David. He was a descendant of David. David was perhaps the most illustrious of the kings of Israel. The promise to him was that there should not fail a man to sit on this throne; 1Ki 2:4; 1Ki 8:25; 1Ki 9:5; 2Ch 6:16. This ancient promise was understood as referring to the Messiah, and hence, in the New Testament he is called the descendant of David, and so much pains is taken to show that he was of his line; Luk 1:27; Mat 9:27; Mat 15:22; Mat 12:23; Mat 21:9, Mat 21:15; Mat 22:42, Mat 22:45; Joh 7:42; 2Ti 2:8. As the Jews universally believed that the Messiah would be descended from David Joh 7:42, it was of great importance for the sacred writers to make it out clearly that Jesus of Nazareth was of that line and family. Hence, it happened, that though our Saviour was humble, and poor, and obscure, yet he had that on which no small part of the world have been accustomed so much to pride themselves, an illustrious ancestry. To a Jew there could be scarcely any honor so high as to be descended from the best of their kings; and it shows how little the Lord Jesus esteemed the honors of this world, that he could always evince his deep humility in circumstances where people are usually proud; and that when he spoke of the honors of this world, and told how little they were worth, he was not denouncing what was not within his reach.

According to the flesh - The word "flesh," σάρξ sarx , is used in the Scriptures in a great variety of significations.

\caps1 (1) i\caps0 t denotes, as with us, the flesh literally of any living being; Luk 24:39, "A spirit hath not flesh and bones,"etc.

\caps1 (2) t\caps0 he animal system, the body, including flesh and bones, the visible part of man, in distinction from the invisible, or the soul; Act 2:31, "Neither did his flesh (his body) "see corruption."1Co 5:5; 1Co 15:39.

\caps1 (3) t\caps0 he man, the whole animated system, body and soul; Rom 8:3, "In the likeness of sinful flesh. 1Co 15:50; Mat 16:17; Luk 3:6.

\caps1 (4) h\caps0 uman nature. As a man. Thus, Act 2:30, "God hath sworn with an oath that of the fruit of his loins according to the flesh, that is, in his human nature, he would raise up Christ to sit on his throne."Rom 9:5, "whose are the fathers, and of whom, as concerning the flesh, Christ came, who is over all, God blessed forever."The same is its meaning here. He was a descendant of David in his human nature, or as a man. This implies, of course, that he had another nature besides his human, or that while he was a man he was also something else; that there was a nature in which he was not descended from David.

That this is its meaning will still further appear by the following observations.

\caps1 (1) t\caps0 he apostle expressly makes a contrast between his condition according to the flesh, and that according to the spirit of holiness.

\caps1 (2) t\caps0 he expression "according to the flesh"is applied to no other one in the New Testament but to Jesus Christ. Though the word "flesh"often occurs, and is often used to denote man, yet the special expression, "according to the flesh"occurs in no other connection.

In all the Scriptures it is never said of any prophet or apostle, any lawgiver or king, or any man in any capacity, that he came in the flesh, or that he was descended from certain ancestors according to the flesh. Nor is such an expression ever used any where else. If it were applied to a mere man, we should instantly ask in what other way could he come than in the flesh? Has he a higher nature? Is he an angel, or a seraph? The expression would be unmeaningful. And when, therefore, it is applied to Jesus Christ, it implies, if language has any meaning, that there was a sense in which Jesus was not descended from David. What that was, appears in the next verse.

Barnes: Rom 1:4 - -- And declared - In the margin, "determined." Τοῦ ὁρισθέντος Tou horisthentos . The ancient Syriac has, "And he was known ...

And declared - In the margin, "determined." Τοῦ ὁρισθέντος Tou horisthentos . The ancient Syriac has, "And he was known to be the Son of God by might and by the Holy Spirit, who rose from the house of the dead."The Latin Vulgate, "Who was "predestinated"the Son of God,"etc. The Arabic, "The Son of God destined by power special to the Holy Spirit,"etc. The word translated "declared to be"means properly "to bound, to fix limits to,"as to a field, to determine its proper limits or boundaries, to "define,"etc. Act 17:26, "and hath determined the bounds of their habitation."Hence, it means to determine, constitute; ordain, decree; i, e. to fix or designate the proper boundaries of a truth, or a doctrine; to distinguish its lines and marks from error; or to show, or declare a thing to be so by any action. Luk 22:22, "the Son of man goeth as it was determined, as it was fixed; purposed, defined, in the purpose of God, and declared in the prophets. Act 2:23, "him being delivered by the determinate counsel, the definite. constituted will, or design, of God. Act 11:29; Heb 4:7, "he limiteth a certain day,"fixes it, defines it. In this sense it is clearly used in this place. The act of raising him from the dead designated him, or constituted him the Son of God. It was such an act as in the circumstances of the case showed that he was the Son of God in regard to a nature which was not "according to the flesh."The ordinary resurrection of a man, like that of Lazarus, would not show that he was the Son of God; but in the circumstances of Jesus Christ it did; for he had claimed to be so; he had taught it; and God now attested the truth of his teaching by raising him from the dead.

The Son of God - The word "son"is used in a great variety of senses, denoting literally a son, then a descendant, posterity near or remote, a disciple or ward, an adopted son, or one that imitates or resembles another; see the note at Mat 1:1. The expression "sons of God,"or "son of God,"is used in an almost equal latitude of signification. It is:

(1) Applied to Adam, as being immediately created by God without an earthly father; Luk 3:38.

\caps1 (2) i\caps0 t is applied to saints or Christians, as being adopted into his family, and sustaining to him the relation of children; Joh 1:12-13; 1Jo 3:1-2, etc. This name is given to them because they resemble him in their moral character; Mat 5:45.

\caps1 (3) i\caps0 t is given to strong men as resembling God in strength; Gen 6:2, "The sons of God saw the daughters of men,"etc. Here these men of violence and strength are called sons of God, just as the high hills are called hills of God, the lofty trees of Lebanon are called cedars of God, etc.

\caps1 (4) k\caps0 ings are sometimes called his sons, as resembling him in dominion and power, Psa 82:6.

\caps1 (5) t\caps0 he name is given to angels because they resemble God; because he is their Creator and Father, etc., Job 1:6; Job 2:1; Dan 3:25.

But the name the "Son of God"is in the New Testament given by way of eminence to the Lord Jesus Christ. This was the common and favorite name by which the apostles designated him. The expression "Son of God"is applied to him no less than 27 times in the Gospels and the Acts of the Apostles, and 15 times in the Epistles and the Revelation The expression my Son, and his Son, thy Son, etc. is applied to him in his special relation to God, times almost without number. The other most common appellation which is given to him is "Son of man."By this name he commonly designated himself. There can be no doubt that that was assumed to denote that he was a man, that he sustained a special relation to man, and that he chose to speak of himself as a man. The first, the most obvious, impression on the use of the name "Son of man"is that he was truly a man, and was used doubtless to guard against the impression that one who manifested so many other qualities, and did so many things like a celestial being, was not truly human being.

The phrase "Son of God"stands in contrast with the title "Son of man,"and as the natural and obvious import of that is that he was a man, so the natural and obvious import of the title "Son of God"is that he was divine; or that he sustained relations to God designated by the name Son of God, corresponding to the relations which he sustained to man designated by the name Son of Man. The natural idea of the phrase, "Son of God,"therefore is, that he sustained a relation to God in his nature which implied more than was human or angelic; which implied equality with God. Accordingly, this idea was naturally suggested to the Jews by his calling God his Father; Joh 5:18, "But said also that God was his Father, "making himself equal with God."This idea Jesus immediately proceeded to confirm; see the note at Joh 5:19-30. The same idea is also suggested in Joh 10:29-31, Joh 10:33, Joh 10:36, "Say ye of him whom the Father hath sanctified, and sent into the world, Thou blasphemest: "because I said I am the Son of God?"There is in these places the fullest proof that the title suggested naturally the idea of equality with God; or the idea of his sustaining a relation to God corresponding to the relation of equality to man suggested by the title Son of man.

This view is still further sustained in the first chapter of the Epistle to the Hebrews, Rom 1:1-2, "God hath spoken unto us by His Son."He is the brightness of his glory, and the express image of his person, Rom 1:3. He is higher than the angels, and they are required to worship him, Rom 1:4-6. He is called "God,"and his throne is forever and ever, Rom 1:8. He is "the Creator of the heavens and the earth,"and is immutably the same, Rom 1:10-12. Thus, the rank or title of the "Son of God"suggests the ideas and attributes of the Divinity. This idea is sustained throughout the New Testament. See Joh 14:9, "He that hath seen me hath seen the Father;"Rom 1:23, "That all men shall honor the Son even as they honor the Father;"Col 1:19, "It hath pleased the Father that in him should all fulness dwell;"Col 2:9, "For in him dwelleth all the fulness of the Godhead bodily:"Phi 2:2-11; Rev 5:13-14; Rev 2:23. It is not affirmed that this title was given to the second person of the Trinity before he became incarnate; or to suggest the idea of any derivation or extraction before he was made flesh. There is no instance in which the appellation is not conferred to express his relation after he assumed human flesh. Of any derivation from God, or emanation from him in eternity, the Scriptures are silent. The title is conferred on him, it is supposed, with reference to his condition in this world, as the Messiah. And it is conferred, it is believed, for the following reasons, or to denote the following things, namely.

\caps1 (1) t\caps0 o designate his unique relation to God, as equal with him, Joh 1:14, Joh 1:18; Mat 11:27; Luk 10:22; Luk 3:22; 2Pe 1:17, or as sustaining a most intimate and close connection with him, such as neither man nor angels could do, an acquaintance with his nature Mat 11:27, plans, and counsels, such as no being but one who was equal with God could possess. In this sense, I regard it as conferred on him in the passage under consideration.

\caps1 (2) i\caps0 t designates him as the anointed king, or the Messiah. In this sense it accords with the use of the word in Psa 82:6. See Mat 16:16, "Thou art "the Christ, the Son of the living God."Mat 26:63, "I adjure thee by the living God, that thou tell us whether "thou be the Christ, the Son of God."Mar 14:61; Luk 22:70; Joh 1:34; Act 9:20, "he preached Christ in the synagogues, that he is the Son of God."

\caps1 (3) i\caps0 t was conferred on him to denote his miraculous conception in the womb of the Virgin Mary. Luk 1:35, "the Holy Ghost shall come upon thee, therefore διό dio also that holy thing which shall be born of thee shall be called the "Son of God."

(It is readily admitted, that on the subject of the "eternal Sonship"very much has been said of an unintelligible kind. Terms applicable only to the relation as it exists among people have been freely applied to this mystery. But whatever may be thought of such language as "the eternal generation,""the eternal procession,"and "the subordination"of the Son; the doctrine itself, which this mode of speaking was invented to illustrate, and has perhaps served to obscure, is in no way affected. The question is not, Have the friends of the doctrine at all times employed judicious illustration? but, What is the "Scripture evidence"on the point? If the eternal Sonship is to be discarded on such grounds, we fear the doctrine of the Trinity must share a similar fate. Yet, those who maintain the divinity of Christ, and notwithstanding deny the eternal Sonship, seem generally to found their objections on these incomprehensible illustrations, and from thence leap to the conclusion that the doctrine itself is false.

That the title Son of God, when applied to Jesus, denotes a natural and not merely an official Sonship, a real and not a figurative relation; in other words, that it takes origin from the divine nature, is the view which the Catholic Church has all along maintained on this subject: no explanation which falls short of divinity will exhaust the meaning of the title. Christ is indeed called the Son of God on account of his miraculous conception; "That holy thing,"said the angel to the Virgin, "which shall be born of thee, shall be called the Son of the Highest."But the creation of Adam, by the immediate power of God, without father or mother, would constitute him the Son of God, in a sense equally or even more exalted than that in which the title is applied to Jesus, if the miraculous conception were allowed to exhaust its meaning. Nor will an appeal to the resurrection of Christ serve the purpose of those who deny the divine origin of the title, since that is assigned as the evidence only, and not the ground of it.

The Redeemer was not constituted, but declared or evidenced to be, "the Son of God with power by the resurrection from the dead."In the search for a solution short of divine Sonship, recourse is next had to the office of Christ as Mediator. Yet though the appellation in question be frequently given in connection with the official character of Jesus, a careful examination of some of these passages will lead to the conclusion, that "though the Son of God hold the office, yet the office does not furnish the reason or ground of the title."The name is given to distinguish Jesus from all others who have held office, and "in such a way as to convince us that the office is rendered "honorable"by the exalted personage discharging its duties, and not that the person merits the designation in virtue of the office.""When the fulness of the time was come, God sent forth his Son, made of a woman,"etc. "God so loved the world that he gave his "only begotten Son,"etc. Now the glory of the mission in the first of these passages, and the greatness of the gift in the second, is founded on the original dignity of the person sent and given. But if the person derive his title from the office only, there would seem to be comparatively little grandeur in the mission, and small favor in the gift. The passages quoted would more readily prove that God had bestowed favor on Jesus, by giving him an office from which he derived so much "personal dignity!"

The following are some of the passages in which the appellation "Son of God"is found connected with the office of Christ. "These are written that ye might believe that Jesus is the Christ, (an official term signifying "anointed Saviour"), the Son of God;""He answered and said, I believe that Jesus Christ (the official designation) is the Son of God;""Whom say ye that I am? And Simon Peter answered and said, Thou art the Christ, the Son of the living God"Now it is reasonable to suppose, that these declarations and confessions concerning the person of Christ, contain not only an acknowledgment of his official character, but also of his personal dignity. "Thou art Jesus the Christ,"is the acknowledgment of his office, and "thou art the Son of God,"is an acknowledgment of his natural dignity. The confession of the Ethiopian eunuch, and of Peter, would be incomplete on any other supposition. It should be borne in mind also, that the question of Christ to Peter was not, What office do ye suppose I hold? but, "Whom say ye that I am?"See Haldane on Rom 1:4.

If, then, the miraculous conception, the resurrection, and the office of Christ, do not all of them together exhaust the meaning of the appellation, we must seek for its origin higher still - we must ascend to the divine nature. We may indeed take one step more upward before we reach the divine nature, and suppose, with Professor Stuart and others, that the name denotes "the complex person of the Saviour,"as God and man, or in one word, "Mediator."Comment on Heb. Exe. 2. But this is just the old resolution of it into official character, and is therefore liable to all the objections stated above. For while it is admitted by those who hold this view, that Christ is divine, it is distinctly implied, that the title Son of God would not have been his but for his office.

In the end therefore we must resolve the name into the divine nature. That it implies equality with God is clearly proved in this commentary. So the Jews understood it, and the Saviour tacitly admitted that their construction was right. And as there is no equality with God without divinity, the title clearly points to such a distinction in the Godhead as is implied in the relative terms, Father and Son. Indeed it is not easy to understand how the doctrine of the Trinity can be maintained apart from that of the eternal Sonship. If there be in the Godhead a distinction of persons, does not that distinction belong to the nature of the Godhead, independent of any official relations. Or will it be maintained, that the distinction of Father, Son, and Holy Spirit, arises entirely from the scheme of redemption, and did not exist from eternity? We may find fault with Dr Owen, and others, who speak of a "hypostatical subordination of persons in the Godhead."Prof. Stuart, Com. Heb. Exe. 1. Yet, the distinction itself, through we cannot explain it, "must"be allowed to exist.

The remaining evidence of the eternal Sonship may be thus stated.

1. Christ is called God’ s "own Son,"his "beloved,"and "well beloved,"and "only begotten Son.’ So strong and special adjuncts seem intended to prevent any such idea as that of figurative Sonship. If these do not express the natural relationship, it is beyond the power of language to do it. Moreover, correct criticism binds us to adopt the natural and ordinary signification of words, unless in such cases as plainly refuse it,

2. In a passage already quoted, God is said "to have sent forth His Son to redeem us,"etc. And there are many passages to the same effect, in which is revealed, not only the pre-existence of Christ, but the capacity in which he originally moved, and the rank which he held in heaven. "God sent forth his Son,"implies that he held that title prior to his mission. This at least is the most obvious sense of the passage, and the sense which an ordinary reader would doubtless affix to it. The following objection, however, has been supposed fatal to this argument: "The name Son of God is indeed used, when speaking of him previous to his having assumed human nature, but so are the names of Jesus and the Christ, which yet we know properly to belong to him, only as united to humanity."It is readily allowed that the simple fact of the name being given prior to the incarnation proves nothing of itself. But the case is altered when this fact is viewed in connection with the difficulty or impossibility of resolving the Sonship into an official relation. No such difficulty exists in regard to the terms "Jesus"and "Christ,"for they are plainly official names, signifying "anointed Saviour."

3. Rom 1:3-4. If in this passage we understand the apostle to declare, that Christ was of the seed of David, according to his human nature, the rule of antithesis demands, that we understand him next to assert what he was according to his divine nature, namely, the Son of God.

The views given in this Note are those adopted by the most eminent orthodox divines. The language of the Westminster divines is well known; "The only Redeemer of the covenant of grace is the Lord Jesus Christ, who being the eternal Son of God, of one substance etc.""Larger Catechism."Mr. Scott "is decidedly of opinion, that Christ is called the only Son of God in respect of his divine nature."Commentary, Heb 1:3-4."The late Principal Hill, in his Theological System, having exposed what he deemed erroneous views on this subject, adds, "there is a more ancient and a more exalted title to this name (Son of God), which is inseparable from the nature"of Christ. "3rd edition, vol. i., page 363.)"

With power - ἐν δυνάμει en dunamei . By some this expression has been supposed to mean in power or authority, after his resurrection from the dead. It is said, that he was before a man of sorrows; now he was clothed with power and authority. But I have seen no instance in which the expression in power denotes office, or authority. It denotes physical energy and might, and this was bestowed on Jesus before his resurrection as well as after; Act 10:38, "God anointed Jesus of Nazareth with the Holy Spirit, and with power; Rom 15:19; 1Co 15:43. With such power Jesus will come to judgment: Mat 24:30. If there is any passage in which the word "power"means authority, office, etc., it is Mat 28:18, "All power in heaven and earth is given unto me."But this is not a power which was given unto him after his resurrection, or which he did not possess before. The same authority to commission his disciples he had exercised before this on the same ground, Mat 10:7-8. I am inclined to believe, therefore, that the expression means "powerfully, efficiently;"he was with great power, or conclusiveness, shown to be the Son of God by his resurrection from the dead. Thus, the phrase "in power"is used to qualify a verb in Col 1:29, "Which worketh in me mightily,""Greek,"in power, that is, operating in me effectually, or powerfully. The ancient versions seem to have understood it in the same way. "Syriac,""He was known to be the Son of God by power, and by the Holy Spirit.""AEthiopic,""Whom he declared to be the Son of God by his own power, and by his Holy Spirit,"etc. "Arabic,""Designated the Son of God by power appropriate to the Holy Spirit."

According to the spirit of holiness - κατά πνεῦμα ἁγιωσύνης kata pneuma hagiōsunēs . This expression has been variously understood. We may arrive at its meaning by the following considerations.

\caps1 (1) i\caps0 t is not the third person in the Trinity that is referred to here. The designation of that person is always in a different form. It is "the Holy Spirit,"the Holy Ghost, πνεῦμα ἅγιον pneuma hagion , or τὸ πνεῦμα τὸ ἅγιον to pneuma to hagion ; never "the spirit of holiness."

\caps1 (2) i\caps0 t stands in contrast with the flesh; Rom 1:3, "According to the flesh, the seed of David: according to the spirit of holiness, the Son of God."As the former refers doubtless to his human nature, so this must refer to the nature designated by the title Son of God, that is, to his superior or divine nature.

\caps1 (3) t\caps0 he expression is altogether unique to the Lord Jesus Christ. No where in the Scriptures, or in any other writings, is there an affirmation like this. What would be meant by it if affirmed of a mere man?

\caps1 (4) i\caps0 t cannot mean that the Holy Spirit, the third person in the Trinity, showed that Jesus was the Son of God by raising him from the dead because that act is no where attributed to him. It is uniformly ascribed either to God, as God Act 2:24, Act 2:32; Act 3:15, Act 3:26; Act 4:10; Act 5:30; Act 10:40; Act 13:30, Act 13:33-34; Act 17:31; Rom 10:9; Eph 1:20, or to the Father Rom 6:4, or to Jesus himself Joh 10:18. In no instance is this act ascribed to the Holy Spirit.

\caps1 (5) i\caps0 t indicates a state far more elevate than any human dignity, or honor In regard to his earthly descent, he was of a royal race; in regard to the Spirit of holiness, much more than that, he was the Son of God.

\caps1 (6) t\caps0 he word "Spirit"is used often to designate God, the holy God, as distinguished from all the material forms of idol worship, Joh 4:24.

\caps1 (7) t\caps0 he word "Spirit"is applied to the Messiah, in his more elevated or divine nature. 1Co 15:45, "the last Adam was made a quickening Spirit."2Co 3:17, "now the Lord (Jesus) is that Spirit."Heb 9:14, Christ is said to have offered himself through the eternal Spirit. 1Pe 3:18, he is said to have been "put to death in the flesh, but quickened by the Spirit."1Ti 3:16, he is said to have been "justified in the Spirit."In most of these passages there is the same contrast noticed between his flesh, his human nature, and his other state, which occurs in Rom 1:3-4. In all these instances, the design is, doubtless, to speak of him as a man, and as something more than a man: he was one thing as a man; he was another thing in his other nature. In the one, he was of David; was put to death, etc. In the other, he was of God, he was manifested to be such, he was restored to the elevation which he had sustained before his incarnation and death, Joh 17:1-5; Phi 2:2-11. The expression, "according to the Spirit of holiness,"does not indeed of itself imply divinity. It denotes that holy and more exalted nature which he possessed as distinguished from the human. What that is, is to be learned from other declarations. "This expression implies simply that it was such as to make proper the appellation, the Son of God."Other places, as we have seen, show that that designation naturally implied divinity. And that this was the true idea couched under the expression, according to the Spirit of holiness, appears from those numerous texts of scripture which explicitly assert his divinity; see Joh 1:1, etc., and the note on that place.

By the resurrection from the dead - This has been also variously understood. Some have maintained that the word "by," ἐξ ex , denotes after. He was declared to be the Son of God in power after he rose from the dead; that is, he was solemnly invested with the dignity that became the Son of God after he had been so long in a state of voluntary humiliation. But to this view there are some insuperable objections.

\caps1 (1) i\caps0 t is not the natural and usual meaning of the word "by."

\caps1 (2) i\caps0 t is not the object of the apostle to state the time when the thing was done, or the order, but evidently to declare the fact, and the evidence of the fact. If such had been his design, he would have said that previous to his death he was shown to be of the seed of David, but afterward that he was invested with power.

\caps1 (3) t\caps0 hough it must be admitted that the preposition "by, ἐξ ex ,"sometimes means after (Mat 19:20; Luk 8:27; xxiii. 8, etc.), yet its proper and usual meaning is to denote the efficient cause, or the agent, or origin of a thing, Mat 1:3, Mat 1:18; Mat 21:25; Joh 3:5; Rom 5:16; Rom 11:36, "OF him are all things."1Co 8:6, "one God, the Father, of whom are all things,"etc. In this sense, I suppose it is used here; and that the apostle means to affirm that he was clearly or decisively shown to be the Son of God by his resurrection from the dead.

But here will it be asked, how did his resurrection show this? Was not Lazarus raised from the dead? And did not many saints rise also after Jesus? And were not the dead raised by the apostles; by Elijah, by the bones of Elisha, and by Christ himself? And did their being raised prove that they were the sons of God? I answer that the mere fact of the resurrection of the body proves nothing in itself about the character and rank of the being that is raised. But in the circumstances in which Jesus was placed it might show it conclusively. When Lazarus was raised, it was not in attestation of anything which he had taught or done. It was a mere display of the power and benevolence of Christ. But in regard to the resurrection of Jesus, let the following circumstances be taken into the account.

\caps1 (1) h\caps0 e came as the Messiah.

\caps1 (2) h\caps0 e uniformly taught that he was the Son of God.

\caps1 (3) h\caps0 e maintained that God was his Father in such a sense as to imply equality with him, Joh 5:17-30; Joh 10:36.

\caps1 (4) h\caps0 e claimed authority to abolish the laws of the Jews, to change their customs, and to be himself absolved from the observance of those laws, even as his Father was, John 5:1-17; Mar 2:28.

\caps1 (5) w\caps0 hen God raised him up therefore, it was not an ordinary event. It was "a public attestation, in the face of the universe, of the truth of his claims to be the Son of God."God would not sanction the doings and doctrines of an impostor. And when, therefore he raised up Jesus, he, by this act, showed the truth of his claims, that he was the Son of God.

Further, in the view of the apostles, the resurrection was intimately connected with the ascension and exaltation of Jesus. The one made the other certain. And it is not improbable that when they spoke of his resurrection, they meant to include, not merely that single act, but the entire series of doings of which that was the first, and which was the pledge of the elevation and majesty of the Son of God. Hence, when they had proved his resurrection, they assumed that all the others would follow. That involved and supposed all. And the series, of which that was the first, proved that he was the Son of God; see Act 17:31, "He will judge the world in righteousness, by that man whom he hath ordained, whereof he hath given assurance to all people, "in that he hath raised him from the dead."The one involves the other; see Act 1:6. Thus, Peter Act 2:22-32 having proved that Jesus was raised up, adds, Act 2:33, "therefore, being by the right hand exalted, he hath shed forth this,"etc.; and Act 2:36, "therefore, let all the house of Israel know assuredly that God hath made that same Jesus whom ye have crucified, both Lord and Christ."

This verse is a remarkable instance of the "apostle"Paul’ s manner of writing. Having mentioned a subject, his mind seems to catch fire; he presents it in new forms, and amplifies it, until he seems to forget for a time the subject on which he was writing. It is from this cause that his writings abound so with parentheses, and that there is so much difficulty in following and understanding him.

Barnes: Rom 1:5 - -- By whom - The apostle here returns to the subject of the salutation of the Romans, and states to them his authority to address them. That autho...

By whom - The apostle here returns to the subject of the salutation of the Romans, and states to them his authority to address them. That authority he had derived from the Lord Jesus, and not from man. On this fact, that he had received his apostolic commission, not from man, but by the direct authority of Jesus Christ, Paul not infrequently insisted. Gal 1:12, "for I neither received it of man, neither was I taught it, but by revelation of Jesus Christ;"1Co 15:1-8; Eph 3:1-3.

We - The plural here is probably put for the singular; see Col 4:3; compare Eph 6:19-20. It was usual for those who were clothed with authority to express themselves in this manner. Perhaps here, however, he refers to the general nature of the apostolic office, as being derived from Jesus Christ, and designs to assure the Romans that "he"had received the apostolic commission as the others had. ‘ We,"the apostles, have received the appointment from Jesus Christ. ‘

Grace and apostleship - Many suppose that this is a figure of speech, "hendiadys,"by which one thing is expressed by two words, meaning the grace or favor of the apostolic office. Such a figure of speech is often used. But it may mean, as it does probably here, the two things, grace, or the favor of God to his own soul, as a personal matter; and the apostolic office as a distinct thing. He often, however, speaks of the office of the apostleship as a matter of special favor, Rom 15:15-16; Gal 2:9; Eph 3:7-9.

For obedience to the faith - In order to produce, or promote obedience to the faith; that is, to induce them to render that obedience to God which faith produces. There are two things therefore implied.

\caps1 (1) t\caps0 hat the design of the gospel and of the apostleship is to induce men to obey God.

\caps1 (2) t\caps0 hat the tendency of faith is to produce obedience. There is no true faith which does not produce that. This is constantly affirmed in the New Testament, Rom 15:18; Rom 16:19; 2Co 7:15; James 2.

Among all nations - This was the original commission which Jesus gave to his apostles, Mar 16:15-16; Mat 28:18-19. This was the special commission which Paul received when he was converted, Act 9:15. It was important to show that the commission extended thus far, as he was now addressing a distant church which he had not seen.

For his name - This means probably "on his account,"that is, on account of Christ, Joh 14:13-14; Joh 16:23-24. The design of the apostleship was to produce obedience to the gospel among all nations, that thus the name of Jesus might be honored. Their work was not one in which they were seeking to honor themselves, but it was solely for the honor and glory of Jesus Christ. For him they toiled, they encountered perils, they laid down their lives, because by so doing they might bring people to obey the gospel, and thus Jesus Christ might wear a brighter crown and be attended by a longer and more splendid train of worshippers in the kingdom of his glory.

Barnes: Rom 1:6 - -- Among whom - That is, among the Gentiles who had become obedient to the Christian faith in accordance with the design of the gospel, Rom 1:8. T...

Among whom - That is, among the Gentiles who had become obedient to the Christian faith in accordance with the design of the gospel, Rom 1:8. This proves that the church at Rome was made up partly at least, if not mainly, of Gentiles or pagans. This is fully proved in the xvith. chapter by the names of the persons whom Paul salutes.

The called of Jesus Christ - Those whom Jesus Christ has called to be his followers. The word "called"(see Rom 1:1) denotes not merely an external invitation to privilege, but it also denotes the "internal"or "effectual"call which secures conformity to the will of him who calls, and is thus synonymous with the name Christians, or believers. That true Christians are contemplated by this address, is clear from the whole scope of the Epistle; see particularly Rom. 8; compare Phi 3:14; Heb 3:1.

Barnes: Rom 1:7 - -- To all that be in Rome - That is, to all who bear the Christian name. Perhaps he here included not only the church at Rome, but all who might h...

To all that be in Rome - That is, to all who bear the Christian name. Perhaps he here included not only the church at Rome, but all who might have been there from abroad. Rome was a place of vast concourse for foreigners; and Paul probably addressed all who happened to be there.

Beloved of God - Whom God loves. This is the privilege of all Christians. And this proves that the persons whom Paul addressed were "not"those merely who had been invited to the external privileges of the gospel. The importance of this observation will appear in the progress of these notes.

Called to be saints - So called, or influenced by God who had called them, as to become saints. The word "saints," ἅγιοι hagioi , means those who are holy, or those who are devoted or consecrated to God. The radical idea of the word is what is separated from a common to a sacred use, and answers to the Hebrew word, קדושׁ qadowsh . It is applied to any thing that is set apart to the service of God, to the temple, to the sacrifices, to the utensils about the temple, to the garments, etc. of the priests, and to the priests themselves. It was applied to the Jews as a people separated from other nations, and devoted or consecrated to God, while other nations were devoted to the service of idols. It is also applied to Christians, as being a people devoted or set apart to the service of God. The radical idea then, as applied to Christians, is, that "they are separated from other men, and other objects and pursuits, and consecrated to the service of God."This is the special characteristic of the saints. And this characteristic the Roman Christians had shown. For the use of the word, as stated above, see the following passages of scripture; Luk 2:23; Exo 13:2, Rom 11:16; Mat 7:6; 1Pe 1:16; Act 9:13; 1Pe 2:5; Act 3:21, Eph 3:5; 1Pe 2:9; Phi 2:15; 1Jo 3:1-2.

Grace - This word properly means "favor."It is very often used in the New Testament, and is employed in the sense of benignity or benevolence; felicity, or a prosperous state of affairs; the Christian religion, as the highest expression of the benevolence or favor of God; the happiness which Christianity confers on its friends in this and the future life; the apostolic office; charity, or alms; thanksgiving; joy, or pleasure; and the benefits produced on the Christian’ s heart and life by religion - the grace of meekness, patience, charity, etc., "Schleusner."In this place, and in similar places in the beginning of the apostolic epistles, it seems to be a word including all those blessings that are applicable to Christians in common; denoting an ardent wish that all the mercies and favors of God for time and eternity, blended under the general name grace, may be conferred on them. It is to be understood as connected with a word implying invocation. I pray, or I desire, that grace, etc. may be conferred on you. It is the customary form of salutation in nearly all the apostolic epistles; 1Co 1:3; 2Co 1:2; Gal 1:3; Eph 1:2; Phi 1:2; Col 1:2; 1Th 1:1; 2Th 1:2; Phm 1:3.

And peace - Peace is the state of freedom from war. As war conveys the idea of discord and numberless calamities and dangers, so peace is the opposite, and conveys the idea of concord, safety, and prosperity. Thus, to wish one peace was the same as to wish him all safety and prosperity. This form of salutation was common among the Hebrews. Gen 43:23, "peace to you! fear not;"Jdg 6:23; Jdg 19:20; Luk 24:36. But the word "peace"is also used in contrast with that state of agitation and conflict which a sinner has with his conscience. and with God. The sinner is like the troubled sea, which cannot rest, Isa 57:20. The Christian is at peace with God through the Lord Jesus Christ, Rom 5:1. By this word, denoting reconciliation with God, the blessings of the Christian religion are often described in the scriptures, Rom 8:6; Rom 14:17; Rom 15:13; Gal 5:22; Phi 4:7. A prayer for peace, therefore, in the epistles, is not a mere formal salutation, but has a special reference to those "spiritual"blessings which result from reconciliation with God through the Lord Jesus Christ.

From God our Father - The Father of all Christians. He is the Father of all his creatures, as they are his offspring, Act 17:28-29. He is especially the Father of all Christians, as they have been "begotten by him to a lively hope,"have been adopted into his family, and are like him; Mat 5:45; 1Pe 1:3; 1Jo 5:1; 1Jo 3:1-2. The expression here is equivalent to a prayer that God the Father would bestow grace and peace on the Romans. It implies that these blessings proceed from God, and are to be expected from him.

And the Lord Jesus Christ - From him. The Lord Jesus Christ is especially regarded in the New Testament as the Source of peace, and the Procurer of it; see Luk 2:14; Luk 19:38, Luk 19:42; Joh 14:27; Joh 16:33; Act 10:36; Rom 5:1; Eph 2:17. Each of these places will show with what propriety peace was invoked from the Lord Jesus. From thus connecting the Lord Jesus with the Father in this place, we may see,

(1)    That the apostle regarded him as the source of grace and peace as really as he did the Father.

(2)\caps1     h\caps0 e introduced them in the same connection, and with reference to the bestowment of the same blessings.

(3)\caps1     i\caps0 f the mention of the Father in this connection implies a prayer to him, or an act of worship, the mention of the Lord Jesus implies the same thing, and was an act of homage to him.

(4)\caps1     a\caps0 ll this shows that his mind was familiarized to the idea that he was divine.

No man would introduce his name in such connections if he did not believe that he was equal with God; compare Phi 2:2-11. It is from this incidental and unstudied manner of expression, that we have one of the most striking proofs of the manner in which the sacred writers regarded the Lord Jesus Christ.

These seven verses are one sentence. They are a striking instance of the manner of Paul. The subject is simply a salutation to the Roman church. But at the mention of some single words, the mind of Paul seems to catch fire, and go burn and blaze with signal intensity. He leaves the immediate subject before him, and advances some vast thought that awes us, and fixes us in contemplation, and involves us in difficulty about his meaning, and then returns to his subject. This is the characteristic of his great mind; and it is this, among other things, that makes it so difficult to interpret his writings.

Barnes: Rom 1:8 - -- First - In the first place, not in point of importance, but before speaking of other things, or before proceeding to the main design of the Epi...

First - In the first place, not in point of importance, but before speaking of other things, or before proceeding to the main design of the Epistle.

I thank my God - The God, whom I worship and serve. The expression of thanks to God for his mercy to them was suited to conciliate their feelings, and to prepare them for the truths which he was about to communicate to them. It showed the deep interest which he had in their welfare; and the happiness it would give him to do them good. It is proper to give thanks to God for his mercies to others as well as to ourselves. We are members of one great family, and we should make it a subject of thanksgiving that he confers any blessings, and especially the blessing of salvation, on any mortals.

Through Jesus Christ - The duty of presenting our thanks to God "through"Christ is often enjoined in the New Testament, Eph 5:20; Heb 13:15; compare Joh 14:14. Christ is the mediator between God and human beings, or the medium by which we are to present our prayers and also our thanksgivings. We are not to approach God directly, but through a mediator at all times, depending on him to present our cause before the mercy-seat; to plead for us there; and to offer the desires of our souls to God. It is no less proper to present thanks in his name, or through him, than it is prayer. He has made the way to God accessible to us, whether it be by prayer or praise; and it is owing to "his"mercy and grace that "any"of our services are acceptable to God.

For you all - On account of you all, that is, of the entire Roman church. This is one evidence that that church then was remarkably pure. How few churches have there been of whom a similar commendation could be expressed.

That your faith - "Faith"is put here for the whole of religion, and means the same as your piety. Faith is one of the principal things of religion; one of its first requirements; and hence, it signifies religion itself. The readiness with which the Romans had embraced the gospel, the firmness with which they adhered to it, was so remarkable, that it was known and celebrated everywhere. The same thing is affirmed of them in Rom 16:19, "For your obedience is come abroad unto all men."

Is spoken of - Is celebrated, or known. They were in the capital of the Roman Empire; in a city remarkable for its wickedness; and in a city whose influence extended everywhere. It was natural, therefore, that their remarkable conversion to God should be celebrated everywhere. The religious or irreligious influence of a great city will be felt far and wide, and this is one reason why the apostles preached the gospel so much in such places.

Throughout the whole world - As we say, everywhere; or throughout the Roman Empire. The term "world"is often thus limited in the scriptures; and here it denotes those parts of the Roman Empire where the Christian church was established. All the churches would hear of the work of God in the capital, and would rejoice in it; compare Col 1:6, Col 1:23; Joh 12:19. It is not improper to commend Christians, and to remind them of their influence; and especially to call to their mind the great power which they may have on other churches and people. Nor is it improper that great displays of divine mercy should be celebrated everywhere, and excite in the churches praise to God.

Barnes: Rom 1:9 - -- For God is my witness - The reason of this strong appeal to God is, to show to the Romans the deep interest which he felt in their welfare This...

For God is my witness - The reason of this strong appeal to God is, to show to the Romans the deep interest which he felt in their welfare This interest was manifested in his prayers, and in his earnest desires to see them. A deep interest shown in this way was well suited to prepare them to receive what he had to say to them.

Whom I serve - See Rom 1:1; compare Act 17:23. The expression denotes that he was devoted to God in this manner; that he obeyed him; and had given himself to do his will in making known his gospel.

With my spirit - Greek, ἐν en , in my spirit, that is, with my "heart."It is not an external service merely; it is internal, real, sincere. He was really and sincerely devoted to the service of God.

In the gospel of his Son - In making known the gospel, or as a minister of the gospel.

That without ceasing - ἀδιαλείπτως adialeiptōs . This word means constantly, always, without intermission. It was not only once, but repeatedly. It had been the burden of his prayers. The same thing he also mentions in regard to other churches, 1Th 1:3; 1Th 2:13.

I make mention - I call you to remembrance, and present your case before God. This evinced his remarkable interest in a church which he had never seen, and it shows that Paul was a man of prayer; praying not for his friends and kindred only, but for those whom he had never seen. If with the same intensity of prayer all Christians, and Christian ministers, would remember the churches, what a different aspect would the Christian church soon assume!

Always - This word should be connected with the following verse, "Always making request,"etc.

Barnes: Rom 1:10 - -- Making request - It was his earnest desire to see them, and he presented the subject before God. If by any means - This shows the earnest...

Making request - It was his earnest desire to see them, and he presented the subject before God.

If by any means - This shows the earnest desire which he had to see them, and implies that be had designed it, and had been hindered; see Rom 1:13.

Now at length - He had purposed it a long time, but had been hindered. He doubtless cherished this purpose for years. The expressions in the Greek imply an earnest wish that this long-cherished purpose might be accomplished before long.

A prosperous journey - A safe, pleasant journey. It is right to regard all success in traveling as depending on God, and to pray for success and safety from danger. Yet all such prayers are not answered according to the letter of the petition. The prayer of Paul that be might see the Romans was granted, but in a remarkable way. He was persecuted by the Jews, and arraigned before King Agrippa. He appealed to the Roman emperor, and was taken there in chains as a prisoner. Yet the journey might in this way have a more deep effect on the Romans, than if he had gone in any other way. In so mysterious a manner does God often hear the prayers of his people; and though their prayers are answered, yet it is in his own time and way; see the last chapters of the Acts .

By the will of God - If God shall grant it; if God will by his mercy grant me the great favor of my coming to you. This is a proper model of a prayer; and is in accordance with the direction of the Bible; see Jam 4:14-15.

Barnes: Rom 1:11 - -- For I long to see you - I earnestly desire to see you; compare Rom 15:23, Rom 15:32. That I may impart - That I may "give,"or communicate...

For I long to see you - I earnestly desire to see you; compare Rom 15:23, Rom 15:32.

That I may impart - That I may "give,"or communicate to you.

Some spiritual gift - Some have understood this as referring to "miraculous gifts,"which it was supposed the apostles had the power of conferring on others. But this interpretation is forced and unnatural. There is no instance where this expression denotes the power of working miracles. Besides, the apostle in the next verse explains his meaning, "That I may be comforted together by the mutual faith,"etc. From this it appears that he desired to be among them to exercise the office of the ministry, to establish them in the gospel and to confirm their hopes. He expected that the preaching of the gospel would be the means of confirming them in the faith; and he desired to be the means of doing it. It was a wish of benevolence, and accords with what he says respecting his intended visit in Rom 15:29, "And I am sure that when I come, I shall come in the fullness of the blessing of the gospel of Christ."To make known to them more fully the blessings of the gospel, and thus to impart spiritual gifts, was the design he had in view.

To the end ... - With the design, or purpose.

Ye may be established - That is, that they might be "confirmed"in the truths of the gospel. This was one design of the ministry, that Christians may be established, or strengthened, Eph 4:13. It is not to have dominion ever their faith, but to be "helpers of their joy,"2Co 1:24. Paul did not doubt that this part of his office might be fulfilled among the Romans, and he was desirous there also of making full proof of his ministry. His wish was to preach not simply where he must, but where he might. This is the nature of this work.

Barnes: Rom 1:12 - -- That I may be comforted ... - It was not merely to confirm them that Paul wished to come. He sought the communion of saints; he expected to be ...

That I may be comforted ... - It was not merely to confirm them that Paul wished to come. He sought the communion of saints; he expected to be himself edified and strengthened; and to be comforted by seeing their strength of faith, and their rapid growth in grace. We may remark here,

(1) That one effect of religion is to produce the desire of the communion of saints. It is the nature of Christianity to seek the society of those who are the friends of Christ.

\caps1 (2) n\caps0 othing is better suited to produce growth in grace than such communion. Every Christian should have one or more Christian friends to whom he may unbosom himself. No small part of the difficulties which young Christians experience would vanish, if they should communicate their feelings and views to others. Feelings which they suppose no Christians ever had, which greatly distress them, they will find are common among those who are experienced in the Christian life.

\caps1 (3) t\caps0 here is nothing better suited to excite the feelings, and confirm the hopes of Christian ministers, than the firm faith of young converts, of those just commencing the Christian life, 3Jo 1:4.

\caps1 (4) t\caps0 he apostle did not disdain to be taught by the humblest Christians. He expected to be strengthened himself by the faith of those just beginning the Christian life. "There is none so poor in the church of Christ, that he cannot make some addition of importance to our stores,"Calvin.

Barnes: Rom 1:13 - -- That oftentimes I purposed - See Rom 1:10. How often he had purposed this we have no means of ascertaining. The fact, however, that he had done...

That oftentimes I purposed - See Rom 1:10. How often he had purposed this we have no means of ascertaining. The fact, however, that he had done it, showed his strong desire to see them, and to witness the displays of the grace of God in the capital of the Roman world; compare Rom 15:23-24. One instance of his having purposed to go to Rome is recorded in Act 19:21, "After these things were ended (namely, at Ephesus), Paul purposed in the spirit, when he had passed through Macedonia and Achaia to go to Jerusalem; saying, After I have been there, I must also see Rome."This purpose expressed in this manner in the Epistle, and the Acts of the Apostles, has been shown by Dr. Paley (Horae Paulinae on Rom 1:13) to be one of those undesigned coincidences which strongly show that both books are genuine; compare Rom 15:23-24, with Act 19:21. A forger of these books would not have thought of such a contrivance as to feign such a purpose to go to Rome at that time, and to have mentioned it in that manner. Such coincidences are among the best proofs that can be demanded, that the writers did not intend to impose on the world; see Paley.

But was let hitherto - The word "let"means to "hinder,"or to "obstruct."In what way this was done we do not know, but it is probable that he refers to the various openings for the preaching of the gospel where he had been, and to the obstructions of various kinds from the enemies of the gospel to the fulfillment of his purposes.

That I might have some fruit among you - That I might be the means of the conversion of sinners and of the edification of the church in the capital of the Roman Empire. It was not curiosity to see the splendid capital of the world that prompted this desire; it was not the love of travel, and of roaming from clime to clime; it was the specific purpose of doing good to the souls of human beings. To "have fruit"means to obtain success in bringing men to the knowledge of Christ. Thus, the Saviour said Joh 15:16,"I have chosen you, and ordained you that you should bring forth fruit, and that your fruit should remain."

Barnes: Rom 1:14-15 - -- I am debtor - This does not mean that they had conferred any favor on him, which bound him to make this return, but that he was under obligatio...

I am debtor - This does not mean that they had conferred any favor on him, which bound him to make this return, but that he was under obligation to preach the gospel to all to whom it was possible. This obligation arose from the favor that God had shown him in appointing him to this work. He was specially chosen as a vessel to bear the gospel to the Gentiles Act 9:15; Rom 11:13, and he did not feel that he had discharged the obligation until he had made the gospel known as far as possible among all the nations of the earth.

To the Greeks - This term properly denotes "those who dwelt in Greece."But as the Greeks were the most polished people of antiquity, the term came to be synonymous with the polished, the refined, the wise, as opposed to barbarians. In this place it doubtless means the same as "the wise,"and includes the Romans also, as it cannot be supposed that Paul would designate the Romans as barbarians. Besides, the Romans claimed an origin from Greece, and Dionysius Halicarnassus (book i.) shows that the Italian and Roman people were of Greek descent.

Barbarians - All who were not included under the general name of Greeks. Thus, Ammonius says that "all who were not Greeks were barbarians."This term "barbarian," Βάρβαρος Barbaros , properly denotes one who speaks a foreign language, a foreigner, and the Greeks applied it to all who did not use their tongue; compare 1Co 14:11, "I shall be unto him that speaketh, a barbarian, etc. that is, I shall speak a language which he cannot understand. The word did not, therefore, of necessity denote any rusticity of manners, or any lack of refinement.

To the wise - To those who esteemed themselves to be wise, or who boasted of their wisdom. The term is synonymous with "the Greeks,"who prided themselves much in their wisdom. 1Co 1:22, "the Greeks seek after wisdom;"compare 1Co 1:19; 1Co 3:18-19; 1Co 4:10; 2Co 11:19.

Unwise - Those who were regarded as the ignorant and unpolished part of mankind. The expression is equivalent to ours, ‘ to the learned and the unlearned.’ It was an evidence of the proper spirit to be willing to preach the gospel to either. The gospel claims to have power to instruct all mankind, and they who are called to preach it, should be able to instruct those who esteem themselves to be wise, and who are endowed with science, learning, and talent; and they should be willing to labor to enlighten the most obscure, ignorant, and degraded portions of the race. This is the true spirit of the Christian ministry.

So, as much as in me is - As far as opportunity may be offered, and according to my ability.

I am ready ... - I am prepared to preach among you, and to show the power of the gospel, even in the splendid metropolis of the world. He was not deterred by any fear; nor was he indifferent to their welfare; but he was under the direction of God. and as far as he gave him opportunity, he was ready to make known to them the gospel, as he had done at Antioch, Ephesus, Athens, and Corinth.

This closes the introduction or preface to the Epistle. Having shown his deep interest in their welfare, he proceeds in the next verse to state to them the great doctrines of that gospel which he was desirous of proclaiming to them.

Barnes: Rom 1:16 - -- For I am not ashamed ... - The Jews had cast him off, and regarded him as an apostate; and by the wise among the Gentiles he had been persecute...

For I am not ashamed ... - The Jews had cast him off, and regarded him as an apostate; and by the wise among the Gentiles he had been persecuted, and despised, and driven from place to place, and regarded as the filth of the world, and the offscouring of all things 1Co 4:13, but still he was not ashamed of the gospel. He had so firm a conviction of its value and its truth; he had experienced so much of its consolations; and had seen so much of its efficacy; that he was so far from being ashamed of it that he gloried in it as the power of God unto salvation. People should be ashamed of crime and folly. They are ashamed of their own offences, and of the follies of their conduct, when they come to reflect on it. But they are not ashamed of what they feel to be right, and of what they know will contribute to their welfare, and to the benefit of their fellow-men. Such were the views of Paul about the gospel; and it is one of his favorite doctrines that they who believe on Christ shall not be ashamed, Rom 10:11; Rom 5:5; 2Co 7:14; 2Ti 1:12; Phi 1:20; Rom 9:33; 2Ti 1:8; compare Mar 8:38; 1Pe 4:16; 1Jo 2:28.

Of the gospel - This word means the "good news,"or the glad intelligence; see the note at Mar 1:1. It is so called because it contains the glad annunciation that sin may be pardoned, and the soul saved.

Of Christ - The good news respecting the Messiah; or which the Messiah has brought. The expression probably refers to the former, the good news which relates to the Messiah, to his character, advent, preaching, death, resurrection, and ascension. Though this was "to the Jews a stumbling-block, and to the Greeks foolishness,"yet he regarded it as the only hope of salvation, and was ready to preach it even in the rich and splendid capital of the world.

The power of God - This expression means that it is the way in which God exerts his power in the salvation of people. It is the efficacious or mighty plan, by which power goes forth to save, and by which all the obstacles of man’ s redemption are taken away. This expression implies,

(1) That it is God’ s plan, or his appointment. It is not the device of man.

\caps1 (2) i\caps0 t is adapted to the end. It is suited to overcome the obstacles in the way. It is not merely the instrument by which God exerts his power, but it has an inherent adaptedness to the end, it is suited to accomplish salvation to man so that it may be denominated power.

\caps1 (3) i\caps0 t is mighty, hence, it is called power, and the power of God. If is not a feeble and ineffectual instrumentality, but it is "mighty to the pulling down of strongholds,"2Co 10:4-5. It has shown its power as applicable to every degree of sin, to every combination of wickedness. It has gone against the sins of the world, and evinced its power to save sinners of all grades, and to overcome and subdue every mighty form of iniquity, compare Jer 23:29, "Is not my word like as a fire? saith the Lord; and like a hammer that breaketh the rock in pieces?"1Co 1:18, "the preaching of the cross is to them that perish, foolishness, but unto us which are saved, it is the power of God."

Unto salvation - This word means complete deliverance from sin and death, and all the foes and dangers that beset man. It cannot imply anything less than eternal life. If a man should believe and then fall away, he could in no correct sense be said to be saved. And hence, when the apostle declares that it is the power of God unto salvation "to everyone that believeth,"it implies that all who become believers "shall be kept by the power of God through faith unto salvation"(see 1Pe 1:5), and that none shall ever fall away and be lost. The apostle thus commences his discussion with one of the important doctrines of the Christian religion, the final preservation of the saints. He is not defending the gospel for any temporary object, or with any temporary hope. He looks through the system, and sees in it a plan for the complete and eternal recovery of all those who believe in the Lord Jesus Christ. When he says it is the power of God unto salvation, he means that it is the power of God for the attainment of salvation. This is the end, or the design of this exertion of power.

To everyone that believeth - Compare Mar 16:16-17. This expresses the condition, or the terms, on which salvation is conferred through the gospel. It is not indiscriminately to all people, whatever may be their character. It is only to those who confide or trust in it; and it is conferred on all who receive it in this manner. If this qualification is possessed, it bestows its blessings freely and fully. All people know what "faith"is. It is exercised when we confide in a parent, a friend, a benefactor. It is such a reception of a promise, a truth, or a threatening, as to suffer it to make its appropriate impression on the mind, and such as to lead us to act under its influence, or to act as we should on the supposition that it is true. Thus, a sinner credits the threatenings of God, and fears. This is faith. He credits his promises, and hopes. This is faith. He feels that he is lost, and relies on Jesus Christ for mercy. This is faith. And, in general, faith is such an impression on the mind made by truth as to lead us to feel and act as if it were true; to have the appropriate feelings, and views, and conduct under the commands, and promises, and threatenings of God; see the note at Mar 16:16.

To the Jew first - First in order of time, Not that the gospel was any more adapted to Jews than to others; but to them had been committed the oracles of God; the Messiah had come through them; they had had the Law, the temple, and the service of God, and it was natural that the gospel should be proclaimed to them before it was to the Gentiles. This was the order in which the gospel was actually preached to the world, first to the Jews, and then to the Gentiles. Compare Acts 2 and Acts 10; Mat 10:6; Luk 24:49; Act 13:46, "It was necessary that the Word of God should first have been spoken to you; but seeing ye put it from you, and judge yourselves unworthy of everlasting life, lo, we turn to the Gentiles."Compare Mat 21:43.

And also to the Greek - To all who were nor Jews, that is, to all the world. It was nor confined in its intention or efficacy to any class or nation of people. It was adapted to all, and was designed to be extended to all.

Barnes: Rom 1:17 - -- For - This word implies that he is now about to give a "reason"for what he had just said, a reason why he was not ashamed of the gospel of Chri...

For - This word implies that he is now about to give a "reason"for what he had just said, a reason why he was not ashamed of the gospel of Christ. That reason is stated in this verse. It embodies the substance of all that is contained in the Epistle. It is the doctrine which he seeks to establish; and there is not perhaps a more important passage in the Bible than this verse; or one more difficult to be understood.

Therein - In it, ἐν οὕτῳ en houtō , that is, in the gospel.

Is the righteousness of God - δικαιοσύνη Θεοῦ dikaiosunē Theou . There is not a more important expression to be found in the Epistle than this. It is capable of only the following interpretations.

\caps1 (1) s\caps0 ome have said that it means that the attribute of God which is denominated righteousness or justice, is here displayed. It has been supposed that this was the design of the gospel to make this known; or to evince his justice in his way of saving people. There is an important sense in which this is true Rom 3:26. But this does not seem to be the meaning in the passage before us. For,

\tx720 \tx1080 (a)    The leading design of the gospel is not to evince the justice of God, or the attribute of justice, but the love of God; see Joh 3:16; Eph 2:4; 2Th 2:16; 1Jo 4:8.

(b)    The attribute of justice is not what is principally evinced in the gospel. It is rather mercy, "or mercy in a manner consistent with justice,"or that does not interfere with justice.

©    The passage, therefore, is not designed to teach simply that the righteousness of God, as an attribute, is brought forth in the gospel, or that the main idea is to reveal his justice.

\caps1 (2) a\caps0 second interpretation which has been affixed to it is, to make it the same as goodness, the benevolence of God is revealed, etc. But to this there are still stronger objections. For.

\tx720 \tx1080 (a)    It does not comport with the design of the apostle’ s argument.

(b)    It is a departure from the established meaning of the word "justice,"and the phrase "the righteousness of God."

©    If this had been the design, it is remarkable that the usual words expressive of goodness or mercy had not been used. Another meaning, therefore, is to be sought as expressing the sense of the phrase.

\caps1 (3) t\caps0 he phrase "righteousness of God"is equivalent to God’ s "plan of justifying people; his scheme of declaring them just in the sight of the Law; or of acquitting them from punishment, and admitting them to favor."In this sense it stands opposed to man’ s plan of justification, that is, by his own works: God’ s plan is by faith. The way in which that is done is revealed in the gospel. The object contemplated to be done is to treat people as if they were righteous. Man attempted to accomplish this by obedience to the Law. The plan of God was to arrive at it by faith. Here the two schemes differ; and the great design of this Epistle is to show that man cannot be justified on his own plan, to wit, by works; and that the plan of God is the only way, and a wise and glorious way of making man just in the eye of the Law. No small part of the perplexity usually attending this subject will be avoided if it is remembered that the discussion in this Epistle pertains to the question, "how can mortal man be just with God?"The apostle shows that it cannot be by works; and that it "can be"by faith. This latter is what he calls the "righteousness of God"which is revealed in the gospel.

To see that this is the meaning, it is needful only to look at the connection; and at the usual meaning of the words. The word to "justify," δικαιόω dikaioō , means properly "to be just, to be innocent, to be righteous."It then means to "declare,"or treat as righteous; as when a man is charged with an offence. and is acquitted. If the crime alleged is not proved against him, he is declared by the Law to be innocent. It then means to "treat as if innocent, to regard as innocent;"that is, to pardon, to forgive, and consequently to treat as if the offence had not occurred. It does not mean that the man did not commit the offence; or that the Law might not have held him answerable for it; but that the offence is forgiven; and it is consistent to receive the offender into favor, and treat him as if he had not committed it. In what way this may be done rests with him who has the pardoning power. And in regard to the salvation of man, it rests solely with God. and must be done in that way only which he appoints and approves. The design of Paul in this Epistle is to show how this is done, or to show that it is done by faith. It may be remarked here that the expression before us does not imply any particular manner in which it is done; it does not touch the question whether it is by imputed righteousness or not; it does not say that it is on legal principles; it simply affirms "that the gospel contains God’ s plan of justifying people by faith."

The primary meaning of the word is, therefore, "to be innocent, pure, etc."and hence, the name means "righteousness"in general. For this use of the word, see Mat 3:15; Mat 5:6, Mat 5:10, Mat 5:20; Mat 21:32; Luk 1:75; Act 10:35; Act 13:10; Rom 2:26; Rom 8:4, etc.

In the sense of pardoning sin, or of treating people as if they were innocent, on the condition of faith, it is used often, and especially in this Epistle; see Rom 3:24, Rom 3:26, Rom 3:28, Rom 3:30; Rom 4:5; Rom 5:1; Rom 8:30; Gal 2:16; Gal 3:8, Gal 3:24; Rom 3:21-22, Rom 3:25; Rom 4:3, Rom 4:6,Rom 4:13; Rom 9:30, etc.

It is called "God’ s"righteousness, because it is God’ s plan, in distinction from all the plans set up by people. It was originated by him; it differs from all others; and it claims him as its author, and tends to his glory. It is called his righteousness, as it is the way by which he receives and treats people as righteous. The same plan was foretold in various places where the word "righteousness"is nearly synonymous with "salvation;"Isa 56:5 "My righteousness is near, my salvation is gone forth;"Isa 56:6, "My salvation shall be forever, and my righteousness shall not be abolished;"Isa 56:1, "My salvation is near to come, and my righteousness to be revealed;"Dan 9:24, "To make reconciliation for iniquity, and to bring in everlasting righteousness."

(There is yet another sense lying on the very surface of the passage, and adopted by nearly all the evangelical expositors, according to which "the righteousness of God"is that righteousness, which Christ worked out in his active and passive obedience. This is a righteousness which God hath devised, procured, and accepted. It is therefore eminently His. It is imputed to believers, and on account of it they are held righteous in the sight of God. It is of the highest importance that the true meaning of this leading expression be preserved; for if it be explained away, the doctrine of imputed righteousness is materially affected, as will appear in a subsequent note.

That the phrase is to be understood of the righteousness which Christ has procured by his obedience and death, appears from the general sense of the original term δικαιοσύνη dikaiosunē . Mr. Haldane in a long and elaborate comment on Rom 3:21, has satisfactorily shown that it signifies "righteousness in the abstract, and also conformity to law,"and that "Wherever it refers to the subject of man’ s salvation, and is not merely a personal attribute of Deity, it signifies that righteousness which, in conformity with his justice, God has appointed and provided."

Besides, if the expression be understood of "God’ s plan of justifying men,"we shall have great difficulty in explaining the parallel passages. They will not bend to any such principle of interpretation, In Rom 5:17, this righteousness is spoken of as a "gift"which we "receive,"and in the Rom 5:18 and Rom 5:19 verses, the "righteousness of one"and "the obedience of one,"are used as convertible terms. Now it is easy to understand how the righteousness which Christ has procured by his obedience, becomes "a gift,"but "a plan of justification"is appropriately said to be declared, or promulgated. It cannot be spoken of in the light of a gift received. The same observation applies with still greater force to the passage in 2Co 5:21, "For he hath made him to be sin for us who knew no sin, that we might be made the righteousness of God in him."How would this passage appear, if "plan of justification"were substituted for righteousness of God?

In Phi 3:9, Paul desires to be found in Christ, "not having his own righteousness, which is of the land, but what is through the faith of Christ, the righteousness which is of God by faith."Is not his own righteousness what he could attain to by his works or obedience, and is not the righteousness of Christ what Jesus had procured by his obedience?

Lastly, in Rom 10:3, the righteousness of God is thus opposed to the righteousness of man, "they being ignorant of God’ s righteousness, and going about to establish their own righteousness, have not submitted themselves to the righteousness of God."Now what is that righteousness which natural people seek to establish, and which is especially called "their own?"Doubtless it is a righteousness founded on their own works, and therefore what is here properly opposed to it is a righteousness founded on the "work of God. See Haldane, Hodge, Scott, Guyse, etc."This meaning of the term furnishes a key to unlock "all"the passages in which it is used in connection with the sinner’ s justification, whereas any other sense, however it may suit a few places, will be found generally inapplicable.)

In regard to this plan it may be observed;

(1)    That it is not to declare that people are innocent and pure. That would not be true. The truth is just the reverse; and God does not esteem men to be different from what they are.

(2)\caps1     i\caps0 t is not to take part with the sinner, and to mitigate his offences. It admits them to their full extent; and makes him feel them also.

(3)\caps1     i\caps0 t is not that we become partakers of the essential righteousness of God. That is impossible.

(4)\caps1     i\caps0 t is not that his righteousness becomes ours. This is not true; and there is no intelligible sense in which that can be understood.

(It is true indeed that the righteousness of Christ cannot be called ours in the sense of our having actually accomplished it in our own persons. This is a view of imputation easily held up to ridicule, yet there is a sense in which the righteousness of Christ may be ours. Though we have not achieved it, yet it may be so placed to our account that we shall be held righteous, and treated as such. I have said, first, we shall be held righteous, and then treated as such; for God treats none as righteous who in some sense or other are not really so. See the note at Rom 4:3.)

But it is God’ s plan for pardoning sin, and for treating us as if we had not committed it; that is, adopting us as his children, and admitting us to heaven on the ground of what the Lord Jesus has done in our stead. This is God’ s plan. People seek to save themselves by their own works. God’ s plan is to save them by the merits of Jesus Christ.

Revealed - Made known, and communicated. The gospel states the fact that God has such a plan of justification; and shows the way or manner in which it might be done. The fact seems to have been understood by Abraham, and the patriarchs Heb. 11, but the full mode or manner in which it was to be accomplished, was not revealed until it was done in the gospel of Christ. And because this great and glorious truth was thus made known, Paul was not ashamed of the gospel. Nor should we be.

From faith - ἐκ πίστεως ek pisteōs . This phrase I take to be connected with the expression, "the righteousness of God."Thus, the righteousness of God, or God’ s plan of justifying people by faith, is revealed in the gospel. Here the great truth of the gospel is brought out, that people are justified by faith, and not by the deeds of the Law. The common interpretation of the passage has been, that the righteousness of God in this is revealed from one degree of faith to another. But to this interpretation there are many objections.

\caps1 (1) i\caps0 t is not true. The gospel was not designed for this. It did not "suppose"that people had a certain degree of faith by nature which needed only to be strengthened in order that they might be saved.

\caps1 (2) i\caps0 t does not make good sense. To say that the righteousness of God, meaning, as is commonly understood, his essential justice, is revealed from one degree of faith to another, is to use words without any meaning.

\caps1 (3) t\caps0 he connection of the passage does not admit of this interpretation. The design of the passage is evidently to set forth the doctrine of justification as the grand theme of remark, and it does not comport with that design to introduce here the advance from one degree of faith to another, as the main topic.

\caps1 (4) t\caps0 he Epistle is intended clearly to establish the fact that people are justified by faith. This is the grand idea which is kept up; and to show how this may be done is the main purpose before the apostle; see Rom 3:22, Rom 3:30; Rom 9:30; Rom 9:32; Rom 10:6, etc.

\caps1 (5) t\caps0 he passage which he immediately quotes shows that he did not speak of different degrees of faith, but of the doctrine that people are to be justified by faith.

To faith - Unto those who believe (compare Rom 3:22); or to everyone that believeth, Rom 1:16. The abstract is here put for the concrete. It is designed to express the idea, "that God’ s plan of justifying people is revealed in the gospel, which plan is by faith, and the benefits of which plan shall be extended to all that have faith, or that believe."

As it is written - See Hab 2:4.

The just shall live by faith - The Septuagint translate the passage in Habakkuk, ‘ If any man shall draw back, my soul shall have no pleasure in him, but the just by my faith,"or by faith in me, "shall live."The very words are used by them which are employed by the apostle, except they add the word "my," μοῦ mou , my faith. The Syriac renders it in a similar manner, "The just by faith shall live."The meaning of the Hebrew in Habakkuk is the same. It does not refer originally to the doctrine of justification by faith; but its meaning is this, "The just man, or the righteous man, shall live by his confidence in God."The prophet is speaking of the woes attending the Babylonish captivity. The Chaldeans were to come upon the land and destroy it, and remove the nation, Rom 1:6-10. But this was not to be perpetual. It should have an end Rom 2:3, and they who had confidence in God should live Rom 1:4; that is, should be restored to their country, should be blessed and made happy. Their confidence in God should sustain them, and preserve them. This did not refer primarily to the doctrine of justification by faith, nor did the apostle so quote it, but it expressed a general principle that those who had confidence in God should be happy, and be preserved and blessed. This would express the doctrine which Paul was defending. It was not by relying on his own merit that the Israelite would be delivered, but it was by confidence in God, by his strength and mercy. On the same principle would men be saved under the gospel. It was not by reliance on their own works or merit; it was by confidence in God, by faith, that they were to live.

Shall live - In Habakkuk this means to be made happy, or blessed; shall find comfort, and support, and deliverance. So in the gospel the blessings of salvation are represented as life, eternal life. Sin is represented as death, and man by nature is represented as dead in trespasses and sins, Eph 2:1. The gospel restores to life and salvation, Joh 3:36; Joh 5:29, Joh 5:40; Joh 6:33, Joh 6:51, Joh 6:53; Joh 20:31; Act 2:28; Rom 5:18; Rom 8:6. This expression, therefore, does not mean, as it is sometimes supposed, the "justified by faith"shall live; but it is expressive of a general principle in relation to people, that they shall be defended, preserved, made happy, not by their own merits, or strength, but by confidence in God. This principle is exactly applicable to the gospel plan of salvation. Those who rely on God the Saviour shall be justified, and saved.

Barnes: Rom 1:18 - -- For - This word denotes that the apostle is about to give a reason for what he had just said. This verse commences the argument of the Epistle....

For - This word denotes that the apostle is about to give a reason for what he had just said. This verse commences the argument of the Epistle. an argument designed to establish the proposition advanced in Rom 1:17. The proposition is, that God’ s plan of justification is revealed in the gospel. To show this, it was necessary to show that all other plans had failed; and that there was need of some new plan or scheme to save people. To this he devotes this and the two following chapters. The design of this argument is, to show that people were sinners. And in order to make this out, it was necessary to show that they were under law. This was clear in regard to the Jews. They had the Scriptures; and the apostle in this chapter shows that it was equally clear in regard to the Gentiles, and then proceeds to show that both had failed of obeying the Law. To see this clearly it is necessary to add only, that there can be but two ways of justification conceived of; one by obedience to law, and the other by grace. The former was the one by which Jews and Gentiles had sought to be justified; and if it could be shown that in this they had failed, the way was clear to show that there was need of some other plan.

The wrath of God - ὀργὴ Θεοῦ orgē Theou . The word rendered "wrath"properly denotes that earnest appetite or desire by which we seek anything, or an intense effort to obtain it. And it is particularly applied to the desire which a man has to take vengeance who is injured, and who is enraged. It is thus synonymous with revenge. Eph 4:31, "let all bitterness, and wrath, etc.; Col 3:8, "anger, wrath, malice,"etc.; 1Ti 2:8; Jam 1:19. But it is also often applied to God; and it is clear that when we think of the word as applicable to him, it must be divested of everything like human passion, and especially of the passion of revenge. As he cannot be injured by the sins of people Job 25:6, he has no motive for vengeance properly so called, and it is one of the most obvious rules of interpretation that we are not to apply to God passions and feelings which, among us, have their origin in evil.

In making a revelation, it was indispensable to use words which people used; but it does not follow that when applied to God they mean precisely what they do when applied to man. When the Saviour is said Mar 3:5 to have looked on his disciples with anger (Greek, "wrath,"the same word is here), it is not to be supposed that he had the feelings of an implacable man seeking vengeance. The nature of the feeling is to be judged of by the character of the person. So, in this place, the word denotes the "divine displeasure"or "indignation"against sin; the divine purpose to "inflict punishment. It is the opposition of the divine character against sin;"and the determination of the divine mind to express that opposition in a proper way, by excluding the offender from the favors which he bestows on the righteous. It is not an unamiable, or arbitrary principle of conduct. We all admire the character of a father who is opposed to disorder, and vice, and disobedience in his family, and who expresses his opposition in a proper way.

We admire the character of a ruler who is opposed to all crime in the community, and who expresses those feelings in the laws. And the more he is opposed to vice and crime, the more we admire his character and his laws; and why shall we be not equally pleased with God, who is opposed to all crime in all parts of the universe, and who determines to express it in the proper way for the sake of preserving order and promoting peace? The phrase "divine displeasure"or "indignation,"therefore, expresses the meaning of this phrase; see Mat 3:7; Luk 3:7; Luk 21:23; Joh 3:36; Rom 2:5, Rom 2:8; Rom 3:5; Rom 4:15; Rom 5:9; Rom 9:22; Rom 12:19; Rom 13:4-5; Eph 2:3; Eph 5:6; 1Th 1:10; 1Th 2:16, etc. The word occurs 35 times in the New Testament.

Is revealed - That is, revealed to the Jews by their Law; and to the Gentiles in their reason, and conscience, as the apostle proceeds to show.

From heaven - This expression I take to mean simply that the divine displeasure against sin is made known by a divine appointment; by an arrangement of events, communications, and arguments, which evince that they have had their origin in heaven; or are divine. How this is, Paul proceeds to state, in the works of creation, and in the Law which the Hebrews had. A variety of meanings have been given to this expression, but this seems the most satisfactory. It does not mean that the wrath will be sent from heaven; or that the heavens declare his wrath; or that the heavenly bodies are proofs of his wrath against sin; or that Christ, the executioner of wrath, will be manifest from heaven (Origen, Cyril, Beza, etc.); or that it is from God who is in heaven; but that it is by an arrangement which shows that it had its origin in heaven. or has proofs that it is divine.

Against all ungodliness - This word properly means "impiety"toward God, or neglect of the worship and honor due to him. ἀσέβειαν asebeian . It refers to the fact that people had failed to honor the true God, and had paid to idols the homage which was due to him. Multitudes also in every age refuse to honor him, and neglect his worship, though they are not idolaters. Many people suppose that if they do not neglect their duty to their fellow-men, if they are honest and upright in their dealings, they are not guilty, even though they are not righteous, or do not do their duty to God; as though it were a less crime to dishonor God than man; and as though it were innocence to neglect and disobey our Maker and Redeemer. The apostle here shows that the wrath of God is as really revealed against the neglect of God as it is against positive iniquity; and that this is an offence of so much consequence as to be placed "first,"and as deserving the divine indignation more than the neglect of our duties toward people; compare Rom 11:26; 2Ti 2:16; Tit 2:12; Jud 1:15, Jud 1:18. The word does not occur elsewhere in the New Testament.

Unrighteousness of men - Unrighteousness, or iniquity toward people. All offences against our neighbor, our parents. our country, etc. The word "ungodliness"includes all crimes against God; this, all crimes against our fellow-men. The two words express what comprehends the violation of all the commands of God; "Thou shalt love the Lord thy God, etc. and thy neighbor as thyself,"Mat 22:37-40. The wrath of God is thus revealed against all human wickedness.

Who hold the truth - Who "keep back,"or "restrain"the truth. The word translated "hold"here, sometimes means to "maintain,"to "keep,"to "observe"1Co 7:30; 2Co 6:12; but it also means to "hold back, to detain, to hinder."Luk 4:42, "the people sought him (Jesus), and came to him, and stayed him."(Greek, the same as here.) Phm 1:13, "whom I would have "retained"with me,"etc.; 2Th 2:6, "and now ye know what "withholdeth,"etc. In this place it means also that they held back, or restrained the truth, by their wickedness.

The truth - The truth of God, in whatever way made known, and particularly, as the apostle goes on to say, what is made known by the light of nature. The truth pertaining to his perfections, his Law, etc. They hold it back. or restrain its influence.

In unrighteousness - Or rather, by their iniquity. Their wickedness is the cause why the truth had had so little progress among them, and had exerted so little influence. This was done by their yielding to corrupt passions and propensities, and by their being therefore unwilling to retain the knowledge of a pure and holy God, who is opposed to such deeds, and who will punish them. As they were determined to practice iniquity, they chose to exclude the knowledge of a pure God, and to worship impure idols, by which they might give a sanction to their lusts. Their vice and tendency to iniquity was, therefore, the reason why they had so little knowledge of a holy God; and by the love of this, they held back the truth from making progress, and becoming diffused among them.

The same thing is substantially true now. People hold back or resist the truth of the gospel by their sins in the following ways.

\caps1 (1) p\caps0 eople of influence and wealth employ both, in directly opposing the gospel.

\caps1 (2) p\caps0 eople directly resist the doctrines of religion. since they know they could not hold to those doctrines without abandoning their sins.

\caps1 (3) p\caps0 eople who resolve to live in sin, of course, resist the gospel, and endeavor to prevent its influence.

\caps1 (4) p\caps0 ride, and vanity, and the love of the world also resist the gospel, and oppose its advances.

(5) Unlawful business - business that begins in evil, and progresses, and ends in evil - has this tendency to hold back the gospel. Such is the effect of the traffic in ardent spirits, in the slave-trade, etc. They begin in the love of money, the root of all evil 1Ti 6:10; they progress in the tears and sorrows of the widow, the orphan, the wife, the sister, or the child; and they end in the deep damnation of multitudes in the world to come. Perhaps there has been nothing that has so much held back the influence of truth, and of the gospel, as indulgence in the vice of intemperance, and traffic in liquid fire.

(6) Indulgence in vice, or wickedness of any kind, holds back the truth of God. People who are resolved to indulge their passions will not yield themselves to this truth. And hence, all the wicked, the proud, and vain, and worldly are responsible, not only for their own sins directly, but for hindering, by their example and their crimes, the effect of religion on others. They are answerable for standing in the way of God and his truth; and for opposing him in the benevolent design of doing good to all people. There is nothing that prevents the universal spread and influence of truth but sin. And people of wickedness are answerable for all the ignorance and wo which are spread over the community, and which have extended themselves over the world.

Barnes: Rom 1:19 - -- Because - The apostle proceeds to show how it was that the pagan hindered the truth by their iniquity. This he does by showing that the truth m...

Because - The apostle proceeds to show how it was that the pagan hindered the truth by their iniquity. This he does by showing that the truth might be known by the works of creation; and that nothing but their iniquity prevented it.

That which may be known of God - That which is "knowable"concerning God. The expression implies that there may be many things concerning God which cannot be known. But there are also many things which may be ascertained. Such are his existence, and many of his attributes, his power, and wisdom, and justice, etc. The object of the apostle was not to say that every thing pertaining to God could be known by them, or that they could have as clear a view of him as if they had possessed a revelation. We must interpret the expression according to the object which he had in view. That was to show that so much might be known of God as to prove that they had no excuse for their crimes; or that God would be just in punishing them for their deeds. For this, it was needful only that his existence and his justice, or his determination to punish sin, should be known; and this, the apostle affirms, was known among them, and had been from the creation of the world. This expression. therefore, is not to be pressed as implying that they knew all that could be known about God, or that they knew as much as they who had a revelation; but that they knew enough to prove that they had no excuse for their sins.

Is manifest - Is known; is understood.

In them - "Among"them. So the preposition "in"is often used. It means that they had this knowledge; or it had been communicated to them. The great mass of the pagan world was indeed ignorant of the true God; but their leaders, or their philosophers, had this knowledge; see the note at Rom 1:21. But this was not true of the mass, or body of the people. Still it was true that this knowledge was in the possession of man, or was "among"the pagan world. and would have spread, had it not been for the love of sin.

God hath showed it to them - Compare Joh 1:9. He had endowed them with reason and conscience Rom 2:14-15; he had made them capable of seeing and investigating his works; he had spread before them the proofs of his wisdom, and goodness, and power, and had thus given them the means of learning his perfections and will.

Barnes: Rom 1:20 - -- For the invisible things of him - The expression "his invisible things"refers to those things which cannot be perceived by the senses. It does ...

For the invisible things of him - The expression "his invisible things"refers to those things which cannot be perceived by the senses. It does not imply that there are any things pertaining to the divine character which may be seen by the eye; but that there are things which may be known of him, though not discoverable by the eye. We judge of the objects around us by the senses, the sight, the touch, the ear, etc. Paul affirms, that though we cannot judge thus of God, yet there is a way by which we may come to the knowledge of him. What he means by the invisible things of God he specifies at the close of the verse, "his eternal power and Godhead."The affirmation extends only to that; and the argument implies that that was enough to leave them without any excuse for their sins.

From the creation of the world - The word "creation"may either mean the "act"of creating, or more commonly it means "the thing created,"the world, the universe. In this sense it is commonly used in the New Testament; compare Mar 10:6; Mar 13:19; Mar 16:5; Rom 1:25; 2Co 5:17; Gal 6:15; Col 1:15, Col 1:23; Heb 4:13; Heb 9:11; 1Pe 2:13; 2Pe 3:4; Rev 3:14. The word "from"may mean "since,"or it may denote "by means of."And the expression here may denote that, as an historical fact, God "has been""known"since the act of creation; or it may denote that he is known "by means of"the material universe which he has formed. The latter is doubtless the true meaning. For,

(1)    This is the common meaning of the word "creation;"and,

(2)    This accords with the design of the argument.

It is not to state an historical fact, but to show that they had the means of knowing their duty within their reach, and were without excuse. Those means were in the wisdom, power, and glory of the universe, by which they were surrounded.

Are clearly seen - Are made manifest; or may be perceived. The word used here does not occur elsewhere in the New Testament.

Being understood - His perfections may be investigated, and comprehended by means of his works. They are the evidences submitted to our intellects, by which we may arrive at the true knowledge of God.

Things that are made - By his works; compare Heb 11:3. This means, not by the original "act"of creation, but by the continual operations of God in his Providence, by his doings, ποιήμασιν poiēmasin , by what he is continually producing and accomplishing in the displays of his power and goodness in the heavens and the earth. What they were capable of understanding, he immediately adds, and shows that he did not intend to affirm that everything could be known of God by his works; but so much as to free them from excuse for their sins.

His eternal power - Here are two things implied.

(1)\caps1     t\caps0 hat the universe contains an exhibition of his power, or a display of that attribute which we call "omnipotence;"and,

(2)    That this power has existed from eternity, and of course implies an eternal existence in God.

It does not mean that this power has been exerted or put forth from eternity, for the very idea of creation supposes that it had not, but that there is proof, in the works of creation, of power which must have existed from eternity, or have belonged to an eternal being. The proof of this was clear, even to the pagan, with their imperfect views of creation and of astronomy; compare Psa 19:1-14. The majesty and grandeur of the heavens would strike their eye, and be full demonstration that they were the work of an infinitely great and glorious God. But to us, under the full blaze of modern science, with our knowledge of the magnitude, and distances, and revolutions of the heavenly bodies, the proof of this power is much more grand and impressive. We may apply the remark of the apostle to the present state of the science, and his language will cover all the ground, and the proof to human view is continually rising of the amazing power of God, by every new discovery in science, and especially in astronomy. Those who wish to see this object presented in a most impressive view, may find it done in Chalmer’ s Astronomical Discourses, and in Dick’ s Christian Philosopher. Equally clear is the proof that this power must have been eternal. If it had not always existed, it could in no way have been produced. But it is not to be supposed that it was always exerted, any more than it is that God now puts forth all the power that he can, or than that we constantly put forth all the power which we possess. God’ s power was called forth at the creation. He showed his omnipotence; and gave, by that one great act, eternal demonstration that he was almighty; and we may survey the proof of that, as clearly as if we had seen the operation of his hand there. The proof is not weakened because we do not see the process of creation constantly going on. It is rather augmented by the fact that he sustains all things, and controls continually the vast masses of matter in the material worlds.

Godhead - His deity; divinity; divine nature, or essence. The word is not used elsewhere in the New Testament. Its meaning cannot therefore be fixed by any parallel passages. It proves the truth that the supremacy, or supreme divinity of God, was exhibited in the works of creation, or that he was exalted above all creatures and things. It would not be proper, however, to press this word as implying that all that we know of God by revelation was known to the pagan; but that so much was known as to show his supremacy; his right to their homage; and of course the folly and wickedness of idolatry. This is all that the argument of the apostle demands, and, of course, on this principle the expression is to be interpreted.

So that they are without excuse - God has given them so clear evidence of his existence and claims, that they have no excuse for their idolatry, and for hindering the truth by their iniquity. It is implied here that in order that people should be responsible, they should have the means of knowledge; and that he does not judge them when their ignorance is involuntary, and the means of knowing the truth have not been communicated. But where people have these means within their reach, and will not avail themselves of them, all excuse is taken away. This was the case with the Gentile world. They had the means of knowing so much of God, as to show the folly of worshipping dumb idols; compare Isa 44:8-10. They had also traditions respecting his perfections; and they could not plead for their crimes and folly that they had no means of knowing him. If this was true of the pagan world then, how much more is it true of the world now?

And especially how true and fearful is this, respecting that great multitude in Christian lands who have the Bible, and who never read it; who are within the reach of the sanctuary, and never enter it; who are admonished by friends, and by the providences of God, and who regard it not; and who look upon the heavens, and even yet see no proof of the eternal power and Godhead of him who made them all! Nay, there are those who are apprized of the discoveries of modern astronomy, and who yet do not seem to reflect that all these glories are proof of the existence of an eternal God; and who live in ignorance of religion as really as the pagan, and in crimes as decided and malignant as disgraced the darkest ages of the world. For such there is no excuse, or shadow of excuse, to be offered in the day of doom. And there is no fact more melancholy in our history, and no one thing that more proves the stupidity of people, than this sad forgetfulness of Him that made the heavens, even amid all the wonders and glories that have come fresh from the hand of God, and that everywhere speak his praise.

Barnes: Rom 1:21 - -- Because that - The apostle here is showing that it was right to condemn people for their sins. To do this it was needful to show them that they...

Because that - The apostle here is showing that it was right to condemn people for their sins. To do this it was needful to show them that they had the knowledge of God, and the means of knowing what was right; and that the true source of their sins and idolatries was a corrupt and evil heart.

When they knew God - Greek, "knowing God."That is, they had an acquaintance with the existence and many of the perfections of one God. That many of the philosophers of Greece and Rome had a knowledge of one God, there can be no doubt. This was undoubtedly the case with Pythagoras, who had traveled extensively in Egypt, and even in Palestine; and also with Plato and his disciples. This point is clearly shown by Cudworth in his Intellectual System, and by Dr. Warburton in the Divine Legation of Moses . Yet the knowledge of this great truth was not communicated to the people. It was confined to the philosophers; and not improbably one design of the mysteries celebrated throughout Greece was to keep up the knowledge of the one true God. Gibbon has remarked that "the philosophers regarded all the popular superstitions as equally false: the common people as equally true; and the politicians as equally useful."This was probably a correct account of the prevalent feelings among the ancients. A single extract from "Cicero"(de Natura Deorum, lib. ii. c. 6) will show that they had the knowledge of one God. "There is something in the nature of things, which the mind of man, which reason, which human power cannot effect; and certainly what produces this must be better than man. What can this be called but "God?"Again (c. 2), "What can be so plain and manifest, when we look at heaven, and contemplate heavenly things, as that there is some divinity of most excellent mind, by which these things are governed?"

They glorified him not as God - They did not "honor"him as God. This was the true source of their abominations. To glorify him "as God"is to regard with proper reverence all his perfections and laws; to venerate his name, his power, his holiness, and presence, etc. As they were not inclined to do this, so they were given over to their own vain and wicked desires. Sinners are not willing to give honor to God, as God. They are not pleased with his perfections; and therefore the mind becomes fixed on other objects, and the heart gives free indulgence to its own sinful desires. A willingness to honor God as God - to reverence, love, and obey him, would effectually restrain people from sin.

Neither were thankful - The obligation to be "thankful"to God for his mercies, for the goodness which we experience, is plain and obvious. Thus, we judge of favors received of our fellow-men. the apostle here clearly regards this unwillingness to render gratitude to God for his mercies as one of the causes of their subsequent corruption and idolatry. The reasons of this are the following.

\caps1 (1) t\caps0 he effect of ingratitude is to render the heart hard and insensible.

\caps1 (2) p\caps0 eople seek to forget the Being to whom they are unwilling to exercise gratitude.

\caps1 (3) t\caps0 o do this, they fix their affections on other things; and hence, the pagan expressed their gratitude not to God, but to the sun, and moon, and stars, etc., the mediums by which God bestows his favors upon people. And we may here learn that an unwillingness to thank God for his mercies is one of the most certain causes of alienation and hardness of heart.

But became vain - To "become vain,"with us, means to be elated, or to be self-conceited, or to seek praise from others. The meaning here seems to be, they became foolish, frivolous in their thoughts and reasonings. They acted foolishly; they employed themselves in useless and frivolous questions, the effect of which was to lead the mind further and further from the truth respecting God.

Imaginations - This word means properly "thoughts,"then "reasonings,"and also "disputations."Perhaps our word, "speculations,"would convey its meaning here. It implies that they were unwilling to honor God, and being unwilling to honor him, they commenced those speculations which resulted in all their vain and foolish opinions about idols, and the various rites of idolatrous worship. Many of the speculations and inquiries of the ancients were among the most vain and senseless which the mind can conceive.

And their foolish heart - The word "heart"is not infrequently used to denote the mind, or the understanding. We apply it to denote the affections. But such was not its common use, among the Hebrews. We speak of the head when we refer to the understanding, but this was not the case with the Hebrews. They spoke of the heart in this manner, and in this sense it is clearly used in this place; see Eph 1:18; Rom 2:15; 2Co 4:6; 2Pe 1:19. The word "foolish"means literally what is without "understanding;"Mat 15:16.

Was darkened - Was rendered obscure, so that they did not perceive and comprehend the truth. The process which is stated in this verse is,

(1)    That people had the knowledge of God.

(2)\caps1     t\caps0 hat they refused to honor him when they knew him, and were opposed to his character and government.

(3)\caps1     t\caps0 hat they were ungrateful.

(4)\caps1     t\caps0 hat they then began to doubt, to reason, to speculate, and wandered far into darkness.

This is substantially the process by which people wander away from God now. They have the knowledge of God, but they do not love him; and being dissatisfied with his character and government, they begin to speculate, fall into error, and then "find no end in wandering mazes lost,"and sink into the depths of heresy and of sin.

Barnes: Rom 1:22 - -- Professing themselves to be wise - This was the common boast of the philosophers of antiquity. The very word by which they chose to be called, ...

Professing themselves to be wise - This was the common boast of the philosophers of antiquity. The very word by which they chose to be called, "philosophers,"means literally "lovers of wisdom."That it was their boast that they were wise, is well known; compare Rom 1:14; 1Co 1:19, 1Co 1:20, 1Co 1:22; 1Co 3:19; 2Co 11:19.

They became fools - Compare Jer 8:8-9. They became really foolish in their opinions and conduct. There is something particularly pungent and cutting in this remark, and as true as it is pungent. In what way they evinced their folly, Paul proceeds immediately to state. Sinners of all kinds are frequently spoken of as fools in the Scriptures. In the sense in which it is thus used, the word is applied to them as void of understanding or moral sense; as idolaters, and as wicked; Psa 14:1; Pro 26:4; Pro 1:17, Pro 1:22; Pro 14:8-9. The senses in which this word here is applied to the pagan are,

(1)    That their speculations and doctrines were senseless; and,

(2)    That their conduct was corrupt.

Barnes: Rom 1:23 - -- And changed - This does not mean that they literally "transmuted"God himself; but that in their views they exchanged him; or they changed him "...

And changed - This does not mean that they literally "transmuted"God himself; but that in their views they exchanged him; or they changed him "as an object of worship"for idols. They produced, of course, no real change in the glory of the infinite God, but the change was in themselves. They forsook him of whom they had knowledge Rom 1:21, and offered the homage which was due to him, to idols.

The glory - The majesty, the honor, etc. This word stands opposed here to the "degrading"nature of their worship. Instead of adoring a Being clothed with majesty and honor, they bowed down to reptiles, etc. They exchanged a glorious object of worship for what was degrading and humiliating. The glory of God, in such places as this, means his essential honor, his majesty, the concentration and expression of his perfections, as the glory of the sun, 1Co 15:41 means his shining, or his splendor; compare Jer 2:11; Psa 106:20.

The uncorruptible God - The word "uncorruptible"is here applied to God in opposition to "man."God is unchanging, indestructible, immortal. The word conveys also the idea that God is eternal. As he is incorruptible, he is the proper object of worship. In all the changes of life, man may come to him, assured that he is the same. When man decays by age or infirmities, he may come to God, assured that he undergoes no such change, but is the same yesterday, today, and forever; compare 1Ti 1:17.

Into an image - An image is a representation or likeness of anything, whether made by painting, or from wood, stone, etc. Thus, the word is applied to "idols,"as being "images"or "representations"of heavenly objects; 2Ch 33:7; Dan 3:1; Rev 11:4, etc. See instances of this among the Jews described in Isa 40:18-26, and Eze 8:10.

To corruptible man - This stands opposed to the "incorruptible"God. Many of the images or idols of the ancients were in the forms of men and women. Many of their gods were heroes and benefactors, who were deified, and to whom temples, altars, and statues were erected. Such were Jupiter, and Hercules, and Romulus, etc. The worship of these heroes thus constituted no small part of their idolatry, and their images would be of course representations of them in human form. It was proof of great degradation, that they thus adored human beings with like passions as themselves; and attempted to displace the true God from the throne, and to substitute in his place an idol in the likeness of men.

And to birds - The "ibis"was adored with special reverence among the Egyptians, on account of the great benefits resulting from its destroying the serpents which, but for this, would have overrun the country. The hawk was also adored in Egypt, and the eagle at Rome. As one great principle of pagan idolatry was to adore all objects from which important benefits were derived, it is probable that all birds would come in for a share of pagan worship, that rendered service in the destruction of noxious animals.

And fourfooted beasts - Thus, the ox, under the name "apis,"was adored in Egypt; and even the dog and the monkey. In imitation of the Egyptian ox, the children of Israel made their golden calf, Exo 22:4. At this day, two of the most sacred objects of worship in Hindostan are the cow and the "monkey."

And creeping things - Reptiles. "Animals that have no feet, or such short ones that they seem to creep or crawl on the ground.""(Calmet.)"Lizards, serpents, etc. come under this description. The "crocodile"in Egypt was an object of adoration, and even the serpent so late as the second century of the Christian era, there was a sect in Egypt, called "Ophites"from their worshipping a serpent, and who ever claimed to be Christians, (Murdock’ s Mosheim, vol. i. p. 180, 181). There was scarcely an object, animal or vegetable, which the Egyptians did not adore. Thus, the leek, the onion, etc. were objects of worship, and people bowed down and paid adoration to the sun and moon, to animals, to vegetables, and to reptiles. Egypt was the source of the views of religion that pervaded other nations, and hence, their worship partook of the same wretched and degrading character. (See "Leland’ s""Advantage and Necessity of Revelation.")

Barnes: Rom 1:24 - -- Wherefore - That is, because they were unwilling to retain him in their knowledge, and chose to worship idols. Here is traced the practical ten...

Wherefore - That is, because they were unwilling to retain him in their knowledge, and chose to worship idols. Here is traced the practical tendency of paganism; not as an innocent and harmless system, but as resulting in the most gross and shameless acts of depravity.

God gave them up - He abandoned them, or he ceased to restrain them, and suffered them to act out their sentiments, and to manifest them in their life. This does not imply, that he exerted any positive influence in inducing them to sin, any more than it would if we should seek, by argument and entreaty, to restrain a headstrong youth, and when neither would prevail, should leave him to act out his propensities. and to go as he chose to ruin. It is implied in this,

(1)    That the tendency of man was to these sins;

(2)    That the tendency of idolatry was to promote them; and,

(3)    That all that was needful, in order that people should commit them, was for God to leave him to follow the devices and desires of his own heart; compare Psa 81:12; 2Th 2:10, 2Th 2:12.

To uncleanness - To impurity, or moral defilement; particularly to those impurities which he proceeds to specify, Rom 1:26, etc.

Through the lusts of their own hearts - Or, in consequence of their own evil and depraved passions and desires. He left them to act out, or manifest, their depraved affections and inclinations.

To dishonour - To disgrace; Rom 1:26-27.

Between themselves - Among themselves; or mutually. They did it by unlawful and impure connections with one another.

Barnes: Rom 1:25 - -- Who changed the truth of God - This is a repetition of the declaration in Rom 1:23, in another form. The phrase, "the truth of God"is a Hebrew ...

Who changed the truth of God - This is a repetition of the declaration in Rom 1:23, in another form. The phrase, "the truth of God"is a Hebrew phrase, meaning "the true God."In such a case, where two nouns come together, one is employed as an adjective to qualify the other. Most commonly the latter of two nouns is used as the adjective, but sometimes it is the former, as in this case. God is called "the true God"in opposition to idols, which are called false gods. There is but one real or true God, and all others are false.

Into a lie - Into idols, or false gods. Idols are not infrequently called falsehood and lies, because they are not true representations of God; Jer 13:25; Isa 28:15; Jer 10:14; Psa 40:4.

The creature - Created things, as the sun, moon, animals, etc.

Who is blessed forever - It was not uncommon to add a doxology, or ascription of praise to God, when his name was mentioned; see Rom 9:5; 2Co 11:31; Gal 1:5. The Jews also usually did it. In this way they preserved veneration for the name of God, and accustomed themselves to speak of him with reverence. "The Muslims also borrowed this custom from the Jews, and practice it to a great extent. Tholuck mentions an Arabic manuscript in the library at Berlin which contains an account of heresies in respect to Islamism, and as often as the writer has occasion to mention the name of a new heretical sect, he adds, ‘ God be exalted above all which they say’ "(Stuart).

Amen - This is a Hebrew word denoting strong affirmation. So let it be. It implies here the solemn assent of the writer to what was just said; or his strong wish that what he had said might be - that the name of God might be esteemed and be blessed forever. The mention of the degrading idolatry of the pagans was strongly calculated to impress on his mind the superior excellency and glory of the one living God. It is mentioned respecting the honorable Robert Boyle, that he never mentioned the name of God without a solemn pause, denoting his profound reverence. Such a practice would tend eminently to prevent an unholy familiarity and irreverence in regard to the sacred name of the Most High; compare Exo 20:7.

Barnes: Rom 1:26 - -- For this cause - On account of what had just been specified; to wit, that they did not glorify him as God, that they were unthankful, that they...

For this cause - On account of what had just been specified; to wit, that they did not glorify him as God, that they were unthankful, that they became polytheists and idolaters. In the previous verses he had stated their speculative belief. He now proceeds to show its practical influences on their conduct.

Vile affections - Disgraceful passions or desires. That is, to those which are immediately specified. The great object of the apostle here, it will be remembered, is to shew the state of the pagan world, and to prove that they had need of some other way of justification than the law of nature. For this purpose, it was necessary for him to enter into a detail of their sins. The sins which he proceeds to specify are the most indelicate, vile, and degrading which can be charged on man. But this is not the fault of the apostle. If they existed, it was necessary for him to charge them on the pagan world. His argument would not be complete without it. The shame is not in specifying them, but in their existence; not in the apostle, but in those who practiced them, and imposed on him the necessity of accusing them of these enormous offences. It may be further remarked, that the mere fact of his charging them with these sins is strong presumptive proof of their being practiced. If they did not exist, it would be easy for them to deny it, and put him to the proof of it. No man would venture charges like these without evidence; and the presumption is, that these things were known and practiced without shame. But this is not all. There is still abundant proof on record in the writings of the pagan themselves, that these crimes were known and extensively practiced.

For even their women ... - Evidence of the shameful and disgraceful fact here charged on the women is abundant in the Greek and Roman writers. Proof may be seen, which it would not be proper to specify, in the lexicons, under the words τριζὰς ὄλισβον trizas olisbon , and ἑταιρίστης hetairistēs . See also Seneca, epis. 95; Martial, epis. i. 90. Tholuck on the State of the pagan World, in the Biblical Repository, vol. ii.; Lucian, Dial. Meretric. v.; and Tertullian de Pallio.

Barnes: Rom 1:27 - -- And likewise the men ... - The sin which is here specified is what was the shameful sin of Sodom, and which from that has been called sodomy. I...

And likewise the men ... - The sin which is here specified is what was the shameful sin of Sodom, and which from that has been called sodomy. It would scarcely be credible that man had been guilty of a crime so base and so degrading, unless there was ample and full testimony to it. Perhaps there is no sin which so deeply shows the depravity of man as this; none which would so much induce one "to hang his head, and blush to think himself a man."And yet the evidence that the apostle did not bring a railing accusation against the pagan world; that he did not advance a charge which was unfounded, is too painfully clear. It has been indeed a matter of controversy whether paederastry, or the love of boys, among the ancients was not a pure and harmless love, but the evidence is against it. (See this discussed in Dr. Leland’ s Advantage and Necessity of Revelation, vol. i. 49-56.) The crime with which the apostle charges the Gentiles here was by no means confined to the lower classes of the people.

It doubtless pervaded all classes, and we have distinct specifications of its existence in a great number of cases. Even Virgil speaks of the attachment of Corydon to Alexis, without seeming to feel the necessity of a blush for it. Maximus Tyrius (Diss. 10) says that in the time of Socrates, this vice was common among the Greeks; and is at pains to vindicate Socrates from it as almost a solitary exception. Cicero (Tuscul. Ques. iv. 34) says, that "Dicearchus had accused Plato of it, and probably not unjustly."He also says (Tuscul. Q. iv. 33), that the practice was common among the Greeks, and that their poets and great men, and even their learned men and philosophers, not only practiced, but gloried in it. And he adds, that it was the custom, not of particular cities only, but of Greece in general. (Tuscul. Ques. v. 20.) Xenophon says, that "the unnatural love of boys is so common, that in many places it is established by the public laws."

He particularly alludes to Sparta. (See Leland’ s Advantage, etc. i. 56.) Plato says that the Cretans practiced this crime, and justified themselves by the example of Jupiter and Ganymede. (Book of Laws, i.) And Aristotle says, that among the Cretans there was a law encouraging that sort of unnatural love. (Aristotle, Politic . b. ii. chapter 10.) Plutarch says, that this was practiced at Thebes, and at Elis. He further says, that Solon, the great lawgiver of Athens, "was not proof against beautiful boys, and had not courage to resist the force of love."(Life of Solon.) Diogenes Laertius says that this vice was practiced by the Stoic Zeno. Among the Romans, to whom Paul was writing, this vice was no less common. Cicero introduces, without any mark of disapprobation, Cotta, a man of the first rank and genius, freely and familiarly owning to other Romans of the same quality, that this worse than beastly vice was practiced by himself, and quoting the authority of ancient philosophers in vindication of it. (De Natura Deorum, b. i. chapter 28.) It appears from what Seneca says (epis. 95) that in his time it was practiced openly at Rome, and without shame.

He speaks of flocks and troops of boys, distinguished by their colors and nations; and says that great care was taken to train them up for this detestable employment. Those who may wish to see a further account of the morality in the pagan world may find it detailed in Tholuck’ s "Nature and moral Influence of Heathenism,"in the Biblical Repository, vol. ii., and in Leland’ s Advantage and Necessity of the Christian Revelation. There is not the least evidence that this abominable vice was confined to Greece and Rome. If so common there, if it had the sanction even of their philosophers, it may be presumed that it was practiced elsewhere, and that the sin against nature was a common crime throughout the pagan world. Navaratte, in his account of the empire of China (book ii. chapter 6), says that it is extremely common among the Chinese. And there is every reason to believe, that both in the old world and the new, this abominable crime is still practiced. If such was the state of the pagan world, then surely the argument of the apostle is well sustained, that there was need of some other plan of salvation than was taught by the light of nature.

That which is unseemly - That which is shameful, or disgraceful.

And receiving in themselves ... - The meaning of this doubtless is, that the effect of such base and unnatural passions was, to enfeeble the body, to produce premature old age, disease, decay, and an early death. That this is the effect of the indulgence of licentious passions, is amply proved by the history of man. The despots who practice polygamy, and keep harems in the East, are commonly superannuated at forty years of age; and it is well known, even in Christian countries, that the effect of licentious indulgence is to break down and destroy the constitution. How much more might this be expected to follow the practice of the vice specified in the verse under examination! God has marked the indulgence of licentious passions with his frown. Since the time of the Romans and the Greeks, as if there had not been sufficient restraints before, he has originated a new disease, which is one of the most loathsome and distressing which has ever afflicted man, and which has swept off millions of victims. But the effect on the body was not all. It tended to debase the mind; to sink man below the level of the brute; to destroy the sensibility; and to "sear the conscience as with a hot iron."The last remnant of reason and conscience, it would seem, must be extinguished it those who would indulge in this unnatural and degrading vice. See Suetonius’ Life of Nere, 28.

Barnes: Rom 1:28 - -- And even as they did not like ... - This was the true source of their crimes. They did not choose to acknowledge God. It was not because they c...

And even as they did not like ... - This was the true source of their crimes. They did not choose to acknowledge God. It was not because they could not, but because they were displeased with God, and chose to forsake him, and follow their own passions and lusts.

To retain God ... - To think of him, or to serve and adore him. This was the first step in their sin. It was not that God compelled them; or that he did not give them knowledge; nor even is it said that he arbitrarily abandoned them as the first step; but they forsook him, and as a consequence he gave them up to a reprobate mind.

To a reprobate mind - A mind destitute of judgment. In the Greek the same word is used here, which, in another form, occurs in the previous part of the verse, and which is translated "like."The apostle meant doubtless to retain a reference to that in this place. "As they did not approve, ἐδοκιμασαν edokimasan , or choose to retain God, etc. he gave them up to a mind disapproved, rejected, reprobate," ἀδοκιμον adokimon , and he means that the state of their minds was such that God could not approve it. It does not mean that they were reprobate by any arbitrary decree; but that as a consequence of their headstrong passions, their determination to forget him, he left them to a state of mind which was evil, and which he could not approve.

Which are not convenient - Which are not fit or proper; which are disgraceful and shameful; to wit, those things which he proceeds to state in the remainder of the chapter.

Barnes: Rom 1:29 - -- Being filled - That is, the things which he specifies were common or abounded among them. This is a strong phrase, denoting that these things w...

Being filled - That is, the things which he specifies were common or abounded among them. This is a strong phrase, denoting that these things were so often practiced as that it might be said they were full of them. We have a phrase like this still, when we say of one that he is full of mischief, etc.

Unrighteousness - ἀδικία adikia . This is a word denoting injustice, or iniquity in general. The particular specifications of the iniquity follow.

Fornication - This was a common and almost universal sin among the ancients, as it is among the moderns. The word denotes all illicit sexual intercourse. That this was a common crime among the ancient pagan, it would be easy to show, were it proper, even in relation to their wisest and most learned men. They who wish to see ample evidence of this charge may find it in Tholuck’ s "Nature and Moral Influence of Heathenism,"in the Biblical Repository, vol. ii. p. 441-464.

Wickedness - The word used here denotes a desire of injuring others; or, as we should express it, malice. It is that depravity and obliquity of mind which strives to produce injury on others. (Calvin.)

Covetousness - Avarice, or the desire of obtaining what belongs to others. This vice is common in the world; but it would be particularly so where the other vices enumerated here abounded, and people were desirous of luxury, and the gratification of their senses. Rome was particularly desirous of the wealth of other nations, and hence, its extended wars, and the various evils of rapine and conquest.

Licentiousness - κακία kakia . This word denotes evil in general; rather the act of doing wrong than the desire which was expressed before by the word "wickedness."

Full of envy - "Pain, uneasiness, mortification, or discontent, excited by another’ s prosperity, accompanied with some degree of hatred or malignity, and often with a desire or an effort to depreciate the person, and with pleasure in seeing him depressed"(Webster). This passion is so common still, that it is not necessary to attempt to prove that it was common among the ancients. It seems to be natural to the human heart. It is one of the most common manifestations of wickedness, and shows clearly the deep depravity of man. Benevolence rejoices at the happiness of others, and seeks to promote it. But envy exists almost everywhere, and in almost every human bosom:

"All human virtue, to its latest breath,

Finds envy never conquered but by death."

Pope.

Murder - "The taking of human life with premeditated malice by a person of a sane mind."This is necessary to constitute murder now, but the word used here denotes all manslaughter, or taking human life, except what occurs as the punishment of crime. It is scarcely necessary to show that this was common among the Gentiles. It has prevailed in all communities, but it was particularly prevalent in Rome. It is necessary only to refer the reader to the common events in the Roman history of assassinations, deaths by poison, and the destruction of slaves. But in a special manner the charge was properly alleged against them, on account of the inhuman contests of the gladiators in the amphitheaters. These were common at Rome, and constituted a favorite amusement with the people. Originally captives, slaves, and criminals were trained up for combat; but it afterward became common for even Roman citizens to engage in these bloody combats, and Nero at one show exhibited no less than four hundred senators and six hundred knights as gladiators.

The fondness for this bloody spectacle continued until the reign of Constantine the Great, the first Christian emperor, by whom they were abolished about six hundred years after the original institution. "Several hundred, perhaps several thousand, victims were annually slaughtered in the great cities of the empire."Gibbon’ s Decline and Fall, chapter xxx. 404 a.d. As an instance of what might occur in this inhuman spectacle, we may refer to what took place on such an occasion in the reign of Probus (281 a.d.). During his triumph, near 700 gladiators were reserved to shed each other’ s blood for the amusement of the Roman people. But "disdaining to shed their blood for the amusement of the populace, they killed their keepers, broke from their place of confinement, and filled the streets of Rome with blood and confusion."Gibbon’ s Decline and Fall, chapter 12. With such views and with such spectacles before them, it is not wonderful that murder was regarded as a matter of little consequence, and hence, this crime prevailed throughout the world.

Debate - Our word debate does not commonly imply evil. It denotes commonly discussion for elucidating truth; or for maintaining a proposition, as the debates in Parliament, etc. But the word in the original meant also contention, strife, altercation, connected with anger and heated zeal; Rom 13:13; 1Co 1:11; 1Co 3:3; 2Co 12:20; Gal 5:20; Phi 1:15; 1Ti 6:4; Tit 3:9. This contention and strife would, of course, follow from malice and covetousness, etc.

Deceit - This denotes fraud, falsehood, etc. That this was common is also plain. The Cretans are testified by one of the Greek poets to have been always liars. Tit 1:12. Juvenal charges the same thing on the Romans. (Sat. iii. 41.) "What,"says he, "should I do at Rome? I cannot lie."Intimating that if he were there, it would follow, of course, that he would be expected to be false. The same thing is still true. Writers on India tell us that the word of a Hindu even under oath is not to be regarded; and the same thing occurs in most pagan countries.

Malignity - This word signifies here, not malignity in general, but that particular species of it which consists in misinterpreting the words or actions of others, or putting the worst construction on their conduct.

Whisperers - Those who secretly, and in a sly manner, by hints and inuendoes, detract from others, or excite suspicion of them. It does not mean those who openly calumniate, but that more dangerous class who give hints of evil in others, who affect great knowledge, and communicate the evil report under an injunction of secrecy, knowing that it will be divulged. This class of people abounds everywhere, and there is scarcely any one more dangerous to the peace or happiness of society.

Barnes: Rom 1:30 - -- Backbiters - Those Who calumniate, slander, or speak ill of those who are absent. Whisperers declare secretly, and with great reserve, the supp...

Backbiters - Those Who calumniate, slander, or speak ill of those who are absent. Whisperers declare secretly, and with great reserve, the supposed faults of others. Backbiters proclaim them publicly and avowedly.

Haters of God - There is no charge which can be brought against people more severe than this. It is the highest possible crime; yet it is a charge which the conduct of people will abundantly justify, and the truth of which all those experience who are brought to see their true character. To an awakened sinner there is often nothing more plain and painful than that he is a hater of God. His heart rises up against Him, and his Law, and his plan of saving people; and he deeply feels that nothing can subdue this but the mighty power of the Holy One. This is a charge which is not unfrequently brought against people in the Bible; see Joh 7:7; Joh 15:18, Joh 15:24-25; Joh 3:19-20. Surely, if this be the native character of man, then it is "far gone from original righteousness."No more striking proof of depravity could be given; and in no creed or confession of faith is there a more painful and humiliating representation given of human wickedness, than in this declaration of an inspired apostle, that people are by nature haters of God.

Despiteful - This word denotes those who abuse, or treat with unkindness or disdain, those who are present. Whisperers and backbiters are those who calumniate those who are absent.

Proud - Pride is well understood. It is an inordinate self-esteem; an unreasonable conceit of one’ s superiority in talents, beauty, wealth, accomplishments, etc. (Webster). Of the existence of this everywhere, there is abundant proof. And it was particularly striking among the ancients. The sect of the Stoics was distinguished for it, and this was the general character of their philosophers. People will be proud where they suppose none are superior; and it is only the religion that reveals a great and infinite God, and that teaches that all blessings are his gift, and that he has given us the station which we occupy, that will produce true humility. We may add, that the system of paganism did not disclose the wickedness of the heart, and that rids was a main reason why they were elevated in self-esteem.

Boasters - Those who arrogate to themselves what they do not possess, and glory on it. This is closely connected with pride. A man who has an inordinate self-conceit, will not be slow to proclaim his own merits to those around him.

Inventors of evil things - This doubtless refers to their seeking to find out new arts or plans to practice evil; new devices to gratify their lusts and passions; new forms of luxury, and vice, etc. So intent were they on practicing evil, so resolved to gratify their passions, that the mind was excited to discover new modes of gratification. In cities of luxury and vice, this has always been done. Vices change their form, people become satiated, and they are obliged to resort to some new form. The passions cease to be gratified with old forms of indulgence, and consequently people are obliged to resort to new devices to pamper their appetites, and to rekindle their dying passions to a flame. This was eminently true of ancient Rome; a place where all the arts of luxury, all the devices of passion, all the designs of splendid gratification, were called forth to excite and pamper the evil passions of people. Their splendid entertainments, their games, their theaters, their sports - cruel and bloody - were little else than new and ever-varying inventions of evil things to gratify the desires of lust and of pride.

Disobedient to parents - This expresses the idea that they did not show to parents that honor, respect, and attention which was due. This has been a crime of paganism in every age; and though among the Romans the duty of honoring parents was enjoined by the laws, yet it is not improbable that the duty was often violated, and that parents were treated with great neglect and even contempt. "Disobedience to parents was punished by the Jewish Law with death, and with the Hindus it is attended with the loss of the child’ s inheritance. The ancient Greeks considered the neglect of it to be extremely impious, and attended with the most certain effects of divine vengeance. Solon ordered all persons who refused to make due provision for their parents to be punished with infamy, and the same penalty was incurred for personal violence toward them."Kent’ s Commentaries on American Law, vol. ii. p. 207; compare Virg. AEniad , ix. 283. The feelings of pride and haughtiness would lead to disregard of parents. It might also be felt that to provide for them when aged and infirm was a burden; and hence, there would arise disregard for their wants, and probably open opposition to their wishes, as being the demands of petulance and age. It has been one characteristic of paganism every where, that it leaves children to treat their parents with neglect. Among the Sandwich islanders it was customary, when a parent was old, infirm, and sick beyond the hope of recovery, for his own children to bury him alive; and it has been the common custom in India for children to leave their aged parents to perish on the banks of the Ganges.

Barnes: Rom 1:31 - -- Without understanding - Inconsiderate, or foolish; see Rom 1:21-22. Covenant breakers - Perfidious; false to their contracts. Withou...

Without understanding - Inconsiderate, or foolish; see Rom 1:21-22.

Covenant breakers - Perfidious; false to their contracts.

Without natural affections - This expression denotes the lack of affectionate regard toward their children. The attachment of parents to children is one of the strongest in nature, and nothing can overcome it but the most confirmed and established wickedness. And yet the apostle charges on the pagan generally the lack of this affection. He doubtless refers here to the practice so common among pagans of exposing their children, or putting them to death. This crime, so abhorrent to all the feelings of humanity, was common among the pagan, and is still. The Canaanites, we are told Psa 106:37-38, "sacrificed their sons and their daughters unto devils, and shed innocent blood, even the blood of their sons and their daughters, whom they sacrificed unto the idols of Canaan."Manasseh among the Jews imitated their example, and introduced the horrid custom of sacrificing children to Moloch, and set the example by offering his own; 2Ch 33:6.

Among the ancient Persians it was a common custom to bury children alive. In most of the Grecian states, infanticide was not merely permitted, but actually enforced by law. The Spartan lawgiver expressly ordained that every child that was born should be examined by the ancient men of the tribe, and that if found weak or deformed, should be thrown into a deep cavern at the foot of Mount Taygetus. Aristotle, in his work on government, enjoins the exposure of children that are naturally feeble and deformed, in order to prevent an excess of population. But among all the nations of antiquity, the Romans were the most unrelenting in their treatment of infants. Romulus obliged the citizens to bring up all their male children, and the oldest of the females, proof that the others were to be destroyed. The Roman father had an absolute right over the life of his child, and we have abundant proof that that right was often exercised.

Romulus expressly authorized the destruction of all children that were deformed, only requiring the parents to exhibit them to their five nearest neighbors, and to obtain their consent to their death. The law of the Twelve Tables enacted in the 301st year of Rome, sanctioned the same barbarous practice. Minucius Felix thus describes the barbarity of the Romans in this respect: "I see you exposing your infants to wild beasts and birds, or strangling them after the most miserable manner."(chapter xxx.) Pliny the older defends the right of parents to destroy their children, upon the ground of its being necessary in order to preserve the population within proper bounds. Tertullian, in his apology, expresses himself boldly on this subject. "How many of you (addressing himself to the Roman people, and to the governors of cities and provinces) might I deservedly charge with infant murder; and not only so, but among the different kinds of death, for choosing some of the cruelest for their own children, such as drowning, or starving with cold or hunger, or exposing to the mercy of dogs; dying by the sword being too sweet a death for children."

Nor was this practice arrested in the Roman government until the time of Constantine, the first Christian prince. The Phoenicians and Carthaginians were in the habit of sacrificing infants to the gods. It may be added that the crime is no less common among modern pagan nations. No less than 9000 children are exposed in Pekin in China annually. Persons are employed by the police to go through the city with carts every morning to pick up all the children that may have been thrown out during the night. The bodies are carried to a common pit without the walls of the city, into which all, whether dead or living, are promiscuously thrown. (Barrow’ s Travels in China, p. 113, Amos ed.) Among the Hindus the practice is perhaps still more common. In the provinces of Cutch and Guzerat alone the number of infantile murders amounted, according to the lowest calculation in 1807, to 3,000 annually; according to another calculation, to 30,000.

Females are almost the only victims. (Buchanan’ s Researches in Asia, Eng. ed. p. 49. Ward’ s View of the Hindus.) In Otaheite, previously to the conversion of the people to Christianity. it was estimated that at least two-thirds of the children were destroyed. (Turnbull’ s Voyage round the World in 1800, 2, 3, and 4.) The natives of New South Wales were in the habit of burying the child with its mother, if she should happen to die. (Collins’ Account of the Colony of New South Wales, p. 124, 125.) Among the Hottentots, infanticide is a common crime. "The altars of the Mexicans were continually drenched in the blood of infants."In Peru, no less than two hundred infants were sacrificed on occasion of the coronation of the Inca. The authority for these melancholy statements may be seen in Beck’ s Medical Jurisprudence, vol. i. 18-197, ed. 1823; see also Robertson’ s History of America, p. 221, ed. 1821. This is a specimen of the views and feelings of the pagan world; and the painful narrative might be continued to almost any length. After this statement, it cannot surely be deemed a groundless charge when the apostle accused them of being destitute of natural affection.

Implacable - This word properly denotes those who will not be reconciled where there is a quarrel; or who pursue the offender with unyielding revenge. It denotes an unforgiving temper; and was doubtless common among the ancients, as it is among all pagan people. The aborigines of America have given the most striking manifestation of this that the world has known. It is well known that among them, neither time nor distance will obliterate the memory of an offence; and that the avenger will pursue the offender over hills and streams, and through heat or snow, happy if he may at last, though at the expiration of years, bury the tomahawk in the head of his victim, though it may be at the expense of his own life. See Robertson’ s America, book iv. Section lxxiii. - lxxxi.

Unmerciful - Destitute of compassion. As a proof of this, we may remark that no provisions for the poor or the infirm were made among the pagan. The sick and the infirm were cast out, and doomed to depend on the stinted charity of individuals. Pure religion, only, opens the heart to the appeals of want; and nothing but Christianity has yet expanded the hearts of people to make public provisions for the poor, the ignorant, and the afflicted.

Barnes: Rom 1:32 - -- Who knowing - That the Gentiles had a moral sense, or were capable of knowing the will of God in this case, is clear from Rom 2:14-15. The mean...

Who knowing - That the Gentiles had a moral sense, or were capable of knowing the will of God in this case, is clear from Rom 2:14-15. The means which they had of arriving at the knowledge of God were, their own reason, their conscience, and an observation of the effects of depravity.

The judgment of God - The word "judgment"here denotes the declared sentiment of God that such things deserved death. It does not mean his inflictions, or his statutes or precepts; but it means that God thought or judged that they which did such things ought to die. As they were aware of this, it showed their guilt in still persevering in the face of his judgments, and his solemn purpose to inflict punishment.

Were worthy of death - The word "death"in the Scriptures is often used to denote punishment. But it does not mean here that these deserved capital punishment from the civil magistrate, but that they knew they were evil, and offensive to God, and deserving of punishment from his hand; see Joh 8:51; Rom 5:12-19.

Have pleasure ... - They delight in those who commit sin; and hence, encourage them in it, and excite them to it. This was a grievous aggravation of the offence. It greatly heightens guilt when we excite others to do it, and seduce them from the ways of innocence. That this was the case with the pagan there can be no doubt. People do not commit sin often alone. They need the countenance of others. They "join hand in hand,"and become confederate in iniquity. All social sins are of this class; and most of those which the apostle mentioned were sins of this character.

If this revolting and melancholy picture of the pagan world was a true representation, then it was clear that there was need of some other plan of religion. And that it was true has already in part been seen. In the conclusion of this chapter we may make a few additional observations.

1. The charges which the apostle makes here were evidently those which were well known. He does not even appeal to their writings, as he does on some other occasions, for proof; compare Tit 1:12. So well known were they, that there was no need of proof. A writer would not advance charges in this manner unless he was confident that they were well-founded, and could not be denied.

2. They are abundantly sustained by the pagan writers themselves. This we have in part seen In addition we may adduce the testimony of two Roman writers respecting the state of things at Rome in the time of the apostle. Livy says of the age of Augustus, in some respects the brightest period of the Roman history, "Rome has increased by her virtues until now, when we can neither bear our vices nor their remedy."Preface to his History. Seneca, one of the purest moralists of Rome, who died in 65 a.d., says of his own time, "All is full of criminality and vice; indeed much more of these is committed than can be remedied by force. A monstrous contest of abandoned wickedness is carried on. The lust of sin increases daily; and shame is daily more and more extinguished. Discarding respect for all that is good and sacred, lust rushes on wherever it will. Vice no longer hides itself. It stalks forth before all eyes. So public has abandoned wickedness become, and so openly does it flame up in the minds of all, that innocence is no longer seldom, but has wholly ceased to exist."Seneca de Ira, ii. 8. Further authorities of this kind could be easily given, but these will show that the apostle Paul did not speak at random when he charged them with these enormous crimes.

3. If this was the state of things, then it was clear that there was need of another plan of saving people. It will be remembered that, in these charges, the apostle speaks of the most enlightened and refined nations of antiquity; and especially that he speaks of the Romans at the very height of their power, intelligence, and splendor. The experiment whether man could save himself by his own works, had been fairly made. After all that their greatest philosophers could do, this was the result, and it is clear that there was need of some better plan than this. More profound and laborious philosophers than had arisen, the pagan world could not hope to see; more refinement and civilization than then existed, the world could not expect to behold under paganism. At this time, when the experiment had been made for four thousand years, and when the inefficacy of all human means, even under the most favorable circumstances, to reform mankind, had been tried, the gospel was preached to people. It disclosed another plan; and its effects were seen at once throughout the most abandoned states and cities of the ancient world.

4. If this was the state of things in the ancient pagan world, the same may be expected to be the state of paganism still. And it is so. The account given here of ancient pagans would apply substantially still to the pagan world. The same things have been again and again witnessed in China, and Hindostan, and Africa, the Sandwich islands, and in aboriginal America. It would be easy to multiply proofs almost without end of this: and to this day the pagan world is exhibiting substantially the same characteristics that it was in the time of Paul.

5. There was need of some better religion than the pagan. After all that infidels and deists have said of the sufficiency of natural religion, yet here is the sad result. This shows what man can do, and these facts will demonstrate forever that there was need of some other religion than that furnished by the light of nature.

6. The account in this chapter shows the propriety of missionary exertions. So Paul judged; and so we should judge still. If this be the state of the world, and if Christianity, as all Christians believe, contains the remedy for all these evils, then it is wisdom and benevolence to send it to them. And it is not wisdom or benevolence to withhold it from them. Believing as they do, Christians are bound to send the gospel to the pagan world. It is on this principle that modern missions to the pagan are established; and if the toils of the apostles were demanded to spread the gospel, then are the labors of Christians now. If it was right, and wise, and proper for them to go to other lands to proclaim "the unsearchable riches of Christ,"then it is equally proper and wise to do it now. If there was danger that the pagan world then would perish without the gospel, there is equal danger that the pagan world will perish now.

7. If it should be said that many of these things are practiced now in nations which are called Christian, and that, therefore, the charge of the apostle that this was the effect of paganism could not be well-founded, we may reply,

(1) That this is true, too true. But this very fact shows the deep and dreadful depravity of human nature. If such things exist in lands that have a revelation, what mush have been the state of those countries that had none of its restraints and influences? But,

(2) These things do not exist where religion exerts its influence. They are not in the bosom of the Christian church. They are not practiced by Christians. And the effect of the Christian religion, so far as it has influence, is to call off people from such vices, and to make them holy and pure in their life. Let religion exert its full influence on any nominally Christian nation, and these things would cease. Let it send its influence into other lands, and the world, the now polluted world, would become pure before God.

Poole: Rom 1:2 - -- Which he had promised the meaning is not, that the history of the gospel was promised by the prophets, but that Jesus Christ, with all his benefits, ...

Which he had promised the meaning is not, that the history of the gospel was promised by the prophets, but that Jesus Christ, with all his benefits, (which is the direct subject of the gospel history and revelation), was promised or foreshown by them.

Afore this word is added to prevent the imputation of novelty: q.d. Let none object and say, the gospel is a new and modern doctrine; for it was promised or foretold of old, by all the prophets which have been since the world began, Luk 1:70 .

By his prophets: by prophets we may understand, not only those that were commonly dignified with that title, but all those also whom God condescended to converse with in a familiar manner, revealing his secrets to them: that such are called prophets, see Gen 20:7 Psa 105:15 .

In the holy Scriptures to wit, of the Old Testament; he hath respect to the oracles and promises therein contained, concerning Christ and his kingdom; chiefly to Gen 3:15 49:8,10 De 18:18 Psa 16:10 Psa 22:1-31 40:1-17 110:1 Isa 7:14 9:6 53:1-12 63:1-3 Dan 9:24-26 Mic 5:2 Zec 9:9 Mal 3:1 , &c. He hereby intimates, that there is a great harmony and consent betwixt the prophets and apostles, the doctrine of the Old Testament and the New; see Luk 24:44 Joh 12:16 Act 10:43 . Our modern translators include this verse in a parenthesis; the ancients did not.

Poole: Rom 1:3 - -- Concerning his Son Jesus Christ our Lord: this phrase either respects the Holy Scriptures, mentioned immediately before in Rom 1:2 ; the sum and subs...

Concerning his Son Jesus Christ our Lord: this phrase either respects the Holy Scriptures, mentioned immediately before in Rom 1:2 ; the sum and substance of them is, concerning the Messiah, the Son of God: or else it respects the gospel, that was spoken of in the Rom 1:1,2 being only a parenthesis, as was before hinted; then the meaning is, that the apostle Paul was separated to the gospel of God, which only or mainly concerns his Son Jesus Christ. And this seems to show the excellency of the gospel, that it doth not treat of vulgar and ordinary matters. as of the gods of the Gentiles, or the actions of Alexander, Caesar, the Scipios, or such like heroes; but of the Son of God himself.

Which was made i.e. as he afterwards expresseth it, according to the flesh, or his human nature: in regard of his Divine subsistence, he was begotten and not made; in regard of his manhood, he was made and not begotten. When he says the Son of God was made, & c., it is undeniably implied, that he did exist before his incarnation, and was the Son of God before he was the Son of man. This place proves clearly these two truths:

1. That in the person of Jesus Christ there are two natures.

2. That there is between these a communication of properties; here the Son of God is said to be made of the seed of David; and elsewhere the Son of man is said to have come down from heaven: see Joh 3:13 : cf. Joh 6:62 Act 20:28 1Co 2:8 .

Of the seed of David i.e. of the virgin Mary, who was of David’ s lineage and posterity; the promise was expressly, that the Messiah should be of the fruit of his loins, Act 2:30 , compared saith Isa 11:1 Jer 23:5 Eze 34:24 . Yea, this promise was so fully known to the Jews, that when they spake of the Messiah, they called him the Son of David: see Mat 21:9 22:42 Mar 10:47,48 Joh 7:42 . Hence it is that the evangelists, Matthew and Luke, are so careful and industrious to prove, that the virgin Mary, and Joseph to whom she was espoused, did come of David’ s line and race.

Poole: Rom 1:4 - -- Not made the Son of God, as he was said before to be made of the seed of David; but declared or demonstrated, to be the Son of God With power...

Not made the Son of God, as he was said before to be made of the seed of David; but

declared or demonstrated, to be the Son of God

With power: this refers either to the word declared, and then the meaning is, he was powerfully or miraculously declared to be the Son of God; the Greek word ordinarily signifies a miracle in the New Testament: or else it refers to the last words, the Son of God; and then the sense is, he was declared to be the powerful and omnipotent Son of God, of the same power and majesty with the Father.

By the spirit of holiness some would understand the Third Person in the blessed Trinity, which is often called the Holy Spirit, and here the Spirit of holiness; but others, and they more rightly, do understand the Deity and Divine nature of Christ; this is called the Spirit, 1Ti 3:16 1Pe 3:18 ; and the eternal Spirit, Heb 9:14 and here it is called the Spirit of holiness, or the most Holy Spirit, and that, probably, because of its effects; for thereby he sanctified his natural body, and still sanctifies his mystical body, the church. That this is the meaning is evident, by the opposition between the flesh and the Spirit: as according to the flesh, in the former verse, did signify his human nature; so according to the Spirit, in this verse, doth signify his Divine nature. See the like antithesis in 1Ti 3:16 1Pe 3:18 .

By the resurrection from the dead: because it is said, the resurrection of the dead, not from the dead, some would understand the words of Lazarus, and others, who by the power of Christ were raised from the dead; and others would understand the words of those who were raised with Christ, when he himself arose: see Mat 27:52,53 . But in Scripture the resurrection of the dead, is put for the resurrection from the dead; see 1Co 15:42 Heb 6:2 ; and hereby is meant the resurrection of Christ himself: he rose again from the dead, and thereby declared or manifested himself to be the Son of God with power: see Joh 2:19,21 5:26 10:18 1Co 15:4 . And though it be said in Scripture, that the Father raised him from the dead, Act 2:24 13:30,33 ; yet that doth not hinder but by his own power he raised himself; seeing the Father and he were one, and the works of the Three Persons in one and the same Essence are undivided.

Poole: Rom 1:5 - -- By whom or of whom; by whom, as Mediator, or of whom, as Author and Giver. Grace and apostleship: some make these two distinct gifts; the one commo...

By whom or of whom; by whom, as Mediator, or of whom, as Author and Giver.

Grace and apostleship: some make these two distinct gifts; the one common, which is grace; the other special, which is apostleship: others think, that, by an hendiadis, he means the grace of apostleship; which he so calls, because it was conferred upon him, not for any desert of his, but by the mere favour and free grace of God. It is his manner to call his apostleship by the name or style of grace: see Rom 15:15 Gal 2:9 Eph 3:2,8 .

For obedience to the faith you have the same phrase, Rom 16:26 , and there it is rendered for the obedience of faith. By faith here some understand the gospel or doctrine of faith; it hath this sense, Act 6:7 Jud 1:3 , &c.; and then the meaning is, God, of his mere grace, hath given me this office, that I might bring the nations to believe, and work in them obedience to the doctrine of the gospel. Others understand the grace of faith; and then the meaning is, I have received this office, that I might bring the nations to believe, and so to obey the gospel. Therefore obedience is joined with faith, because by faith we obey the commands of God; and faith itself consists in obedience, and is the great command of the gospel.

Among all nations according to the general commission, Mat 28:19 , and a more special commission to this apostle; see Act 9:15 Gal 2:7,8 1Ti 2:7 2Ti 1:11 .

For his name that the nations might believe in his name; so some: others suppose these words are added to declare the end of Paul’ s preaching and apostleship, which was to set forth the glory and praise of Christ: see 2Th 1:12 .

Poole: Rom 1:6 - -- Among whom are ye also the Romans are in this number, and a part of the nations to whom I have a commission, and for whom I have received the grace o...

Among whom are ye also the Romans are in this number, and a part of the nations to whom I have a commission, and for whom I have received the grace of apostleship. He adds this, to show his warrant for writing to them, he did it by virtue of his office; as also to humble them; for though they were Romans, and such as bore the greatest sway in the world, yet they were formerly pagans and idolaters.

The called of Jesus Christ: though such were some of you, to wit, heathen idolaters; yet now you are Christians, and the called of Jesus Christ: called outwardly by his word, and inwardly by his Spirit. By effectual calling you are become his disciples and followers.

Poole: Rom 1:7 - -- To all that be in Rome he doth not direct this Epistle to all that there inhabited, as to the emperor and senate, &c.; but to the church, and all the...

To all that be in Rome he doth not direct this Epistle to all that there inhabited, as to the emperor and senate, &c.; but to the church, and all the Christians there, as appears by the two following phrases. He wrote not to those only which were Romans by nation, but to all the faithful, whether Jews or Gentiles, bond or free, for they were all one and alike in Christ. They are deceived that think this Epistle, because directed to the Romans, was written in Latin. The Greek tongue was well understood in that city. Juvenal calls Rome a Greek city, because the inhabitants, as well natives as strangers, did some of them use, and most of them understand, that language.

Called to be saints or, called saints; though there might be hypocrites amongst them, yet they were denominated from the better part. The Jews of old were only accounted a holy nation or people; and the Gentiles, common or unclean; but now that difference is taken away, faith in Jesus Christ, and effectual calling, makes the Gentiles holy as well as the Jews. The name saint doth not denote a perfection in holiness, but one that is devoted and consecrated to God, who is holy in heart and life, though he hath many imperfections.

Grace to you, and peace: under these two words, grace and peace, are comprehended all spiritual and temporal blessings. It is a usual salutation or benediction in the Epistles of this apostle: see 1Co 1:3 2Co 1:2 Gal 1:3 Eph 1:2 Phi 1:2 Col 1:2 2Th 1:2 1Ti 1:2 Tit 1:4 Phm 1:3 . See the like in the Epistles of Peter, 1Pe 1:2 2Pe 1:2 . See also 2Jo 1:3 Rev 1:4 .

From God our Father, and the Lord Jesus Christ: why is there no mention made here of the Holy Ghost?

Answer. Because he is implied in his gifts: grace and peace are the fruits and gifts of the Holy Spirit. In other salutations the Holy Ghost is expressed; see 2Co 13:14 ; and here, when the Father and Son are named, he is plainly implied.

Poole: Rom 1:8 - -- First here, is not a word of order, for there follows no secondly, &c.; but it serves to show, that here the Epistle begins, for all before was but a...

First here, is not a word of order, for there follows no secondly, &c.; but it serves to show, that here the Epistle begins, for all before was but a preface or inscription: q.d. In the first place. See the like, 1Ti 2:1 .

Throughout the whole world that is, through many parts of it; it is a figurative speech: see the like, Joh 12:19 . Or else, by the whole world may be understood the Roman empire, which ruled at that time over a great part of the known world. See the like, Luk 2:1 . Besides, there was a resort to Rome from all parts of the world, and so this report might be diffused far and near. The faith of the gospel at Rome made it more famous than all its victories and triumphs. Oh, how is Rome degenerated! We may take up the complaint concerning her which we find, Isa 1:11,12 . The Romanists urge this place to prove Rome the mother church; but without reason: the church of Thessalonica had as high a eulogy: see 1Th 1:8 .

Poole: Rom 1:9 - -- God is my witness in these words there is the force, if not the form, of an oath. See the like, 2Co 1:18 11:31 Gal 1:20 . His great love and care of ...

God is my witness in these words there is the force, if not the form, of an oath. See the like, 2Co 1:18 11:31 Gal 1:20 . His great love and care of them was a hidden thing, and known only to God; to him therefore he appeals for the truth thereof. Oaths, in certain cases, are allowable under the New Testament, as well as the Old.

With my spirit i.e. sincerely, or with my whole heart: see Eph 6:6 2Ti 1:3 .

Without ceasing i.e. as often as he prayed. This was a great indication of his hearty affection to them.

Poole: Rom 1:10 - -- Making request this was one thing he requested of God, that what he had long desired and designed might happily (if it seemed good in God’ s sig...

Making request this was one thing he requested of God, that what he had long desired and designed might happily (if it seemed good in God’ s sight) be at last accomplished, that he might come in person to them. This desire of Paul to see the Romans might be one cause of that appeal which he made to Rome, Act 25:10,11 ,

By the will of God he adds this, because, in publishing the gospel, he followed the order which God, by his Spirit, prescribed him: see Act 16:7,9,10 .

Poole: Rom 1:11 - -- He declares his end in desiring to see them; it was not his own profit, but their edification. By some spiritual gift he means some one or other o...

He declares his end in desiring to see them; it was not his own profit, but their edification.

By some spiritual gift he means some one or other of those gifts of the Spirit, of which particular mention is made, 1Co 12:7-11 .

To the end ye may be established: q.d. I do not intend to bring any new doctrine to you, but to confirm and establish you in that which you have already heard and received. Establishing grace is that which all Christians stand in need of. See Rom 16:25 1Th 3:8,13 2Th 2:15-17 .

Poole: Rom 1:12 - -- This is added to qualify what he had said before, lest he should seem to arrogate too much to himself; he tells them, he hoped not only to comfort t...

This is added to qualify what he had said before, lest he should seem to arrogate too much to himself; he tells them, he hoped not only to comfort them, but to be comforted by them. The meanest of Christ’ s members may contribute somewhat to the edifying even of an apostle. The apostle John did hope to be quickened and comforted by the graces of a woman and her children, 2Jo 1:12 . Great is the benefit of the communion of saints.

By the mutual faith both of you and me i.e. by the faith which you and I have in Jesus Christ; which he elsewhere calls the common faith, and the faith of God’ s elect. All true comfort springs from faith.

Poole: Rom 1:13 - -- He prevents a cavil; they might say, If Paul hath such a longing desire to see us, why doth he not come to us? To this he answers, it was not for wa...

He prevents a cavil; they might say, If Paul hath such a longing desire to see us, why doth he not come to us? To this he answers, it was not for want of will or affection; for he often intended and attempted it.

But was let hitherto either by Satan, as 1Th 2:18 ; or by the Holy Spirit otherwise disposing of him, as Act 16:6,7 Ro 15:22 . It is possible that he might be hindered also by his own infirmities, or by others’ necessities and entreaties, Act 10:48 16:15 28:14 .

That I might have some fruit i.e. of my ministry and calling, as the apostle of the uncircumcision. He hoped the gospel he should preach among them would have good success, and bring forth fruit in them, as it had done in other churches of the Gentiles. See Col 1:6 .

Poole: Rom 1:14 - -- I am debtor as being obliged by virtue of my calling, and as being intrusted by God with talents to that purpose. You are not beholden to me for this...

I am debtor as being obliged by virtue of my calling, and as being intrusted by God with talents to that purpose. You are not beholden to me for this desire, as if it were an arbitrary favour, for it is my bounden duty.

Both to the Greeks, and to the Barbarians i.e. to all nations, which he divides into these two sorts, Greeks and Barbarians. The Jews he mentions not, because he was the doctor of the Gentiles.

Both to the wise, and to the unwise by these he understands particular persons among the Greeks and Barbarians, for there were among either of them some wise, and some unwise. The gospel is adapted to all sorts of persons, whether wise or simple.

Poole: Rom 1:15 - -- q.d. I have preached it at Antioch, at Athens, at Ephesus, at Corinth, &c.; and I: am ready (if God permit) to preach it in the most splendid city o...

q.d. I have preached it at Antioch, at Athens, at Ephesus, at Corinth, &c.; and I: am ready (if God permit) to preach it in the most splendid city of Rome likewise. So the reason is not in myself, or in my own will, why I have not come to you all this while.

Poole: Rom 1:16 - -- Though Rome be the head of the empire, and the Romans bear the name of wise and learned persons; and though the gospel hath the show of simplicity, ...

Though Rome be the head of the empire, and the Romans bear the name of wise and learned persons; and though the gospel hath the show of simplicity, and is foolishness to the wise men of this world; yet

I am not ashamed to own and publish this gospel of Christ I do not shrink back, and withdraw myself, as men do from these things whereof they are ashamed. Neither indeed need I, because, how mean soever it seems to be to carnal eyes, yet

it is the power of God unto salvation & c.; not the essential power of God, but the organical power. See the like, 1Co 1:18 . The meaning is, it is a powerful means ordained of God for this purpose. Touching the efficacy and excellent power of the gospel for the conversion and salvation of the souls of men, see Isa 53:1 1Co 4:15 2Co 4:7 2Co 10:4,5 Heb 4:12 Jam 1:21 .

To every one that believed the gospel is offered unto all, but it profiteth unto salvation only those that believe; as a medicine is only effectual to those who receive or apply it.

To the Jew first, and also to the Greek the gospel was first to be published to the Jews, and then to the Gentiles, whom he here calls Greeks: see Luk 24:47 Act 1:8 . This order the apostles accordingly kept and observed, Act 13:46 .

Poole: Rom 1:17 - -- It will give light to this whole Epistle, to explain what is here meant by the righteousness of God Some do thereby understand the whole doctrine ...

It will give light to this whole Epistle, to explain what is here meant by

the righteousness of God Some do thereby understand the whole doctrine of salvation and eternal life, which is revealed in the gospel; and they make it the same with the faith of God, Rom 3:3 , and with the truth of God, Rom 3:7 . Others, by the righteousness of God, do understand that righteousness whereby a man is justified, or stands just and righteous in the sight of God: and it is called the righteousness of God, to distinguish it from our own righteousness, Rom 10:3 , and because it is appointed, approved, and accepted by him, it being such as he himself can find no fault with. Further, it is called

the righteousness of God because it was performed by him, who is God as well as man, and imputed unto us: hence he is said to be made righteousness unto us, and we are said to be made the righteousness of God in him; we having his righteousness, as he had our sins, viz. by imputation. This is often called the righteousness of faith, because by faith it is apprehended and applied. And again, it is called the law of righteousness, Rom 9:31 , in opposition to that law of righteousness whereby the unbelieving Jews sought to be justified.

Revealed; the law of God discovers no suchway of justifying a sinner, nor is it taught by reason or philosophy: the gospel only makes a revelation of it; which occasioned the apostle’ s glorying in it.

From faith to faith: this apostle seems to delight in such repetitions, and there is an elegancy in them: see Rom 6:19 2Co 2:16 2Co 3:18 . The words are variously interpreted: from the fiath of the Old Testament to the faith of the New; so that no person ever was or shall be justified in any other way. Or, from a lesser faith to a greater; not noting two faiths, but one and the same faith increasing to perfection. He saith not, from faith to works, or from works to faith; but from faith to faith, i.e. only by faith. The words to be must be understood: q.d. The gospel reveals the righteousness of God to be from faith to faith. The beginning, the continuance, the accomplishment of our justification is wholly absolved by faith.

The just shall live by faith: some refer these words, by faith, to the subject of this proposition, the just; and thus they render it: The just by faith shall live; and so read, the foregoing proposition is the better proved thereby. There is some diffculty to understand the fitness of this testimony to prove the conclusion in hand; for it is evident, that the prophet Habakkuk, in whom these words are found, doth speak of a temporal preservation; and what is that to eternal life?

Answer. The Babylonian captivity figured out our spiritual bondage under sin and Satan; and deliverance from that calamity did shadow forth our deliverance from hell, to be procured by Christ: compare Isa 40:2-4 , with Mat 3:3 . Again, general sentences applied to particular cases, are not thereby restrained to those particulars, but still retain the generality of their nature: see Mat 19:6 . Again, one and the same faith apprehends and gives us interest in all the promises of God; and as by it we live in temporal dangers, so by it we are freed from eternal destruction.

Poole: Rom 1:18 - -- He proceeds to prove the principal proposition laid down in the foregoing verse; the causal particle for implies as much. Men must be justified by...

He proceeds to prove the principal proposition laid down in the foregoing verse; the causal particle for implies as much. Men must be justified by the righteousness of God, because they have no righteousness of their own to justify them, they themselves are all unrighteous. This he proves both of the Gentiles and Jews. He begins with the Gentiles, and proves it upon them, from this verse to Rom 2:17 ; and then he proves it upon the Jews also, from thence to the end of the 3rd chapter. Rom 2:18-3:31

The wrath of God is revealed it is revealed in the word of God, or rather, by the judgments which he inflicteth.

From heaven i.e. from God in heaven. Plagues and judgments spring not out of the dust, proceed not originally from second causes, much less do they come by chance.

Against all ungodliness and unrighteousness of men: the abstract is put for the concrete; he means unrighteous and ungodly men; but he chooseth this way of speaking, because God, when he punisheth, aims at the sins of men; and would not punish their persons, but for their sins. By ungodliness understand sins against the first table, which are mentioned Rom 1:21,23 : by unrighteousness sins against the second, of which there is mention at large, from Rom 1:26 to the end of the chapter.

Who hold the truth in unrighteousness: by truth, understand all that light which is left in man since the fall. There are in all men some common notions of God, his nature and will; some common principles also of equity and charity towards men, which nature itself teacheth, and upon which the consciences of the Gentiles did accuse or excuse them. These natural notions concerning God and their neighbour they did not obey and follow, but wickedly suppressed them. They imprisoned the truth which they acknowledged, that they might sin the more securely. The metaphor is taken from tyrants, who oppress the innocent, and imprison them: so the Gentiles did by the truth which they had by nature, they kept it in and under.

Poole: Rom 1:19 - -- That which may be known of God or, that which is knowable of God, viz. by the light of nature. The apostle, by a prolepis, prevents an objection whic...

That which may be known of God or, that which is knowable of God, viz. by the light of nature. The apostle, by a prolepis, prevents an objection which some might make in excuse of the Gentiles: how could they sufficate or suppress the truth, seeing they wanted the Scripture, and were without the knowledge of it? To this he answers, that they were not wholly without knowledge, for that which might be known of God was manifest in them, and revealed to them.

Is manifest in them i.e. in their heart and minds; see Rom 2:15 : or, to and among them; as appears by many of their learned writers, who have left behind them many clear discourses, and wise essays and sayings, about this matter, though they themselves did act contrary thereunto.

For God hath showed it unto them i.e. as before, by the light of nature in their consciences, or by the consideration of the creatures, as it follows in the next verse.

Poole: Rom 1:20 - -- Because it might be further objected in behalf of the Gentiles, that the notions of God imprinted in their nature are so weak, that they may be well...

Because it might be further objected in behalf of the Gentiles, that the notions of God imprinted in their nature are so weak, that they may be well excused; therefore the apostle adds, that the certainty of them is further confirmed by the book of the creatures, which was written before them in capital letters, so that he that runs may read.

The invisible things of him: the apostle tells us afterwards himself what he means by the invisible things of God, viz. his being and his attributes, particularly his eternity and almighty power; to which we might add, his wisdom, goodness, &c. These, though invisible in themselves, yet are discernible by his works, and that ever since the creation of the world. By what they see created, they may easily collect or understand, that there is an eternal and almighty Creator; they may argue from the effects to the cause.

So that they are without excuse: some render it, that they may be without excuse; but it is better rendered in our translation: the meaning is not, that God gave them that knowledge for this end and purpose, that they might be inexcusable, for they might catch even at that for an excuse; but the plain sense is this, that God hath given all men such means of knowledge as sufficeth to leave them without excuse, there can be no pretence of ignorance.

Poole: Rom 1:21 - -- Because either this must be referred to the words immediately foregoing, and then it is a reason why the Gentiles are inexcusable, because that, whe...

Because either this must be referred to the words immediately foregoing, and then it is a reason why the Gentiles are inexcusable,

because that, when they knew God, they glorified him not as God &c.; or else it refers to Rom 1:18 , and then it is a proof of their withholding the truth in unrighteousness, because, & c.

They knew God they had a natural knowledge of God, it was taught them, as before, by the light of natnre, and by the book of the creatures. Though this was not sufficient to save them, yet it was sufficient to save them without excuse.

They glorified him not as God they did not conceive of him and worship him as became his Divine excellencies and perfections; see Psa 29:2 .

Neither were thankful they did not own God to be the Author and Giver of all the good things they enjoyed, and return him thanks accordingly; but referred all to chance and fortune, their own prudence and providence, the influence of the stars, &c.

But became vain in their imaginations or reasonings. This hath chief respect to the conception and opinions that the heathen framed to themselves of the Divine Being. For though some denied there was a God, and others doubted thereof, yet generally it was acknowledged by them; yea, some owned a multiplicity of gods, and those either corporeal or incorporeal. Others acknowledged but one God, as Plato, Aristotle, &c.; but then they either denied his providence, as the Peripatetics, or tied him to second or inferior causes, as the Stoics. This is the vanity which the apostle here speaketh of. Note also, that idols, the frame of idle brains, are called vanities: see Deu 32:21 Jer 10:15 Act 14:15 .

And their foolish heart was darkened: by the heart is meant the mind, their very understandings were darkened, the natural reason in them was obscured. This was a just judgment upon them for their abuse of knowledge, and pride, of which in the next verse. see Rom 1:22

Poole: Rom 1:22 - -- Some think, that all along this context the apostle hath reference to the Gnostics, a sort of heretics in the first age, (of which see Dr. Hammond ...

Some think, that all along this context the apostle hath reference to the Gnostics, a sort of heretics in the first age, (of which see Dr. Hammond in locum ), and that the meaning of the words is this, That they, assuming the title of Gnostics, of knowing men, and of men wiser than others, have proved more sottish than any. Others think the words refer to the heathen philosophers, who though they were learned and wise in secular and natural things, yet they became fools in spiritual and heavenly matters; though they well understood the creature, yet they erred concerning the Creator. And as fools delight in toys, neglecting things of great value; so they set up puppets and idols of their own devising, in the room of the true God; which the apostle gives us in the next verse, as a demonstration of their folly. Socrates, who was accounted one of the wisest amongst them, desired his friends, when he was about to die, to offer for him a cock to Aesculapius, which he had vowed.

Poole: Rom 1:23 - -- Changed the glory of the uncorruptible God you have the same phrase, Psa 106:20 Jer 2:11 ; and from thence it is borrowed. Into an image made like t...

Changed the glory of the uncorruptible God you have the same phrase, Psa 106:20 Jer 2:11 ; and from thence it is borrowed.

Into an image made like to corruptible man, &c.: the apostle proeeedeth from the more worthy to the less worthy creatures, that the grossness of their idolatry might the better appear; and these four are put for all other kinds. This gross idolatry of the heathen in worshipping such images as are here spoken of, was practised by the Israelites; see Eze 8:10,11 : and so it is by the Romanists to this day; nor doth it avail them to say, they do not worship images, but the true God in or before those images; for the same plea was made by the idolaters of old. Symmachus, in a learned oration, wherein he craved of the emperors Valentinian and Theodosius the restitution of the Roman gods, affirms, that they had respect only to one God; but they had divers ways to bring them to that God: they did not hold such things as they worshipped to be God, but in them they said they worshipped the true God. That worship which is intended to God by an image, is not the worship of God, but of the image. Compare Psa 106:19,20 , with Exo 32:4,5 .

Poole: Rom 1:24 - -- Wherefore their impiety was the cause of what followed: this is repeated again, that it may be the better observed. The contempt of God and of religi...

Wherefore their impiety was the cause of what followed: this is repeated again, that it may be the better observed. The contempt of God and of religion is the cause of all wickedness.

God also gave them up this phrase is thrice used in this context, viz. Rom 1:24,26,28 : it seems to be taken out of Psa 81:12 . Some think his giving them up, is only’ his withdrawing his grace from them, and permitting them to sin; but there seems to be more in it than a bare subtraction or permission. He did not only leave them to themselves, but, in a judicial way, he put then, into the hands of Satan, and of their own lusts; as it is said, Psa 69:27 , he added iniquity to their iniquity, making the latter iniquity a punishment of the former.

Between themselves some read it, in themselves, and some read it, one among another; so the same word is rendered, Eph 4:32 Col 3:13 . The apostle here speaks more generally of all kinds of pollution and uncleanness that was committed by them, whether natural or unnatural.

Poole: Rom 1:25 - -- Who changed the truth of God into a lie i.e. the God of truth, or the true God, into an idol, which is a lie, which seems to be that which it is not:...

Who changed the truth of God into a lie i.e. the God of truth, or the true God, into an idol, which is a lie, which seems to be that which it is not: or else, by the truth of God, understand those true sentiments and notions that they had of God, and were taught them, as before, by the light of nature, and the book of the creatures; these they changed into lying imaginations and conceits.

And worshipped and served the creature more than the Creator or, besides the Creator: some understand it comparatively, they worshipped one more than the other; others exclusively, they worshipped one and not the other. They were guilty of two great errors; one was in their minds, they changed the truth of God into a lie; the other in their wills, they served the creature more than the Creator.

Who is blessed for ever. Amen: when the Hebrews of old made mention of the true God, they were wont to add these words: Let him be blessed for ever.

Poole: Rom 1:26 - -- For this cause i.e. for their idolatry and uncleanness both, for now their idolatry is aggravated by the uncleanness accompanying it. Vile affection...

For this cause i.e. for their idolatry and uncleanness both, for now their idolatry is aggravated by the uncleanness accompanying it.

Vile affections Gr. affections of dishonour, i.e. the most dishonourable and shameful affections; for as we are exhorted, 1Th 4:4,5 , to possess our vessels in honour, that is, to withhold our body from uncleanness; so they that give up themselves to uncleanness, dishonour themselves and their own bodies; see 1Co 6:18 : if they, as this scripture tells us, that commit fornication dishonour their own bodies; then much more do they that practise the unnatural uncleanness hereafter mentioned.

For even their women, &c. i.e gunaikev andrizontai , so Clem. Alexandr. Ad praeposteros et sodomiticos concubitus sese maribus prostituerunt. See Paraeus: a filthy practice not to be named, Eph 5:3 .

Poole: Rom 1:27 - -- This was the sin of the Sodomites of old, for which they were destroyed, Gen 19:5 : see Lev 18:22 . How meet was it that they who had forsaken the A...

This was the sin of the Sodomites of old, for which they were destroyed, Gen 19:5 : see Lev 18:22 . How meet was it that they who had forsaken the Author of nature, should be given up not to keep the order of nature; that they who had changed the glory of God into the similitude of beasts, should be left to do those things which beasts themselves abhorred! God only concurred as a just judge in punishing foregoing with following sins: see Rom 1:25 .

Poole: Rom 1:28 - -- To retain God in their knowledge or, to have God in acknowledgment. The apostle proceeds to show the analogy betwixt their sin and their punishment. ...

To retain God in their knowledge or, to have God in acknowledgment. The apostle proceeds to show the analogy betwixt their sin and their punishment. The evil he here taxed them with is much the same with that in Rom 1:21 ; though they had some knowledge of God, yet they did not acknowledge him as God, by glorifying him, and giving thanks to him; it did not seem good to them so to do.

God gave them over to a reprobate mind or, an injudicious mind, a mind void of judgment. It is just and equal, that he, who in his judgment disapproves of God, should be left either to be of a corrupt judgment, or of none at all. The word may be taken passively, for a mind disapproved of God; or actively, for a mind which disapproves of all good. They were not given up to this reprobate mind all at once, but by degrees. First, they were given up to their own hearts’ lusts, Rom 1:24 ; then, to vile affections, Rom 1:26 ; and then, lastly, to a mind void of judgment; to such an evil habit, that they could do nothing but evil.

Poole: Rom 1:29 - -- Now follow the sins against the second table, which reigned amongst the Gentiles; amongst which unrighteousness is as the fountain, from whence th...

Now follow the sins against the second table, which reigned amongst the Gentiles; amongst which

unrighteousness is as the fountain, from whence the rest as streams do flow. This is the genus that comprehends all the evils hereafter enumerated. It is not to be supposed that all the following vices were found in every individual person; but the meaning is, that all were guilty of some, and some were guilty of all of them.

Fornication, wickedness in the Greek there is all elegant paronomasia, porneia, ponhria . So there are two more in the following verses, fyonou, fonou, asunetoi, asunyetoi . The design of the apostle is, to set down a particular vice; therefore, instead of wickedness, some read troublesomeness, or a desire to procure trouble and molestation to another. The devil is called oo ponhrov , the troublesome one.

Maliciousness or, mischievousness, the better to distinguish it from envy.

Malignity or, morosity and churlishness, taking all things in the worser part.

Whisperers: whisperers speak evil privily of others; backbiters, openly.

Poole: Rom 1:30 - -- Haters of God the original word hath a passive termination, and therefore some read it, hated of God. But words passive are sometimes actively taken:...

Haters of God the original word hath a passive termination, and therefore some read it, hated of God. But words passive are sometimes actively taken: see 2Pe 1:3 . And the apostle here intendeth a catalogue of the Gentiles’ sins, whereof this was one: see Psa 81:15 .

Despiteful or, injurious.

Inventors of evil things they were not contented with old usual evils, but they invented new; whether we refer this to evils of pain, or evils of sin, we may find examples thereof amongst the heathen. Phalaris propounded a reward to him that could devise a new torment; and Sardanapalus offered rewards to such as could find out new venereal pleasures.

Disobedient to parents either natural or political.

Poole: Rom 1:31 - -- Without understanding or, without conscience; sunesiv , or snueidhsiv , being much the same. Without natural affection this evil also reigned among...

Without understanding or, without conscience; sunesiv , or snueidhsiv , being much the same.

Without natural affection this evil also reigned amongst the Gentiles, who sacrificed their very children to their idols, and otherwise exposed them to ruin: see 2Ti 3:3 .

Implacable or, irreconcilable and vindictive.

Poole: Rom 1:32 - -- Knowing the judgment of God i.e. his just law and statute, or his justice in punishing sin and sinners. This the Gentiles knew by the light of nature...

Knowing the judgment of God i.e. his just law and statute, or his justice in punishing sin and sinners. This the Gentiles knew by the light of nature, and by the examples of God’ s justice in the world.

That they which commit such things are worthy of death the barbarians of Melita judged murder worthy of death, Act 28:4 : see Act 23:29 26:31 . The heathen also had some knowledge of future and everlasting punishment, as appears by their writings: and were persuaded that the sins be dementioned, and such like, did really deserve it.

Have pleasure in them that do them or, patronize and applaud such; see Psa 10:3 . This is set last, as worst of all; it is the highest degree of wickedness: such come nearest the devil, who take pleasure in evil because it is evil.

PBC: Rom 1:2 - -- Ro 1:2

PBC: Rom 1:16 - -- "It is the power of God unto salvation to every one that believeth; to the Jew first, and also to the Greek" SEE GOSPR: *Introduction To every one t...

"It is the power of God unto salvation to every one that believeth; to the Jew first, and also to the Greek"

SEE GOSPR: *Introduction

To every one that believes, this verse does not say a single word to the unbeliever! In the matter of the new birth, eternal life, the believer is born again already. "Whosoever believeth that Jesus is the Christ is born of God: and every one that loveth him that begat loveth him also that is begotten of him," 1Jo 5:1. Grammatically and logically, this verse teaches that the believer has already been born again, denying and contradicting the popular opinion that belief causes the new birth.

Then we ask, "How does the gospel save believers who have already been born again?" The lesson shines with instruction on this point. First, it saves the believer to the understanding of God’s righteousness, thus saving him from all kinds of foolish accusations against God. It saves the believer by imposing a guiding principle into his life that builds upon God’s righteousness and communicates from faith to faith, faith in the messenger and faith in the hearer. This form of revelation convinces the struggling believer that he is not alone. Others have the same experience he has. Others need God just as deeply as he feels his need. It saves him by strengthening his faith, from a lesser to a greater degree of fruitfulness. By the gospel he grows in grace and in the knowledge of the truth. Thus, the gospel saves him from the many sins of ignorance he would otherwise fall into.

286

How we should rejoice in the truth of Ro 1:16! But we must not assign a meaning to this verse that contradicts 1Co 1:18. The gospel is the power of God unto salvation to the believer, not the unregenerate. To the unregenerate, it is foolishness. But once an individual is given spiritual life, once he is saved, it is the power of God to transform his life. {Ro 12:2; 2Co 3:18}      287

The Heb. and Gr. words for salvation imply the ideas of deliverance, safety, preservation, healing, and soundness. Salvation is the great inclusive word of the Gospel, gathering into itself all the redemptive acts and processes: as justification, redemption, grace, propitiation, imputation, forgiveness, sanctification, and glorification. Salvation is in three tenses:

(1) The believer has been saved from the guilt and penalty of sin Lu 7:50; 1Co 1:18; 2Co 2:15; Eph 2:5,8; 2Ti 1:9 and is safe.

(2) the believer is being saved from the habit and dominion of sin Ro 6:14; Php 1:19; 2:12-13; 2Th 2:13; Ro 8:2; Ga 2:19-20; 2Co 3:18.

(3) The believer is to be saved in the sense of entire conformity to Christ. Ro 13:11; Heb 10:36; 1Pe 1:5; 1Jo 3:2. Salvation is by grace through faith, is a free gift, and wholly without works Ro 3:27; 4:1-8; 6:23; Eph 2:8. The divine order is: first salvation, then works Eph 2:9-10; Tit 3:5-8.  Scofield

PBC: Rom 1:17 - -- This is saying that the gospel is the means that God uses to reveal His own right actions from the faith that we all have in regeneration to the Chris...

This is saying that the gospel is the means that God uses to reveal His own right actions from the faith that we all have in regeneration to the Christian faith, to be more specific, to the Biblical faith as believed by Primitive Baptist’s.

288

" From faith to faith"

Some interpret these words as meaning from one degree of faith to a greater degree of faith. Others apply them to mutual faith in the preacher and the hearer. In either case, they must build upon pre-existing faith!

289

" The just shall live by faith."

Paul quoted these words from Hab 2:4, " Behold, his soul which is lifted up is not upright in him: but the just shall live by his faith." These words speak of the guiding influence in the life of a just man, not of an unjust man changing his lifestyle and becoming just. The man who lives by faith is already a just man. The verse describes his method of living, the chart and compass of his course. He lives by the rule of faith. By using this verse to support his interpretation of the gospel, Paul applied this lesson to the family of God, not to lost sinners. The purpose of the gospel is to guide the just man.

290

PBC: Rom 1:20 - -- Human science may guide the mind of the philosopher, the astronomer, and the geologist into the hidden mysteries of nature, and clearly reveal to his ...

Human science may guide the mind of the philosopher, the astronomer, and the geologist into the hidden mysteries of nature, and clearly reveal to his mind that there is an Almighty Power, endowed with infinite wisdom, that has brought all these things into being, and fixed their order and harmony; for Paul tells us that the things that are seen declare his eternal power and Godhead; Ro 1:20; but the scheme of redemption, and the way of man’s deliverance from the bondage of sin and death human science or wisdom can never reveal, neither can it be taught, only by direct revelation to man by the Spirit of God; 1Co 2:10; Eph 3:5.   Eld. Gregg Thompson

Where has God revealed himself? First, he has revealed himself in nature. {Ps 19:1-6; Ro 1:18-25} This is called Natural or General Revelation. Every human being, says Paul, instinctively and inherently knows that God exists and that he/she is ultimately accountable to that God for violations of his moral law, so that they are without excuse.  291

PBC: Rom 1:21 - -- The problem of the atheist, according to Ro 1:1-32, is not an intellectual problem but a moral problem -not a lack of knowledge but the refusal to ack...

The problem of the atheist, according to Ro 1:1-32, is not an intellectual problem but a moral problem -not a lack of knowledge but the refusal to acknowledge God as God, {Ro 1:21} for God has unveiled himself to all men in creation.  292

Haydock: Rom 1:2 - -- Which he had promised before, &c. That is, God before, in the Scriptures, promised the blessings, which are not come by the preaching of the gospel,...

Which he had promised before, &c. That is, God before, in the Scriptures, promised the blessings, which are not come by the preaching of the gospel, and that they should come by his Son. (Witham)

Haydock: Rom 1:3 - -- Who was made to him of the seed of David, according to the flesh. The sense is, that God promised, that he who was his true and only Son from eterni...

Who was made to him of the seed of David, according to the flesh. The sense is, that God promised, that he who was his true and only Son from eternity, should also become his son, as man; that the same son should be man, as well as God, when the word was made flesh, or when that divine person should be united to our human nature. Thus the same person, who was his only begotten Son from eternity, being made man, and of the seed of David, by his incarnation, was still his Son, both as God, and also as man. (Witham) ---

The Greek text has not the particle ei, (to him) but only Greek: tou genomenou ek spermatos David. But St. Irenæus, (lib. iii. chap. 18.) St. Ambrose, St. Jerome read, Qui factus est ei. And also St. Augustine in his unfinished exposition of the epistle to the Romans; though before in his book against Faustus, (lib. xi. chap. 14.) he reads it otherwise. (Calmet)

Haydock: Rom 1:4 - -- Who was predestined [2] the Son of God. The learned bishop of Meaux, Bossuet, in his second Pastoral Instruction, in which he condemned the French...

Who was predestined [2] the Son of God. The learned bishop of Meaux, Bossuet, in his second Pastoral Instruction, in which he condemned the French translation of Mons. Simon, (p. 127.) takes notice, that according to St. Paul, and the constant doctrine of St. Augustine and St. Thomas Aquinas, Christ as man, or the human nature of Christ united to his divine person, was predestined without any precedent merits, by a free and liberal predestination of God's goodness. (Witham) ---

Christ, as man, was predestined to be the Son of God; and declared to be so (as the apostle here signifies) first by power, that is, by his working stupendous miracles; secondly, by the spirit of sanctification, that is, by his infinite sanctity; thirdly, by his resurrection, or raising himself from the dead. (Challoner)

===============================

[BIBLIOGRAPHY]

Qui prædestinatus est. St. John Chrysostom, Greek: om. a. p. 7. Ed. Sau. Greek: ti oun estin oristhentos; deichthentos, apophanthentos.

Haydock: Rom 1:5 - -- By whom, i.e. by this same Jesus Christ, God and man, we, I and the rest of the apostles, have received this grace and apostleship, this missio...

By whom, i.e. by this same Jesus Christ, God and man, we, I and the rest of the apostles, have received this grace and apostleship, this mission and commission from him, of preaching his gospel, and teaching his doctrine. ---

For obedience to the faith in all nations; that is, to bring all nations to the obedience and profession of his new law and doctrine. (Witham)

Haydock: Rom 1:6 - -- Among whom are you also the called of Jesus. That is, you also are a part of those, who by his mercy, are called to this faith and belief in him. A...

Among whom are you also the called of Jesus. That is, you also are a part of those, who by his mercy, are called to this faith and belief in him. All beginning from those words in the third verse, who was made to him, &c. till the end of the sixth verse, are to be taken as within a parenthesis, which is not unusual in the style of St. Paul. Then he goes on after this long parenthesis. (Witham)

Haydock: Rom 1:7 - -- To all that are at Rome...called to be saints. That is, who not only are named saints, but who by such a call from God, are to be sanctified by h...

To all that are at Rome...called to be saints. That is, who not only are named saints, but who by such a call from God, are to be sanctified by his grace, and to become holy, or saints. (Witham)

Haydock: Rom 1:8 - -- In the whole world. That is, to all, or almost all the Roman empire. (Witham)

In the whole world. That is, to all, or almost all the Roman empire. (Witham)

Haydock: Rom 1:9 - -- God is my witness. I call God to witness. It is an oath. (Witham)

God is my witness. I call God to witness. It is an oath. (Witham)

Haydock: Rom 1:14 - -- I am a debtor. That is, I am bound to preach the word of God to all. (Witham) --- by Greeks, in this place, are understood the Romans also, and by ...

I am a debtor. That is, I am bound to preach the word of God to all. (Witham) ---

by Greeks, in this place, are understood the Romans also, and by Barbarians, all other people who were neither Greeks nor Romans. The Greeks called all barbarians, who did not speak the Greek language, even the Latins themselves. But after the Roman became masters of the world, they were excepted, through policy, from the number of barbarians, and particularly after they began to cultivate the science of the Greeks. Græcia victa ferum victorem cepit, et artes

Intulit agresti Latio.

--- St. Paul says, that he is a debtor both to Greeks and barbarians, to the wise, the philosophers, those who pass for sages amongst the pagans, and to the simple, ignorant, unlettered class of mankind: not that he had received any thing at their hands, but because it was his duty, in quality of apostle, to address himself to the whole world, and preach to the great and to the small, to the learned and the unlearned. (Calmet)

Haydock: Rom 1:15 - -- St. Paul was even anxious to go and deliver the word to the Romans. Hence Mat. Polus, in his reflections on this verse, puts the following words into...

St. Paul was even anxious to go and deliver the word to the Romans. Hence Mat. Polus, in his reflections on this verse, puts the following words into the mouth of the Apostle: Lucifuga non sum: ostendi id Antiochiæ, Athenis, Ephesi et Corinthi: paratus sum & in illa splendidissima urbe Roma ostendere.

Haydock: Rom 1:16 - -- For it is the power of God unto salvation to every one; that is, it brings powerful helps to all, both Gentiles and Jews, in order to their salvation...

For it is the power of God unto salvation to every one; that is, it brings powerful helps to all, both Gentiles and Jews, in order to their salvation. ---

To the Jew first, inasmuch as the gospel is to be first preached to the Jews. (Witham) ---

The promises of salvation were first made to the Jews. Jesus Christ preached to the Jews only, and forbad his disciples, during his life-time, to preach to any other nation. And after his resurrection, when they had full powers to preach every where, they did not turn to the Gentiles, till the Jews had refused to hear them. A miracle was necessary to determine St. Peter to communicate the gospel to the uncircumcised; and St. Paul, in every place, first addressed himself to the Jew, and then to the Gentile. The apostle here sweetly endeavours, in an indirect manner, to silence the presumption of the Romans, who seemed to raise themselves above the Jews, and believed they had merited the grace of vocation to the faith. (Calmet)

Haydock: Rom 1:17 - -- For the justice of God. He does not here mean that justice, by which God is just in himself, but that justice, or sanctification, which he communica...

For the justice of God. He does not here mean that justice, by which God is just in himself, but that justice, or sanctification, which he communicates to men, and by which they are justified and sanctified. ---

From faith to faith. That is, by faith, and an increase in faith, inasmuch as, by increasing in faith, we advance in virtues; as it is written, (Habacuc ii. 4.) the just man liveth by faith; including the love of God, hope, and other virtues. (Witham)

Haydock: Rom 1:18 - -- For the wrath of God is revealed, &c. He begins to speak of the heathens, and of the wicked world, whose sins God punisheth from time to time with v...

For the wrath of God is revealed, &c. He begins to speak of the heathens, and of the wicked world, whose sins God punisheth from time to time with visible chastisements of plagues, famines, wars, &c. and that because they detain the truth of God in injustice, or in iniquity, that is, because they have not honoured God, even according to the knowledge which he has given them of him, especially their philosophers. (Witham)

Haydock: Rom 1:19-20 - -- That which is known of God. Or may be easily known of God, is manifest in them. The light of reason demonstrates to them the existence of one God...

That which is known of God. Or may be easily known of God, is manifest in them. The light of reason demonstrates to them the existence of one God, the maker and preserver of all things. This is made known to them from the creation of the world, or from the creatures in the world: the Creator may be discovered by the creatures, and as St. John Chrysostom here says, every Scythian, every barbarian, may come to the knowledge of God by the wonderful harmony [3] of all things, which proclaims the existence of God louder than any trumpet: but having known him, they did not glorify him; they acted contrary to their knowledge, abandoning themselves to idolatry, and the vain worship of many gods, and to all manner of vices and abominations against the light of reason. (Witham)

Haydock: Rom 1:20 - -- [BIBLIOGRAPHY] St. John Chrysostom, hom. ii. p. 20. Greek: tes panton armonias salpiggos, lamproteron booses.

[BIBLIOGRAPHY]

St. John Chrysostom, hom. ii. p. 20. Greek: tes panton armonias salpiggos, lamproteron booses.

Haydock: Rom 1:24 - -- Wherefore God gave them [4] up, &c. That is, as St. John Chrysostom says, permitted them, in punishment of their wilful blindness, to fall into th...

Wherefore God gave them [4] up, &c. That is, as St. John Chrysostom says, permitted them, in punishment of their wilful blindness, to fall into the foulest, most shameful, and unnatural sins of uncleanness here described. (Witham)

===============================

[BIBLIOGRAPHY]

Greek: to de paredoken, entautha eiasen esti.

Haydock: Rom 1:26 - -- God delivered them up. Not by being author of their sins, but by withdrawing his grace, and so permitting them, in punishment of their pride, to fal...

God delivered them up. Not by being author of their sins, but by withdrawing his grace, and so permitting them, in punishment of their pride, to fall into those shameful sins. (Challoner)

Haydock: Rom 1:27 - -- Receiving in themselves the recompense...due to their error. That is, were justly punished for their wilful blindness and error, by which they had w...

Receiving in themselves the recompense...due to their error. That is, were justly punished for their wilful blindness and error, by which they had worshipped and adored creatures, instead of the Creator, idols instead of the one true God. (Witham)

Haydock: Rom 1:29 - -- Being filled with all iniquity. He passeth to many other sins and crimes of the heathens. (Witham)

Being filled with all iniquity. He passeth to many other sins and crimes of the heathens. (Witham)

Haydock: Rom 1:30 - -- Hateful [5] to God. The Greek may also signify, haters of God. (Witham) --- Greek: theostugeis means either haters of God, or hated by God. (M...

Hateful [5] to God. The Greek may also signify, haters of God. (Witham) ---

Greek: theostugeis means either haters of God, or hated by God. (Menochius) ---

Disobedient to parents. The Greek literally signifies, Not listening to the advice of their parents; who rise up against them, and refuse to obey. (Calmet)

===============================

[BIBLIOGRAPHY]

Deo odibiles. Greek: theostugeis.

Haydock: Rom 1:31 - -- Dissolute, rude [6] in their manners, and behaviour. Some, from the Greek, understand breakers of their word; but this would be the same as without...

Dissolute, rude [6] in their manners, and behaviour. Some, from the Greek, understand breakers of their word; but this would be the same as without fidelity, which we find afterwards in the same verse. (Witham)

===============================

[BIBLIOGRAPHY]

Greek: asunthetous. See 2 Timothy iii. 3. Greek: aspondous, sine fœdere.

====================

Haydock: Rom 1:32 - -- This passage in the present Greek versions is rather different from the Vulgate: but the text of the Vulgate is conformable to the most ancient Greek ...

This passage in the present Greek versions is rather different from the Vulgate: but the text of the Vulgate is conformable to the most ancient Greek manuscripts, of which some are more than twelve hundred years old. Greek: Oitines to dikaioma tou theou epignontes ouk enoesan oti oi ta toiauta prassontes azioi thanatou eisin, ou monon de oi poiountes auta, alla kai oi suneudokountes tois prassousin. See Var. Lect. Mill. in hunc locum et Prolegom. 41. 42.

Gill: Rom 1:2 - -- Which he had promised afore,.... The Gospel is here further commended from the antiquity it: it was no novel doctrine, an upstart notion, but what God...

Which he had promised afore,.... The Gospel is here further commended from the antiquity it: it was no novel doctrine, an upstart notion, but what God had conceived in his own breast from eternity. This mystery was hid in him from the beginning of the world, and was ordained before the world was; in time God was pleased to make it known to the sons of men; he "promised" it, he spoke of it, and declared it

by his prophets, Isaiah and others, "afore" the Apostle Paul was called forth to be a preacher of it; which promise, or promises of it, lie

in the Holy Scriptures; the books of the Old Testament, so called from the author, matter, and usefulness of them. The apostle speaks in the language of his nation, for the Jews frequently call the Bible, writings, Holy Ones; "for", say they, כל כתובים קדש, "all the Scriptures are holy" c, and style them, כתבי הקדש, "Scriptures of holiness", or holy Scriptures d.

Gill: Rom 1:3 - -- Concerning his Son Jesus Christ our Lord,.... These words are in connection with "the Gospel of God", Rom 1:1, and express the subject matter of it, t...

Concerning his Son Jesus Christ our Lord,.... These words are in connection with "the Gospel of God", Rom 1:1, and express the subject matter of it, the Son of God, Jesus Christ our Lord; for Christ, as the Son of God, the Saviour of sinners, the only Mediator between God and men, who is Lord both of the dead and living, is the sum and substance of the Gospel: he is here described by his relation to God, his Son, of the same nature with him, equal to him, and distinct from him; by his usual names, "Jesus Christ", the one signifying a "Saviour", the other "anointed", and both, that he was anointed of God to be the Saviour of his people; and by his dominion over the saints our Lord, not merely by creation, but by redemption and grace, and happy is the person that can claim interest in him, as is here done; and by the distinction of natures in him:

which was made of the seed of David according to the flesh; this respects Christ in his human nature, who was made flesh, and of a woman; and shows his existence before his incarnation, and the immediate power and hand of God in it; and which was done, not by transmutation of him into flesh, but by an assumption of human nature into union with his divine person: he is said to be made "of the seed of David"; this points out the family from whence he sprung; designs the posterity of David, particularly Mary; has regard to the promise made to David, which God fulfilled; and shows the royal descent of Christ: it is added, "according to the flesh"; that is, according to his human nature; which phrase does not denote the corruption, but the truth of that nature; and supposes that he had another nature, otherwise there would have been no need of this limiting and restrictive clause.

Gill: Rom 1:4 - -- And declared to be the Son of God,.... Not made as he is said to be before, when his incarnation is spoken of; nor did he begin to be the Son of God, ...

And declared to be the Son of God,.... Not made as he is said to be before, when his incarnation is spoken of; nor did he begin to be the Son of God, when he was made of the seed of David, but he, the Son of God, who existed as such, from everlasting, was manifested in the flesh, or human nature: and this his divine sonship, and proper deity, are declared and made evident,

with, or "by"

his power; which has appeared in the creation of all things out of nothing; in upholding all things in their beings; in the government of the world, and works of Providence; in the miracles he wrought; in his performing the great work of redemption; in the success of his Gospel, to the conversion of sinners; and in the preservation of his churches and people: here it seems chiefly to regard the power of Christ in raising the dead, since it follows, and which is to be connected with this clause,

by the resurrection from the dead; and designs either the resurrection of others, as of Lazarus, and some other persons, in his lifetime, and of some at his resurrection, and of all at the last day: or the resurrection of his own body, which dying he had power to raise up again, and did; and which declared him to be, or clearly made it appear that he was the Son of God, a divine person, truly and properly God: and this was done

according to the Spirit of holiness; which may be understood of the Holy Spirit, the third person in the Trinity, who is holy in himself, and the author of holiness in the saints; and who is the declarer of Christ's sonship, partly by bearing a testimony to it in the word, and in the hearts of believers, and chiefly by being concerned in the resurrection of the body of Christ from the dead; or else by the Spirit of holiness may be meant the divine nature of Christ, which, as it is holy, so by it Christ offered himself to God, and by it was quickened, or made alive, when he had been put to death in the flesh; and which must be a clear and strong proof of his being truly the Son of God.

Gill: Rom 1:5 - -- By whom we have received grace and apostleship,.... That is, either by the Holy Spirit, from whom all grace and gifts come, qualifying for the dischar...

By whom we have received grace and apostleship,.... That is, either by the Holy Spirit, from whom all grace and gifts come, qualifying for the discharge of any office; or by the Lord Jesus Christ, who is full of grace and truth, has received gifts for, and gives them to men to fit them for whatsoever service he is pleased to call them to. By "grace and apostleship" may be meant, either one and the same thing, the favour and honour of being the apostles of Christ; or different things, and the one in order to the other. Grace may design special saving grace in calling, justification, pardon, and adoption, and sanctification, which was received in common with other saints, and is absolutely necessary to an apostle, and to any ordinary minister of the word; or the doctrine of grace, which they received from Christ, and dispensed to others; or rather the gifts of grace, and the various measures thereof, which they received from their ascended Lord and King, by which they were furnished for apostleship, that is, the work and office of apostles; to which they were called by Christ, and from whom they received a commission to execute it. The apostle takes in others sides himself, and says, "we have received"; partly for the sake of modesty, and partly to keep up his equal title with others to this office; and since this is had in a way of receiving, which supposes giving, and excludes boasting, it obliges to make use of all grace and gifts to the glory of Christ, by whom they are received. The end for which they received such an office, and grace to fit them for it, was, "for obedience to the faith"; that men might be brought by the ministry of the word to obey the faith, Christ the object of faith; to submit to his righteousness, and the way of salvation by him, and to be subject to his ordinances or to obey the doctrine of faith, which is not barely to hear it, and notionally receive it, but to embrace it heartily by faith, and retain it, in opposition to a disbelief and contempt of it; and which is the end and design of the Gospel ministration to bring persons to, Moreover, by

obedience to the faith, or "obedience of faith", as it may be rendered, may be meant the grace of faith, attended with evangelical obedience; for obedience, rightly performed, is only that which is by faith, and springs from it. Now grace and apostleship were received, in order to be exercised

among all nations; not in Judea only, to which the first commission of apostleship was limited, but in all the nations of the world, as the commission renewed by Christ after his resurrection ordered; and that some among all nations of the earth might, by the power of divine grace accompanying the word, be brought to faith and obedience: and all this, the qualifications for the office, the due exercise of it in all the world, and the success that attended it, were

for his name; for the honour and glory of Christ, in whose name they went, and which they bore and carried among the Gentiles, out of whom he was pleased "to take a people for his name", Act 15:14.

Gill: Rom 1:6 - -- Among whom are ye also,.... The Romans, though they were the chief, were among the nations of the world to whom the apostles were sent; and since Paul...

Among whom are ye also,.... The Romans, though they were the chief, were among the nations of the world to whom the apostles were sent; and since Paul was called to be an apostle, and had, as others, grace and apostleship, and particularly the apostleship of the uncircumcision, or was ordained a teacher of the Gentiles, more especially he was an apostle to them, and as such was to be regarded by them. This seems to point out what they were originally; they were among all nations which lay in darkness; and were without Christ and hope, and God in the world; but now,

the called of Jesus Christ. The calling here spoken of is not to an office, or a mere external one by the ministry of the word, but an internal special call by the grace of God; and which is irresistible, efficacious, and unchangeable, and is an high, holy, and heavenly one; by it persons are called out of darkness into light, out of bondage into liberty, out of the world, from the company of the men of it, and the sinful pleasures thereof, to fellowship with Christ and his saints, and off a dependence on themselves, and their own righteousness, to the grace and righteousness of Christ, and to eternal glory. The persons so called are the elect of God, who are secured in Christ, and redeemed by him, and who has a concern with the Father and Spirit in the calling of them: hence they are styled, "the called of Jesus Christ"; they are called by him, and after his name; he has an interest in them; as they were before his chosen and redeemed ones, they are now his called ones; as Jacob and Israel of old were named of God, מקראי, "my called", Isa 48:12; so these were named Christ's called ones; and who by calling came to be partakers of him and of his grace.

Gill: Rom 1:7 - -- To all that be in Rome,.... These words contain both the inscription of the epistle, and the apostle's usual salutation, as in all his epistles, The i...

To all that be in Rome,.... These words contain both the inscription of the epistle, and the apostle's usual salutation, as in all his epistles, The inscription of it is not to the Roman emperor; nor to the Roman senate, nor to all the inhabitants in Rome; but to all the saints there, whether rich or poor, bond or free, male or female, Jew or Gentile, without any distinction, being all one in Christ Jesus: and these are described as

beloved of God; not for any loveliness there was in them, nor because of any love in them to God, nor on account of their obedience and righteousness; but through the free favour and sovereign will and pleasure of God, who loved them before he called them, even from eternity, and will love them to eternity; which love of his is the source and spring of all the blessings of grace, and, among the rest, of the effectual calling: hence this character is set before the following one,

called to be saints; not born so, nor become so through their own power, but were so by calling grace, as a fruit of everlasting love; men are first beloved of the Lord, and then called to be his saints. The salutation follows; the things wished for in it are,

grace to you, and peace: by "grace" is not meant ministerial gifts, which are not common to all the saints; nor the Gospel, which was at Rome already; nor the love and favour of God, which these persons were sharers in, as appears from their above characters; nor the principle of grace, which was now formed there in their effectual calling; but an increase of grace, as to its degrees, acts, and exercise; every grace is imperfect in this respect, and those who have the most stand in need of more; there is such a thing as growing in grace, which is very desirable, and may be expected from God, who is able to make all grace to abound, and has promised to give more: by "peace" is meant, peace with God through Christ; peace in their own consciences, and with one another; all manner of prosperity inward and outward here, and eternal happiness hereafter. The persons from whom these are desired are,

God our Father and the Lord Jesus Christ; God the Father of Christ is spoken of as our Father, which is by adoption; partly to engage fear and reverence of him at his throne; and partly to encourage freedom and boldness there, and an expectation of receiving every blessing of grace from him: "the Lord Jesus Christ" is mentioned, as being the person through whom, and for whose sake, all the blessings of grace and peace are communicated to us; and being put upon a level with the Father in these petitions, shows him to be equal with him, and so truly and properly God. "Grace" may be thought to be particularly wished for from the Father, though not exclusive of Christ, since he is the God of all grace, who has treasured up a fulness of it in his Son. And "peace" may be considered as desired to be had from Christ, though not exclusive of the Father; since the covenant of peace was made with him, the chastisement of peace was laid on him, and he has made peace by the blood of his cross, and is the giver of it to his people.

Gill: Rom 1:8 - -- First, I thank my God, through Jesus Christ, for you all,.... After the inscription and salutation, follows a thanksgiving, which begins the epistle: ...

First, I thank my God, through Jesus Christ, for you all,.... After the inscription and salutation, follows a thanksgiving, which begins the epistle: it is usual with the apostle in all his epistles to make requests for the churches, with thanksgivings for mercies; his view in it was, to glorify God, to testify his affection to the saints, and to show that all they had must be referred to the grace of God. The object of thanksgiving is God not merely as a creator and preserver, but as a Father, the Father of Christ, and our Father in Christ; as the one God, and our God, Father, Son, and Spirit. The apostle styles him, my God; which distinguishes him from all others, points out his particular interest in him, expresses his knowledge of him and faith in him, and demonstrates that what he did now, he did in faith. The person through whom thanks are given is Jesus Christ. There is no coming to God but through Christ, nor is any sacrifice either of prayer or praise acceptable without him, and since all we have come through him, it is but reasonable that thanks for them should be returned by and through him; the persons for whom this thanksgiving is made were all the Romans, all the saints at Rome, the members of the church there, of whatsoever rank and degree, and in whatsoever, state and condition; the thing for which the apostle was thankful for particularly was, not that their city was mistress of the whole world, and their fame for power, wealth, and grandeur, was spread abroad far and near; but, says he,

that your faith is spoken of throughout the whole world; which shows that faith is a grace of great account: God has put an honour upon it, by making it the receiver of all his gifts, and that gives glory to God, and without it nothing is acceptable to him; it answers many excellent uses and purposes in experience; it is that by which saints live upon Christ in this world, and look to the glories of another. This also shows that the saints at Rome did not hide their faith in their breasts, but declared it to others; a public profession both of the grace and doctrine of faith is to be made, and constantly held; both are to be shown forth to others, by deeds as well as words; which greatly redounds to the honour of such churches, causes joy in other churches, and in all the ministers of the Gospel, and is the occasion of many thanksgivings to God.

Gill: Rom 1:9 - -- For God is my witness, whom I serve,.... These words are an appeal to God, and carry in them the nature and form of an oath; the reason of the apostle...

For God is my witness, whom I serve,.... These words are an appeal to God, and carry in them the nature and form of an oath; the reason of the apostle's using it was, because he was personally unknown to the Romans, and they to him, and so might doubt of his affectionate regard unto them; and therefore for the confirmation thereof he uses it: this was a case which was only known to God and himself, and hence he appeals to him for the truth of it. The object of his oath or appeal, or by which he speaks, is not himself, or anything that belonged to him, nor any creature in heaven or on earth, but God; who in a solemn oath is only to be appealed to and sworn by: he describes him as the God "whom he served", to distinguish him from all false gods, and to show that he that takes an oath, should be one that fears and serves the Lord; what he served him in was not the law, but

the Gospel of his Son; Jesus Christ, who is the author, minister, and subject matter of it: he served him in it, by preaching, spreading, and defending it. This is a service, and a very laborious one, and makes for the honour and glory of God. The manner in which he served him was, as he says,

with my Spirit; either with the Spirit of God, which was given to him; or in a spiritual manner, in opposition to the carnal worship of the Jews; internally, in opposition to bodily exercise only, and voluntarily, with his whole heart, soul, and spirit. The matter or substance of his appeal or oath was,

that without ceasing I make mention of you always in my prayers; whence may be observed, that prayer to God ought to be constant; and that we should be concerned for others as well as for ourselves; all the saints should share therein.

Gill: Rom 1:10 - -- Making request, if by any means now at length,.... A principal thing, which be incessantly and importunately requested at the throne of grace, was, th...

Making request, if by any means now at length,.... A principal thing, which be incessantly and importunately requested at the throne of grace, was, that he might have an opportunity of coming to them; that God in his providence would open a way for him; and that he might have a safe and comfortable journey in a very little time; all which he submits to the will of God, as a good man ought to do; and which he thus expresses,

I might have a prosperous journey by the will of God, to come unto you; see Jam 4:13.

Gill: Rom 1:11 - -- For I long to see you,.... Not the city of Rome, which was one of Austin's three wishes to have seen in its glory; nor the emperor of it, nor the sena...

For I long to see you,.... Not the city of Rome, which was one of Austin's three wishes to have seen in its glory; nor the emperor of it, nor the senate in it, nor its populous inhabitants, fine buildings, riches and grandeur; but the poor saints there, which were the excellent men of the earth, of the whole Roman empire, and in whom was his delight: his desire to see them was not to gratify his curiosity, nor to spend his time in idle chat with them, nor with a view to enrich himself by them; but, says he,

that I may impart some spiritual gift: not any extraordinary gift of the Spirit; but spiritual light, knowledge, peace, and comfort, through the exercise of his ministerial gift: whence it may be observed, that that which qualities men for the preaching of the word to the profit of others, is a gift, a gift by grace; a spiritual one, which comes from the Spirit of God, and may be, and is to be imparted to others in the free use and exercise of it; and that,

to the end that saints may be established; for such who are called by grace, need establishing. They are indeed in a safe state and condition; they are encircled in the arms of everlasting love, they are fixed in the hands of Christ, secured in an everlasting covenant, established on the rock of ages, and settled in a state from whence they can never fall: yet, notwithstanding this, they are sometimes very unstable in their hearts, in their frames, in the exercise of grace, and the discharge of duty, and in professing and adhering to the doctrines of the Gospel; wherefore they need establishing, as to a more firm persuasion of interest in the love of God, and in the covenant of grace, as to a more stable exercise of grace in Christ, and as to a more constant discharge of duty, and steady profession of adherence to the truths of the Gospel; to all which the ministration of the word has a tendency, with a divine blessing.

Gill: Rom 1:12 - -- That is, that I may be comforted together with you,.... This is a further explanation of his view, in being desirous of coming to them, and preaching:...

That is, that I may be comforted together with you,.... This is a further explanation of his view, in being desirous of coming to them, and preaching: the Gospel among them; for what makes for establishment, makes for comfort; and what makes for comfort, makes for establishment; and when souls are established, ministers are comforted as well as they; and whilst ministers are imparting their spiritual gifts for the use of others, they themselves are sometimes comforted of God in their work, and particularly when they find there is an agreement between their doctrine, and the experience of the saints:

by the mutual faith both of you and me. The grace of faith is the same in all the saints, and so is the doctrine of it, as dispensed by Christ's faithful ministers, and experimentally received and embraced by his people; the consideration of which has a very great influence on the comfort and establishment of each other; nor are any so perfect, but they may receive benefit from others, even though inferior to them.

Gill: Rom 1:13 - -- Now I would not have you ignorant, brethren,.... The apostle calls them brethren, because many of them were Jews, his brethren and kinsmen according t...

Now I would not have you ignorant, brethren,.... The apostle calls them brethren, because many of them were Jews, his brethren and kinsmen according to the flesh, and all of them were his brethren in a spiritual relation; and this he does to express his affection to them, and engage their attention and credit to him, and particularly to this matter which he now acquaints them with, being unwilling they should be ignorant of it;

that oftentimes I purposed to come unto you: it was not a sudden start of mind, or a desire that lately arose up in him, but a settled resolution and determination, and which he had often made:

but was let hitherto; either by God, who had work for him to do in other places; or by Satan, who sometimes by divine permission has had such power and influence; see 1Th 2:18, or through the urgent necessities of other churches, which required his stay with them longer than he intended: his end in taking up at several times such a resolution of coming to them was, says he,

that I might have some fruit among you also, even as among other Gentiles: by fruit he means, not any reward of his labour, either temporal or eternal; but the conversion of sinners, the edification of saints, and the fruitfulness of believers in grace and works. The apostle seems to allude to the casting of seed into the earth: Christ's ministers' are husbandmen, who sow the seed of the word, which lies some time under the clods; wherefore patience is necessary to wait its springing up, first in the blade, and then in the ear, then in the full corn in the ear, when it brings forth fruit; all which depend on the blessing of God: and when he adds, "as among other Gentiles", his design is not so much to let them know that they were as other Gentiles, upon a level with them, had no pre-eminence as citizens of Rome, over other saints, being all one in Christ Jesus; as to observe to them his success in other places, where he had been preaching the Gospel of the grace of God.

Gill: Rom 1:14 - -- I am a debtor both to the Greeks, and to the Barbarians,.... The meaning is, that he was obliged by the call he had from God, the injunction that was ...

I am a debtor both to the Greeks, and to the Barbarians,.... The meaning is, that he was obliged by the call he had from God, the injunction that was laid upon him by him, and the gifts with which he was qualified, to preach the Gospel to all sorts of men; who are here distinguished into Greeks and Barbarians: sometimes by Greeks are meant the Gentiles in general, in opposition to the Jews; see Rom 1:16; but here they design only a part of the Gentiles, the inhabitants of Greece, in opposition to all the world besides; for the Greeks used to call all others that were not of themselves Barbarians e: or else by Greeks are meant the more cultivated nations of the world, and by Barbarians the ruder and more uncivil parts of it; to which agrees the next division of mankind,

both to the wise and to the unwise. The Gospel was to be preached "to the wise"; such who thought themselves to be so, and were so with respect to human wisdom and knowledge; though it should be despised by them, as it was, and though few of them were called by it, some were, and still are, though not many; and such wisdom there is in the Gospel, as the wisest of men may learn by it, will be entertaining to them, is far beyond their contempt, and what will serve to exercise their talents and abilities, to search into the knowledge of, and rightly to understand; and it must be preached "to the unwise"; for such God has chosen to confound the wise; these he calls by his grace, and reveals his Gospel to, whilst he hides it from the wise and prudent; and there is that in the Gospel which is plain and easy to the weakest mind, enlightened by the Spirit of God.

Gill: Rom 1:15 - -- So, as much as in me is, I am ready,.... This explains what he was a debtor to one and another for, namely, to preach the Gospel; expresses the rea...

So, as much as in me is, I am ready,.... This explains what he was a debtor to one and another for, namely,

to preach the Gospel; expresses the readiness of his mind to that work, whatever difficulties lay in his way; and declares what a willing mind he had to preach it also to the Romans, as elsewhere:

to you that are at Rome also; the metropolis of the Roman empire, a very public place, the seat of Satan, and where was the heat of persecution.

Gill: Rom 1:16 - -- For I am not ashamed of the Gospel of Christ,.... The reason why he was so ready and willing to preach it, even where he ran the greatest risk of his ...

For I am not ashamed of the Gospel of Christ,.... The reason why he was so ready and willing to preach it, even where he ran the greatest risk of his character and life, was, because it was "the Gospel of Christ" he preached, and he was not ashamed of it. This supposes that some were, though the apostle was not, ashamed of the Gospel; as all such are who hide and conceal it, who have abilities to preach it, and do not: or who preach, but not the Gospel; or who preach the Gospel only in part, who own that in private, they will not preach in public, and use ambiguous words, of doubtful signification, to cover themselves; who blend the Gospel with their own inventions, seek to please men, and live upon popular applause, regard their own interest, and not Christ's, and cannot bear the reproach of his Gospel. It expresses, that the apostle was not ashamed of it; that is, to preach it, which he did fully and faithfully, plainly and consistently, openly and publicly, and boldly, in the face of all opposition: and it designs more than is expressed, as that he had the utmost value for it, and esteemed it his highest honour that he was employed in preaching it: his reasons for this were, because it was "the Gospel of Christ"; which Christ himself preached, which he had learnt by revelation from him, and of which he was the sum and substance: and because

it is the power of God; not essentially, but declaratively; as the power of God is seen in making men ministers of it, in the doctrines held forth in it, in the manner in which it was spread in the world, in the opposition it met with, in the continuance and increase of it notwithstanding the power and cunning of men, and in the shortness of time, in which so much good was done by it in the several parts of the world: it is the power of God organically or instrumentally; as it is a means made use of by God in quickening dead sinners, enlightening blind eyes, unstopping deaf ears, softening hard hearts, and making of enemies friends; to which add, the manner in which all this is done, suddenly, secretly, effectually, and by love, and not force: the extent of this power is,

unto salvation; the Gospel is a declaration and revelation of salvation by Christ, and is a means of directing and encouraging souls to lay hold upon it. The persons to whom it is so, are in general,

everyone that believeth: this does not suppose that faith gives the Gospel its virtue and efficacy; but is only descriptive of the persons to whom the Gospel, attended with the power and grace of God, is eventually efficacious: and particularly it was so,

to the Jew first; who as they had formerly the advantage of the Gentiles, much every way, through the peculiar privileges which were conferred on them; so the Gospel was first preached to them by Christ and his disciples; and even when it was ordered to be carried into the Gentile world, it was to begin with them, and became effectual for the salvation of many of them:

and also to the Greek; to the Gentile; for after the Jews had rejected it, as many being called by it as Jehovah thought fit, at that time, it was preached to the Gentiles with great success; which was the mystery hid from ages and generations past, but now made manifest.

Gill: Rom 1:17 - -- For therein is the righteousness of God revealed,.... By "the righteousness of God", is not meant the essential righteousness of God, the rectitude of...

For therein is the righteousness of God revealed,.... By "the righteousness of God", is not meant the essential righteousness of God, the rectitude of his nature, his righteousness in fulfilling his promises, and his punitive justice, which though revealed in the Gospel, yet not peculiar to it; nor the righteousness by which Christ himself is righteous, either as God, or as Mediator; but that righteousness which he wrought out by obeying the precepts, and bearing the penalty of the law in the room of his people, and by which they are justified in the sight of God: and this is called "the righteousness of God", in opposition to the righteousness of men: and because it justifies men in the sight of God; and because of the concern which Jehovah, Father, Son, and Spirit, have in it. Jehovah the Father sent his Son to work it out, and being wrought out, he approves and accepts of it, and imputes it to his elect: Jehovah the Son is the author of it by his obedience and death; and Jehovah the Spirit discovers it to sinners, works faith in them to lay hold upon it, and pronounces the sentence of justification by it in their consciences. Now this is said to be "revealed" in the Gospel, that is, it is taught in the Gospel; that is the word of righteousness, the ministration of it; it is manifested in and by the Gospel. This righteousness is not known by the light of nature, nor by the law of Moses; it was hid under the shadows of the ceremonial law, and is brought to light only by the Gospel; it is hid from every natural man, even from the most wise and prudent, and from God's elect themselves before conversion, and is only made known to believers, to whom it is revealed:

from faith to faith; that is, as say some, from the faith of God to the faith of men; from the faith of preachers to the faith of hearers; from the faith of the Old to the faith of the New Testament saints; or rather from one degree of faith to another; for faith, as it grows and increases, has clearer sights of this righteousness, as held forth in the Gospel. For the proof of this, a passage of Scripture is cited,

as it is written, Hab 2:4;

the just shall live by faith: "a just", or righteous man is, not everyone who thinks himself, or is thought by others to be so; nor are any so by their obedience to the law of works; but he is one that is made righteous by the righteousness of Christ imputed to him, which is before said to be revealed in the Gospel. The life which this man lives, and "shall live", does not design a natural or corporeal life, and a continuance of that, for such die a natural death, as other men; nor an eternal life, for though they shall so live, yet not by faith; but a spiritual life, a life of justification on Christ, of holiness from him, of communion with him, and of peace and joy; which spiritual life shall be continued, and never be lost. The manner in which the just lives, is "by faith". In the prophet Habakkuk, the words are, "the just shall live" באמונתו, "by his faith" Hab 2:4); which the Septuagint render, "by my faith": and the apostle only reads, "by faith", omitting the affix, as well known, and easy to be supplied: for faith, when given by God, and exercised by the believer, is his own, and by it he lives; not upon it, but by it upon Christ the object of it; from whom, in a way of believing, he derives his spiritual life, and all the comforts of it.

Gill: Rom 1:18 - -- For the wrath of God is revealed from heaven,.... The apostle having hinted at the doctrine of justification by faith in the righteousness of Christ; ...

For the wrath of God is revealed from heaven,.... The apostle having hinted at the doctrine of justification by faith in the righteousness of Christ; and which he designed more largely to insist upon in this epistle, and to prove that there can be no justification of a sinner in the sight of God by the deeds of the law, in order to set this matter in a clear light, from hence, to the end of the chapter, and in the following ones, represents the sad estate and condition of the Gentiles with the law of nature, and of the Jews with the law of Moses; by which it most clearly appears, that neither of them could be justified by their obedience to the respective laws under which they were, but that they both stood in need of the righteousness of God. By "the wrath of God" is meant the displicency and indignation of God at sin and sinners; his punitive justice, and awful vengeance; the judgments which he executes in this world; and that everlasting displeasure of his, and wrath to come in another world, which all through sin are deserving of, some are appointed to, God's elect are delivered from, through Christ's sustaining it, in their room and stead, and which comes and abides on all impenitent and unbelieving persons. This is said to be "revealed", where? not in the Gospel, in which the righteousness of God is revealed; unless the Gospel be taken for the books of the four Evangelists, or for the Gospel dispensation, or for that part of the ministry of a Gospel preacher, which represents the wrath of God as the desert of sin, the dreadfulness of it, and the way to escape it; for the Gospel, strictly taken, is grace, good news, glad tidings, and not wrath and damnation; though indeed in Christ's sufferings for the sins of his people, which the Gospel gives us an account of, there is a great display of the wrath of God, and of his indignation against sin: but this wrath of God is revealed in the law, it is known by the light of nature, and to be perceived in the law of Moses, and may be observed in the Scriptures, where are many instances and examples of divine wrath and displeasure; as in the total destruction of the old world by a world wide flood, the burning of Sodom and Gomorrah, turning Lot's wife into a pillar of salt, the plagues of Egypt, and the several instances mentioned in this chapter. This wrath is said to be God's wrath "from heaven", by the awful blackness which covers the heavens, the storms and tempests raised in them, and by pouring down water or fire in a surprising manner, on the inhabitants of the world; or "from heaven", that is, openly, manifestly, in the sight of all; or from God who is in heaven, and not from second causes; and more especially it will be revealed from heaven, when Christ shall descend from thence at the day of judgment: the subject matter or object of it,

against, or "upon" which it is revealed, are,

all ungodliness, and unrighteousness of men; that is, all ungodly and unrighteous men; or all men who are guilty of ungodliness, the breach of the first table of the law, which respects the worship of God, and of unrighteousness, the breach of the second table of the law, which regards our neighbours' good: and these persons are further described as such,

who hold the truth in unrighteousness: meaning either such who know the Gospel, which is "the truth", and do not profess it openly, but hold and imprison it in their minds, which is a great piece of unrighteousness; or if they do profess it, do not live up to it in their lives: or rather the Gentile philosophers are designed, who are spoken of in the following verse; See Gill on Rom 1:22; who had some knowledge of the truth of the divine Being, and his perfections, and of the difference between moral good and evil; but did not like to retain it themselves, nor communicate all they knew to others, nor did they live according to that knowledge which they had.

Gill: Rom 1:19 - -- Because that which may be known of God,.... There are some things which could not be known of God by the light of nature; as a trinity of persons in t...

Because that which may be known of God,.... There are some things which could not be known of God by the light of nature; as a trinity of persons in the Godhead; the knowledge of God in Christ as Mediator; the God-man and Mediator Jesus Christ; his incarnation, sufferings, death, and resurrection; the will of God to save sinners by a crucified Jesus; the several peculiar doctrines of the Gospel, particularly the resurrection of the dead, and the manner of worshipping of God with acceptance: but then there are some things which may be known of God, without a revelation. Adam had a perfect knowledge of him; and his sons, though fallen, even the very Heathens have some notion of him, as that there is a God; and by the light of nature it might be known that there is but one God, who is glorious, full of majesty, and possessed of all perfections, as that he is all powerful, wise, good and righteous: and this

is manifest in them, or "to them"; by the light that is given them: it is light by which that which may be known of God is manifest; and this is the light of nature, which every man has that comes into the world; and this is internal, it is in him, in his mind and conscience, and is communicated to him by God, and that by infusion or inspiration; see Job 32:8;

for God hath showed it unto them; what may be known of him by that light; and which is assisted and may be improved by a consideration of the works of creation and Providence.

Gill: Rom 1:20 - -- For the invisible things of him,.... Not the angels, the invisible inhabitants of heaven: nor the unseen glories of another world; nor the decrees of ...

For the invisible things of him,.... Not the angels, the invisible inhabitants of heaven: nor the unseen glories of another world; nor the decrees of God; nor the persons in the Godhead; but the perfections of God, or his "properties", as the Arabic version reads it; and which are explained by "his eternal power and Godhead": these,

from the creation of the world are clearly seen; this is no new discovery, but what men have had, and might, by the light of nature, have enjoyed ever since the world was created; these

being understood, in an intellectual way, by the discursive faculty of the understanding,

by the things that are made; the various works of creation; all which proclaim the being, unity, and perfections of God their Creator,

so that they are without excuse; the very Heathens, who have only the light of nature, and are destitute of a revelation, have no colour or pretext for their idolatrous practices, and vicious lives; nor have they, nor will they have anything to object to God's righteous judgment against them, or why they should not be condemned.

Gill: Rom 1:21 - -- Because that when they knew God,.... Though they had such a knowledge of the being and perfections of God, yet they glorified him not as God. They ...

Because that when they knew God,.... Though they had such a knowledge of the being and perfections of God, yet

they glorified him not as God. They neither thought nor spoke honourably of him; nor did they ascribe those perfections to him, which belonged to him; they did not adhere to him as the one and only God, nor honour him as the Creator of all things out of nothing, and as the sole Governor of the universe; they did not glorify him by the internal exercise of fear of him, love to him, or trust in him, nor by any external worship suitable to his nature, and their own notions of him, Seneca is an instance of this, of whom Austin f says,

"that he worshipped what he found fault with, did what he reproved, and adored that which he blamed.''

Neither were thankful; neither for the knowledge of things they had, which they ascribed to themselves; nor for their mercies, which they imputed to second causes:

but became vain in their imaginations; the vanity or their minds was the spring and source of their evil conduct; which may design the wickedness of their hearts, and the imaginations thereof, which were evil, and that continually; the pride of their natures the carnality and weakness of their reasonings, and the whole system of their vain philosophy; and hence they ran into polytheism, or the worshipping of many gods:

and their foolish heart was darkened; where they thought their great wisdom lay: darkness is natural to the hearts and understandings of all men, which is increased by personal iniquity; Satan is concerned in improving it, and God sometimes gives up the hearts of persons to judicial blindness, which was the case of these men.

Gill: Rom 1:22 - -- Professing themselves to be wise,.... The learned men among the Gentiles first called themselves σοφοι, "Sophi", wise men: and afterwards, to cov...

Professing themselves to be wise,.... The learned men among the Gentiles first called themselves σοφοι, "Sophi", wise men: and afterwards, to cover their wretched pride and vanity, φιλοσοφοι, "Philosophers", lovers of wisdom; but notwithstanding all their arrogance, their large pretensions to wisdom, and boast of it

they became fools; they appeared to be so; they showed themselves to be such in those very things they prided themselves with the knowledge of: as, for instance, Socrates, after he had asserted the unity of God, and is said to die a martyr for the truth; yet one of the last actions of his life was sacrificing a cock to Aesculapius, at least he desired his friend Crito to do it.

Gill: Rom 1:23 - -- And changed the glory of the incorruptible God,.... God is incorruptible and immortal in his nature, and so is opposed to all corruptible creatures an...

And changed the glory of the incorruptible God,.... God is incorruptible and immortal in his nature, and so is opposed to all corruptible creatures and things: he has a glory which is essential to him, and a manifestative one in the creatures, and which is relative, and of right belongs to him: his absolute essential glory cannot be changed, cannot be taken away from him, nor given to another; but his relative glory may be said to be changed, when another is worshipped in his stead, and called by his name. So Philo the Jew g speaks of

"some, who, leaving the true God, make to themselves false ones, and impose the name of the eternal and incorruptible upon created and corruptible beings.''

Into an image made like to corruptible man; which was worshipped in different forms by the several nations of the world:

and to birds; as the dove by the Samaritans, the hawk, the ibis, and others by the Egyptians:

and fourfooted beasts; as the ox, and other creatures:

and creeping things; such as beetles, serpents, and others, by the same.

Gill: Rom 1:24 - -- Wherefore God also gave them up to uncleanness,.... Not by putting any into them, but by leaving them to the pollution of their nature; by withdrawing...

Wherefore God also gave them up to uncleanness,.... Not by putting any into them, but by leaving them to the pollution of their nature; by withdrawing his providential restraints from them, and by giving them up to judicial hardness:

through the lusts of their own hearts. The heart of man is the source of all wickedness; the lusts that dwell there are many, and these tend to uncleanness of one sort or another: by it here is meant particularly bodily uncleanness, since it is said they were given up

to dishonour their own bodies between themselves; either alone, or with others; so that as they changed the glory of God, and dishonoured him, he left them to dishonour themselves by doing these things which were reproachful and scandalous to human nature.

Gill: Rom 1:25 - -- Who changed the truth of God into a lie,.... Not the truth of the Gospel, which they were unacquainted with; but that which might be known of God as t...

Who changed the truth of God into a lie,.... Not the truth of the Gospel, which they were unacquainted with; but that which might be known of God as true, and was known of them by the light of nature; or the true God himself, whom they "changed into a lie"; by ascribing to false deities, which were lying vanities, those things which were known of God; and by worshipping them instead of him: for they

worshipped and served the creature more than the Creator; or "above him" or "against him", in opposition to him, or "besides him", others along with him; or neglecting him, and not worshipping him at all; which is aggravated in that what they worshipped was a creature, either of their own, or of God's making, and whom they neglected was the Creator of them:

who is blessed for ever, Amen; is blessed in himself, and the fountain of all blessedness to his creatures; which is so glaring a truth, that everyone ought to say and set his "Amen" to it.

Gill: Rom 1:26 - -- For this cause God gave them up unto vile affections,.... Because of their idolatrous practices, God left them to very dishonourable actions, sodomiti...

For this cause God gave them up unto vile affections,.... Because of their idolatrous practices, God left them to very dishonourable actions, sodomitical ones, both among the men and women:

for even the women did change the natural use into that which is against nature; either by prostituting themselves to, and complying with the "sodomitical" embraces of men, in a way that is against nature h; or by making use of such ways and methods with themselves, or other women, to gratify their lusts, which were never designed by nature for such an use: of these vicious women, and their practices, Seneca i speaks, when he says,

"libidine veto nec maribus quidem cedunt, pati natae; Dii illas Deoeque, male perdant; adeo perversum commentae, genus impudicitiae, viros ineunt:''

also Clemens Alexandrinus k has respect to such, saying,

"gunaikev andrizontai para fusin, gamou men ai te kai γαμουσαι γυναικες.'

and such there were among the Jews, whom they call חמסוללות זו בזו נשים l, and whom the priests were forbidden to marry.

Gill: Rom 1:27 - -- And likewise also the men leaving the natural use of the women,.... The very sin of "sodomy" is here designed, so called from Sodom, the place where w...

And likewise also the men leaving the natural use of the women,.... The very sin of "sodomy" is here designed, so called from Sodom, the place where we first hear of it, Gen 19:5, the men of which place, because they

burned in their lust one towards another, as these Gentiles are said to do, God rained upon them fire and brimstone from heaven: an exceeding great sin this is, contrary to nature, dishonourable to human nature, and scandalous to a people and nation among whom it prevails, as it did very much in the Gentile world, and among their greatest philosophers; even those that were most noted for moral virtue are charged with it, as Socrates, Plato, Zeno, and others m: it is a sin which generally prevails where idolatry and infidelity do, as among the Pagans of old, and among the Papists and Mahometans now; and never was it so rife in this nation as since the schemes of deism and infidelity have found such a reception among us. Thus God, because men dishonour him with their evil principles and practices, leaves them to reproach their own nature, and dishonour their own bodies:

men with men working that which is unseemly; and of which nothing like it is to be observed in the brutal world:

receiving in themselves the recompence of their error, which was meet: God punishes sin with sin; for as the Jews say n, as

"one commandment draws on another, so one transgression draws on another; for the reward of the commandment is the commandment, ושכר עבירה עבירה and the reward of transgression is transgression.''

Gill: Rom 1:28 - -- And even as they did not like,.... This accounts for the justness of the divine procedure in leaving them to commit such scandalous iniquities; that s...

And even as they did not like,.... This accounts for the justness of the divine procedure in leaving them to commit such scandalous iniquities; that since they had some knowledge of God by the light of nature, and yet did not care

to retain God in their knowledge; or to own and acknowledge him as God, to worship and glorify him as such; but took every method to erase this knowledge out of their minds, and keep it from others:

God gave them over to a reprobate mind; a vain empty mind, worthless, good for nothing devoid of all true knowledge and judgment; incapable of approving what is truly good, or of disapproving that which is evil; a mind that has lost all conscience of things, and is disapproved of by God, and all good men:

to do those things which are not convenient; which are neither agreeably to the light of nature, nor convenient to, or becoming the honour of human nature; things which the brutes themselves, who are destitute of reason, do not do.

Gill: Rom 1:29 - -- Being filled with all unrighteousness,.... From hence, to the end of the chapter, follows a large and black list and catalogue of the sad characters o...

Being filled with all unrighteousness,.... From hence, to the end of the chapter, follows a large and black list and catalogue of the sad characters of the Gentiles, and of the best men they had among them; for the apostle is all along speaking, not of the common people, but of their wise professors, and moral instructors; than which there never was a more wicked set of men that ever lived upon the face of the earth; who under the guise of morality were guilty of the greatest pride and covetousness, and of the most filthy debaucheries imaginable: they were "filled with all unrighteousness". This word includes in it all manner of sin and wickedness in general; fitly expresses the condition of fallen men, destitute of a righteousness; designs every violation of the law respecting our neighbour; and is opposed to that vain conceit of righteousness which these men had: particular branches of it follow; as,

fornication; which sometimes includes adultery and an unchastity; simple fornication was not reckoned a sin among the Gentiles:

wickedness; or mischief, which intends not so much the internal wickedness of the heart, as that particular vice, by which a man is inclined and studies to do hurt, to others, as Satan does:

covetousness; this may intend every insatiable lust, and particularly the sin which goes by this name, and is the root of all evil, and was a reigning sin among the Gentiles. Seneca, the famous moralist, was notoriously guilty of this vice, being one of the greatest usurers that ever lived:

maliciousness; the word denotes either the iniquity of nature in which men are conceived and born; or that desire of revenge in men, for which some are very notorious:

envy; at the superior knowledge and learning, wealth and riches, happiness, and outward prosperity of others:

murder: which sometimes arose from envy, wherefore they are put together. There is an elegant "paranomasia" in the Greek text:

debate; strife about words more than things, and more for vain glory, and a desire of victory, than for truth:

deceit; through their empty notions of philosophy; hence "philosophy and vain deceit" go together, Col 2:8; making large pretences to morality, when they were the vilest of creatures:

malignity; moroseness; having no courteousness nor affability in them, guilty of very ill manners; as particularly they were who were of the sect of the Cynics. Now they are said to be "filled with", and "full of", these things; not filled by God, but by Satan and themselves; and it denotes the aboundings of wickedness in them, and which was insatiable. The apostle goes on to describe them, as

whisperers; who made mischief among friends, by privately suggesting, and secretly insinuating things into the mind of one to the prejudice of another.

Gill: Rom 1:30 - -- Backbiters,.... Who more publicly defamed the characters of their neighbours, and hurt their good name, credit and reputation, though behind their bac...

Backbiters,.... Who more publicly defamed the characters of their neighbours, and hurt their good name, credit and reputation, though behind their backs:

haters of God; some read it, "hated of God"; as all workers of iniquity are; but rather this expresses their sin, that they were deniers of the being and providence of God, and showed themselves to be enemies to him by their evil works:

despiteful; both by opprobrious words, and injurious actions:

proud; of their natural knowledge, learning, eloquence and vain philosophy:

boasters: of their parts, abilities, wisdom and works; all which they attributed to themselves, and to the sharpness of their wit, their sagacity and industry:

inventors of evil things; of evil schemes of morality and philosophy, and of evil practices, as well as principles:

disobedient to parents; which was acting contrary to the light of nature.

Gill: Rom 1:31 - -- Without understanding,.... Of God, of his nature and worship, of things divine and even moral, being given up to a reprobate mind: covenant breaker...

Without understanding,.... Of God, of his nature and worship, of things divine and even moral, being given up to a reprobate mind:

covenant breakers; had no regard to private or public contracts:

without natural affection; to their parents, children, relations and friends:

implacable; when once offended there was no reconciling of them:

unmerciful; had no pity and compassion to persons in distress.

Gill: Rom 1:32 - -- Who knowing the judgment of God,.... Either of the law of God, the law and light of nature, by which they might in some measure know the difference be...

Who knowing the judgment of God,.... Either of the law of God, the law and light of nature, by which they might in some measure know the difference between good and evil, and what was right and wrong; or the judiciary sentence of God against sin:

that they which commit such things are worthy of death; at least of corporeal death:

not only do the same, but have pleasure in those that do them; all which greatly aggravated their wickedness, since they sinned against light and knowledge, with approbation and good liking of their own sins, and took pleasure in the sins of others. The Jews have a saying p,

"that no man is suspected of a thing but he has done it; and if he has not done the whole of it, he has done part of it, and if he has not done part of it, he has thought in his heart to do it, and if he has not thought in his heart to do it, ראה אחרים שעשו ושמח, "he has seen others do it, and has rejoiced".''

And if such a man is a wicked man, how much more wicked are such who commit sin themselves, and delight in the sins of others? now from this whole account we see the insufficiency of the light of nature to guide persons in the way of salvation; what need there was of a divine revelation; and how impossible it is that such men should ever be justified before God, by any works of seeming righteousness done by them; which the apostle had in view, in giving this account of the depraved nature and conduct of the Gentiles, and of those among them who professed to be, and were the wisest and most knowing of them.

expand all
Commentary -- Verse Notes / Footnotes

NET Notes: Rom 1:2 Grk “the gospel of God, which he promised.” Because of the length and complexity of this sentence in Greek, it was divided into shorter En...

NET Notes: Rom 1:3 Grk “according to the flesh,” indicating Jesus’ earthly life, a reference to its weakness. This phrase implies that Jesus was more t...

NET Notes: Rom 1:4 Or “by his resurrection.” Most interpreters see this as a reference to Jesus’ own resurrection, although some take it to refer to th...

NET Notes: Rom 1:5 The phrase ὑπακοὴν πίστεως has been variously understood as (1) an objective g...

NET Notes: Rom 1:6 Grk “called of Jesus Christ.”

NET Notes: Rom 1:7 Grk “Grace to you and peace.”

NET Notes: Rom 1:8 Grk “First.” Paul never mentions a second point, so J. B. Phillips translated “I must begin by telling you….”

NET Notes: Rom 1:9 Grk “as.”

NET Notes: Rom 1:10 Grk “succeed in coming to you in the will of God.”

NET Notes: Rom 1:11 Paul does not mean here that he is going to bestow upon the Roman believers what is commonly known as a “spiritual gift,” that is, a speci...

NET Notes: Rom 1:12 Grk “that is, to be comforted together with you through the faith in one another.”

NET Notes: Rom 1:13 Grk “in order that I might have some fruit also among you just as also among the rest of the Gentiles.”

NET Notes: Rom 1:14 Or “obligated.”

NET Notes: Rom 1:15 For location see JP4 A1.

NET Notes: Rom 1:16 Here the Greek refers to anyone who is not Jewish.

NET Notes: Rom 1:17 A quotation from Hab 2:4.

NET Notes: Rom 1:18 Or “by means of unrighteousness.” Grk “in (by) unrighteousness.”

NET Notes: Rom 1:19 Grk “is manifest to/in them.”

NET Notes: Rom 1:20 Grk “they”; the referent (people) has been specified in the translation for clarity.

NET Notes: Rom 1:21 Grk “heart.”

NET Notes: Rom 1:22 The participle φάσκοντες (faskonte") is used concessively here.

NET Notes: Rom 1:23 Possibly an allusion to Ps 106:19-20.

NET Notes: Rom 1:24 Grk “among them.”

NET Notes: Rom 1:25 Or “creature, created things.”

NET Notes: Rom 1:26 Grk “for their females exchanged the natural function for that which is contrary to nature.” The term χρῆσις...

NET Notes: Rom 1:27 Grk “another, men committing…and receiving,” continuing the description of their deeds. Because of the length and complexity of the ...

NET Notes: Rom 1:28 Grk “the things that are improper.”

NET Notes: Rom 1:29 Grk “malice, full of,” continuing the description. Because of the length and complexity of the Greek sentence, a new sentence was started ...

NET Notes: Rom 1:31 Or “promise-breakers.”

NET Notes: Rom 1:32 “Vice lists” like vv. 28-32 can be found elsewhere in the NT in Matt 15:19; Gal 5:19-21; 1 Tim 1:9-10; and 1 Pet 4:3. An example from the ...

Geneva Bible: Rom 1:3 ( 3 ) Concerning his ( d ) Son Jesus Christ our Lord, which was ( e ) made of the seed of David ( f ) according to the flesh; ( 3 ) By declaring the ...

Geneva Bible: Rom 1:4 And ( g ) declared [to be] the Son of God with ( h ) power, according to the spirit of holiness, by the resurrection from the dead: ( g ) Shown and m...

Geneva Bible: Rom 1:5 ( i ) By whom we have received ( k ) grace and apostleship, for ( l ) obedience to the faith ( m ) among all nations, for his name: ( i ) Of whom. (...

Geneva Bible: Rom 1:6 Among whom are ye also the ( n ) called of Jesus Christ: ( n ) Who through God's goodness belong to Christ.

Geneva Bible: Rom 1:7 To all that be in Rome, beloved of God, called [to be] saints: ( o ) Grace to you and peace from God our Father, and the Lord Jesus Christ. ( o ) God...

Geneva Bible: Rom 1:8 ( 4 ) First, I thank my God through Jesus Christ for you all, that your faith is ( p ) spoken of throughout the ( q ) whole world. ( 4 ) He obtains t...

Geneva Bible: Rom 1:9 For God is my witness, whom I serve with my ( r ) spirit in the ( s ) gospel of his Son, that without ceasing I make mention of you always in my praye...

Geneva Bible: Rom 1:12 That is, that ( t ) I may be comforted together with you by the mutual faith both of you and me. ( t ) Though Paul was ever so excellent, yet in teac...

Geneva Bible: Rom 1:15 So, as much as in me is, I am ready to preach the gospel to you that are at ( u ) Rome also. ( u ) He means all those who dwell at Rome, though some ...

Geneva Bible: Rom 1:16 For I am not ashamed of the gospel of Christ: ( 5 ) for it is the ( x ) power of God unto salvation to every one that believeth; to the Jew first, and...

Geneva Bible: Rom 1:17 ( 6 ) For therein is the righteousness of God revealed from ( z ) faith to faith: ( 7 ) as it is written, The just shall live by faith. ( 6 ) The con...

Geneva Bible: Rom 1:18 ( 8 ) For the wrath of God is revealed from heaven against ( a ) all ungodliness and unrighteousness of men, who hold the ( b ) truth in unrighteousne...

Geneva Bible: Rom 1:19 ( 9 ) Because that which may be known of God is manifest in ( c ) them; for God hath shewed [it] unto them. ( 9 ) By their ungodliness he proves that...

Geneva Bible: Rom 1:20 For the invisible things of him from the creation of the world are clearly seen, being ( d ) understood by the things that are made, [even] his eterna...

Geneva Bible: Rom 1:21 Because that, when they knew God, they ( e ) glorified [him] not as God, neither were thankful; but became ( f ) vain in their imaginations, and their...

Geneva Bible: Rom 1:22 ( g ) Professing themselves to be wise, they became fools, ( g ) Or, thought themselves.

Geneva Bible: Rom 1:23 And changed the glory of the ( h ) uncorruptible God into an image made like to corruptible man, and to birds, and fourfooted beasts, and creeping thi...

Geneva Bible: Rom 1:24 ( 10 ) Wherefore ( i ) God also ( k ) gave them up to uncleanness through the lusts of their own hearts, to dishonour their own bodies between themsel...

Geneva Bible: Rom 1:27 And likewise also the men, leaving the natural use of the woman, burned in their lust one toward another; men with men working that which is unseemly,...

Geneva Bible: Rom 1:28 ( 11 ) And even as they did not like to retain God in [their] knowledge, God gave them over to a ( m ) reprobate mind, to do those things which are no...

Geneva Bible: Rom 1:31 Without understanding, ( n ) covenantbreakers, without natural affection, implacable, unmerciful: ( n ) Not caring if they keep their covenants and b...

Geneva Bible: Rom 1:32 Who knowing the ( o ) judgment of God, that they which commit such things are worthy of death, not only do the same, but ( p ) have pleasure in them t...

expand all
Commentary -- Verse Range Notes

TSK Synopsis: Rom 1:1-32 - --1 Paul commends his calling to the Romans;9 and his desire to come to them.16 What his gospel is.18 God is angry with sin.21 What were the sins of the...

Maclaren: Rom 1:4 - --The Witness Of The Resurrection Declared to be the Son of God with power, by the resurrection of the dead.'--Romans 1:4 (R.V.). IT is a great mistak...

Maclaren: Rom 1:7 - --Privilege And Obligation To all that be in Rome, beloved of God, called to be saints.'--Romans 1:7. THIS is the address of the Epistle. The first thi...

Maclaren: Rom 1:11-12 - --Paul's Longing I long to see you, that I may impart unto you some spiritual gift, to the end ye may be established; 12. That is, that I may be comfor...

Maclaren: Rom 1:14 - --Debtors To All Men I am a debtor both to the Greeks and to the Barbarians, both to the wise and to the unwise.'--Romans 1:14. No doubt Paul is here r...

Maclaren: Rom 1:16 - --The Gospel The Power Of God I am not ashamed of the Gospel of Christ: for it is the power of God unto salvation to every one that believeth.'--Romans...

MHCC: Rom 1:1-7 - --The doctrine of which the apostle Paul wrote, set forth the fulfilment of the promises by the prophets. It spoke of the Son of God, even Jesus the Sav...

MHCC: Rom 1:8-15 - --We must show love for our friends, not only by praying for them, but by praising God for them. As in our purposes, so in our desires, we must remember...

MHCC: Rom 1:16-17 - --In these verses the apostle opens the design of the whole epistle, in which he brings forward a charge of sinfulness against all flesh; declares the o...

MHCC: Rom 1:18-25 - --The apostle begins to show that all mankind need the salvation of the gospel, because none could obtain the favour of God, or escape his wrath by thei...

MHCC: Rom 1:26-32 - --In the horrid depravity of the heathen, the truth of our Lord's words was shown: " Light was come into the world, but men loved darkness rather than l...

Matthew Henry: Rom 1:1-7 - -- In this paragraph we have, I. The person who writes the epistle described (Rom 1:1): Paul, a servant of Jesus Christ; this is his title of honour,...

Matthew Henry: Rom 1:8-15 - -- We may here observe, I. His thanksgivings for them (Rom 1:8): First, I thank my God. It is good to begin every thing with blessing God, to make th...

Matthew Henry: Rom 1:16-18 - -- Paul here enters upon a large discourse of justification, in the latter part of this chapter laying down his thesis, and, in order to the proof of i...

Matthew Henry: Rom 1:19-32 - -- In this last part of the chapter the apostle applies what he had said particularly to the Gentile world, in which we may observe, I. The means and h...

Barclay: Rom 1:1-7 - --When Paul wrote his letter to the Romans he was writing to a church which he did not know personally and in which he had never been. He was writing t...

Barclay: Rom 1:8-15 - --After almost nineteen hundred years the warm affection of this passage still breathes through it, and we can feel Paul's great heart throbbing with l...

Barclay: Rom 1:16-17 - --When we come to these two verses, the preliminaries are over and the trumpet call of Paul's gospel sounds out. Many of the great piano concertos beg...

Barclay: Rom 1:18-23 - --In the previous passage Paul was thinking about the relationship with God into which a man can enter through the faith which is utter yieldedness and ...

Barclay: Rom 1:24-25 - --The word translated desires (epithumia, 1939) is the key to this passage. Aristotle defined epithumia (1939) as a reaching out after pleasure. The ...

Barclay: Rom 1:26-27 - --Rom 1:26-32might seem the work of some almost hysterical moralist who was exaggerating the contemporary situation and painting it in colours of rhetor...

Barclay: Rom 1:28-32 - --There is hardly any passage which so clearly shows what happens to a man when he leaves God out of the reckoning. It is not so much that God sends a ...

Constable: Rom 1:1-17 - --I. INTRODUCTION 1:1-17 This great epistle begins with a broad perspective. It looks at the promise of a Savior i...

Constable: Rom 1:1-7 - --A. Salutation 1:1-7 The salutation, which is the longest salutation in Paul's epistles, identifies the w...

Constable: Rom 1:2-5 - --2. The subject of the epistle 1:2-5 1:2 Paul next began to exalt the gospel that God had called him to proclaim. It was a message that God had promise...

Constable: Rom 1:6-7 - --3. The original recipients 1:6-7 1:6-7 Paul assured his readers that they were part of the intent of the gospel. God had not called them to apostleshi...

Constable: Rom 1:8-15 - --B. Purpose 1:8-15 Having begun with a formal and unusually long greeting compared to his other epistles, Paul next proceeded to address his readers mo...

Constable: Rom 1:16-17 - --C. Theme 1:16-17 If anyone thought Paul had not visited Rome because he doubted the power of his gospel to work in that sophisticated environment, the...

Constable: Rom 1:18--3:21 - --II. THE NEED FOR GOD'S RIGHTEOUSNESS 1:18--3:20 Paul began his explanation of the gospel by demonstrating that t...

Constable: Rom 1:18-32 - --A. The need of all people 1:18-32 Perhaps Paul began by showing all people's need for God's righteousnes...

Constable: Rom 1:18 - --1. The reason for human guilt 1:18 In this verse Paul explained why Gentiles need to hear the go...

Constable: Rom 1:19-27 - --2. The ungodliness of mankind 1:19-27 1:19-20 These verses begin a discussion of "natural revelation." Natural revelation describes what everyone know...

Constable: Rom 1:28-32 - --3. The wickedness of mankind 1:28-32 The second key word in verse 18, "unrighteousness" (v. 29),...

College: Rom 1:1-32 - --1:1-17 - PROLOGUE Jump to: New Testament Introduction Jump to: Book Introduction I. 1:1-7 - EPISTOLARY GREETING In the Greek this section is one l...

McGarvey: Rom 1:2 - --which he promised afore through his prophets in the holy scriptures ,

McGarvey: Rom 1:3 - --concerning his Son, who was born of the seed of David according to the flesh ,

McGarvey: Rom 1:4 - --who was declared to be the Son of God with power, according to the spirit of holiness, by the resurrection from the dead; even Jesus Christ our Lord

McGarvey: Rom 1:5 - --through whom we received grace and apostleship, unto obedience of faith among all the nations, for his name's sake ;

McGarvey: Rom 1:6 - --among whom are ye also, called to be Jesus Christ's :

McGarvey: Rom 1:7 - --to all that are in Rome, beloved of God, called to be saints: Grace to you and peace from God our Father and the Lord Jesus Christ . [The apostle open...

McGarvey: Rom 1:8 - --First [i. e., before I proceed to other matters, I wish you to know that], I thank my God through Jesus Christ for you all, that your faith is proclai...

McGarvey: Rom 1:9 - --For God is my witness, whom I serve in my spirit in the gospel of his Son, how unceasingly I make mention of you, always in my prayers

McGarvey: Rom 1:10 - --making request, if by any means now at length I may be prospered by the will of God to come unto you . [Since he could call no other witness as to the...

McGarvey: Rom 1:11 - --For I long to see you, that I may impart unto you some spiritual gift, to the end ye may be established ;

McGarvey: Rom 1:12 - --that is, that I with you may be comforted in you, each of us by the other's faith, both yours and mine . [Paul here sets forth the reason why he so ea...

McGarvey: Rom 1:13 - --And I would not have you ignorant, brethren, that oftentimes I purposed to come unto you (and was hindered hitherto), that I might have some fruit in ...

McGarvey: Rom 1:14 - --I am debtor both to Greeks and to Barbarians [foreigners, those who did not speak the Greek language] , both to the wise and to the foolish .

McGarvey: Rom 1:15 - --So, as much as in me is, I am ready to preach the gospel to you also that are in Rome . [Paul's knowledge of the good news, and his apostleship as to ...

McGarvey: Rom 1:16 - --For I am not ashamed of the gospel: for it is the power of God unto salvation to every one that believeth; to the Jew first, and also to the Greek .

McGarvey: Rom 1:17 - --For therein is revealed a righteousness of God from faith unto faith: as it is written [Hab 2:4], But the righteous shall live by faith . [This paragr...

McGarvey: Rom 1:18 - --For the wrath of God is revealed from heaven against all ungodliness and unrighteousness of men, who hinder the truth in unrighteousness ["For" is int...

McGarvey: Rom 1:19 - --because that which is known of God is manifest in them; for God manifested it unto them .

McGarvey: Rom 1:20 - --For the invisible things of him since the creation of the world are clearly seen, being perceived through the things that are made, even his everlasti...

McGarvey: Rom 1:21 - --because that, knowing God, they glorified him not as God, neither gave thanks; but became vain in their reasonings, and their senseless heart was dark...

McGarvey: Rom 1:22 - --Professing themselves to be wise, they became fools ,

McGarvey: Rom 1:23 - --and changed the glory of the incorruptible God for the likeness of an image of corruptible man, and of birds, and four-footed beasts, and creeping thi...

McGarvey: Rom 1:24 - --Wherefore God gave them up in the lusts of their hearts unto uncleanness, that their bodies should be dishonored among themselves :

McGarvey: Rom 1:25 - --for that they exchanged the truth of God for a lie, and worshipped and served the creature rather than the Creator, who is blessed for ever. Amen . [W...

McGarvey: Rom 1:26 - --For this cause God gave them up unto vile passions: for their women changed the natural use into that which is against nature :

McGarvey: Rom 1:27 - --and likewise also the men, leaving the natural use of the woman, burned in their lust one toward another, men with men working unseemliness, and recei...

McGarvey: Rom 1:28 - --And even as they refused [did not deem it worthy of their mind] to have God in their knowledge, God gave them up unto a reprobate mind [i. e., minds r...

McGarvey: Rom 1:29 - --being filled with all unrighteousness, wickedness, covetousness [inordinate desire to accumulate property regardless of the rights of others: a sin wh...

McGarvey: Rom 1:30 - --backbiters [outspoken slanderers], hateful to God [many contend that this should read "haters of God," since Paul is enumerating the vices of men, and...

McGarvey: Rom 1:31 - --without understanding [those who have so long seared their consciences as to be unable to determine between right and wrong even in plain cases. The l...

McGarvey: Rom 1:32 - --who, knowing the ordinance of God, that they that practice such things are worthy of death, not only do the same, but also consent with them that prac...

expand all
Commentary -- Other

Critics Ask: Rom 1:19 ROMANS 1:19-20 —Are the heathen lost? PROBLEM: Jesus said, “I am the way, the truth, and the life. No one comes to the Father, except through...

Critics Ask: Rom 1:20 ROMANS 1:19-20 —Are the heathen lost? PROBLEM: Jesus said, “I am the way, the truth, and the life. No one comes to the Father, except through...

Critics Ask: Rom 1:26 ROMANS 1:26 —Does this verse mean that homosexuals should not be heterosexual because it is unnatural to them? PROBLEM: According to some homos...

Evidence: Rom 1:14 " So long as there is a human being who does not know Jesus Christ, I am his debtor to serve him until he does." Oswald Chambers

Evidence: Rom 1:20 Faith in God is not "blind faith"; it is based on the fact of God's existence seen clearly through creation. "This most beautiful system of the sun, p...

Evidence: Rom 1:27 Homosexuality . Despite claims to the contrary, no scientific evidence has been found that homosexuals are " born that way." In fact, God’s Word is...

expand all
Introduction / Outline

Robertson: Romans (Book Introduction) The Epistle to the Romans Spring of a.d. 57 By Way of Introduction Integrity of the Epistle The genuineness of the Epistle is so generally adm...

JFB: Romans (Book Introduction) THE GENUINENESS of the Epistle to the Romans has never been questioned. It has the unbroken testimony of all antiquity, up to CLEMENT OF ROME, the apo...

JFB: Romans (Outline) INTRODUCTION. (Rom. 1:1-17) THE JEW UNDER LIKE CONDEMNATION WITH THE GENTILE. (Rom. 2:1-29) JEWISH OBJECTIONS ANSWERED. (Rom 3:1-8) THAT THE JEW IS S...

TSK: Romans (Book Introduction) The Epistle to the Romans is " a writing," says Dr. Macknight, " which, for sublimity and truth of sentiment, for brevity and strength of expression,...

TSK: Romans 1 (Chapter Introduction) Overview Rom 1:1, Paul commends his calling to the Romans; Rom 1:9, and his desire to come to them; Rom 1:16, What his gospel is; Rom 1:18, God is...

Poole: Romans 1 (Chapter Introduction) ARGUMENT The penman of this Epistle, viz. Paul, was so called (as some think) because he was little or low of stature. Others suppose he had th...

MHCC: Romans (Book Introduction) The scope or design of the apostle in writing to the Romans appears to have been, to answer the unbelieving, and to teach the believing Jew; to confir...

MHCC: Romans 1 (Chapter Introduction) (Rom 1:1-7) The apostle's commission. (Rom 1:8-15) Prays for the saints at Rome, and expresses his desire to see them. (Rom 1:16, Rom 1:17) The gosp...

Matthew Henry: Romans (Book Introduction) An Exposition, with Practical Observations, of The Epistle of St. Paul to the Romans If we may compare scripture with scripture, and take the opinion ...

Matthew Henry: Romans 1 (Chapter Introduction) In this chapter we may observe, I. The preface and introduction to the whole epistle, to Rom 1:16. II. A description of the deplorable condition ...

Barclay: Romans (Book Introduction) A GENERAL INTRODUCTION TO THE LETTERS OF PAUL The Letters Of Paul There is no more interesting body of documents in the New Testament than the letter...

Barclay: Romans 1 (Chapter Introduction) A Call, A Gospel And A Task (Rom_1:1-7) The Courtesy Of Greatness (Rom_1:8-15) Good News Of Which To Be Proud (Rom_1:16-17) The Wrath Of God (Ro...

Constable: Romans (Book Introduction) Introduction Historical Background Throughout the history of the church, from postapos...

Constable: Romans (Outline) Outline I. Introduction 1:1-17 A. Salutation 1:1-7 1. The writer 1:1 ...

Constable: Romans Romans Bibliography Alford, Henry. The Greek Testament. 4 vols. New ed. Cambridge: Rivingtons, 1881. ...

Haydock: Romans (Book Introduction) THE EPISTLE OF ST. PAUL, THE APOSTLE, TO THE ROMANS. INTRODUCTION. After the Gospels, which contain the history of Christ, and the Acts of...

Gill: Romans (Book Introduction) INTRODUCTION TO ROMANS Though this epistle is in order placed the first of the epistles, yet it was not first written: there were several epistles ...

Gill: Romans 1 (Chapter Introduction) INTRODUCTION TO ROMANS 1 This chapter contains the inscription of the epistle, and salutation, the preface to it, and the grand proposition of just...

College: Romans (Book Introduction) INTRODUCTION I. ROMANS: ITS INFLUENCE AND IMPORTANCE God's Word is a lamp to our feet and a light for our path (Ps 119:105), and no part of it shine...

College: Romans (Outline) VIII. OUTLINE PROLOGUE - 1:1-17 I. EPISTOLARY GREETING - 1:1-7 A. The Author Introduces Himself - 1:1 1. A Slave of Christ Jesus 2. Call...

Advanced Commentary (Dictionaries, Hymns, Arts, Sermon Illustration, Question and Answers, etc)


TIP #21: 'To learn the History/Background of Bible books/chapters use the Discovery Box.' [ALL]
created in 6.07 seconds
powered by
bible.org - YLSA